PERSONS attempting to find a motive in this narrative will be prosecuted; persons attempting to find a moral in it will be banished; persons attempting to find a plot in it will be shot. BY ORDER OF THE AUTHOR, Per G.G., Chief of Ordnance.
CHAPTER I.
YOU don't know about me without you
have read a book by the name of The Adventures of Tom Sawyer; but
that ain't no matter. That book was made by Mr. Mark Twain, and he
told the truth, mainly. There was things which he stretched, but
mainly he told the truth. That is nothing. I never
seen anybody but lied one time or
another, without it was Aunt Polly, or
the widow, or maybe Mary. Aunt
Polly—Tom's Aunt Polly, she is—and
Mary, and the Widow Douglas is all told
about in that book, which is
mostly a true book, with some
stretchers, as I said before.
Now the way that the book winds up is
this: Tom and me found the money
that the robbers hid in the cave, and
it made us rich. We got six
thousand dollars apiece—all gold.
It was an awful sight of money when
it was piled up. Well, Judge Thatcher
he took it and put it out at
interest, and it fetched us a dollar a
day apiece all the year round
—more than a body could tell what
to do with. The Widow Douglas she took
me for her son, and allowed she would
sivilize me; but it was rough
living in the house all the time,
considering how dismal regular and
decent the widow was in all her ways;
and so when I couldn't stand it no
longer I lit out. I got into my old
rags and my sugar-hogshead again,
and was free and satisfied. But Tom
Sawyer he hunted me up and said he
was going to start a band of robbers,
and I might join if I would go back
to the widow and be respectable. So I
went back.
The widow she cried over me, and called
me a poor lost lamb, and she
called me a lot of other names, too,
but she never meant no harm by it.
She put me in them new clothes again,
and I couldn't do nothing but sweat
and sweat, and feel all cramped up.
Well, then, the old thing commenced
again. The widow rung a bell for
supper, and you had to come to time.
When you got to the table you couldn't
go right to eating, but you had to
wait for the widow to tuck down her
head and grumble a little over the
victuals, though there warn't really
anything the matter with them,—that
is, nothing only everything was cooked
by itself. In a barrel of odds
and ends it is different; things get
mixed up, and the juice kind of
swaps around, and the things go better.
After supper she got out her book and
learned me about Moses and the
Bulrushers, and I was in a sweat to
find out all about him; but by and by
she let it out that Moses had been dead
a considerable long time; so then
I didn't care no more about him,
because I don't take no stock in dead
people.
Pretty soon I wanted to smoke, and
asked the widow to let me. But she
wouldn't. She said it was a mean
practice and wasn't clean, and I must
try to not do it any more. That is
just the way with some people. They
get down on a thing when they don't
know nothing about it. Here she was
a-bothering about Moses, which was no
kin to her, and no use to anybody,
being gone, you see, yet finding a
power of fault with me for doing a
thing that had some good in it. And
she took snuff, too; of course that
was all right, because she done it
herself.
Her sister, Miss Watson, a tolerable
slim old maid, with goggles on,
had just come to live with her, and
took a set at me now with a
spelling-book. She worked me middling
hard for about an hour, and then
the widow made her ease up. I couldn't
stood it much longer. Then for
an hour it was deadly dull, and I was
fidgety. Miss Watson would say,
"Don't put your feet up there,
Huckleberry;" and "Don't scrunch up like
that, Huckleberry—set up
straight;" and pretty soon she would say,
"Don't gap and stretch like that,
Huckleberry—why don't you try to
behave?" Then she told me all
about the bad place, and I said I wished I
was there. She got mad then, but I
didn't mean no harm. All I wanted was
to go somewheres; all I wanted was a
change, I warn't particular. She
said it was wicked to say what I said;
said she wouldn't say it for the
whole world; she was going to live so
as to go to the good place. Well,
I couldn't see no advantage in going
where she was going, so I made up my
mind I wouldn't try for it. But I
never said so, because it would only
make trouble, and wouldn't do no good.
Now she had got a start, and she went
on and told me all about the good
place. She said all a body would have
to do there was to go around all
day long with a harp and sing, forever
and ever. So I didn't think much
of it. But I never said so. I asked
her if she reckoned Tom Sawyer would
go there, and she said not by a
considerable sight. I was glad about
that, because I wanted him and me to be
together.
Miss Watson she kept pecking at me, and
it got tiresome and lonesome. By
and by they fetched the niggers in and
had prayers, and then everybody
was off to bed. I went up to my room
with a piece of candle, and put it
on the table. Then I set down in a
chair by the window and tried to
think of something cheerful, but it
warn't no use. I felt so lonesome I
most wished I was dead. The stars were
shining, and the leaves rustled
in the woods ever so mournful; and I
heard an owl, away off, who-whooing
about somebody that was dead, and a
whippowill and a dog crying about
somebody that was going to die; and the
wind was trying to whisper
something to me, and I couldn't make
out what it was, and so it made the
cold shivers run over me. Then away out
in the woods I heard that kind of
a sound that a ghost makes when it
wants to tell about something that's
on its mind and can't make itself
understood, and so can't rest easy in
its grave, and has to go about that way
every night grieving. I got so
down-hearted and scared I did wish I
had some company. Pretty soon a
spider went crawling up my shoulder,
and I flipped it off and it lit in
the candle; and before I could budge it
was all shriveled up. I didn't
need anybody to tell me that that was
an awful bad sign and would fetch
me some bad luck, so I was scared and
most shook the clothes off of me.
I got up and turned around in my tracks
three times and crossed my breast
every time; and then I tied up a little
lock of my hair with a thread to
keep witches away. But I hadn't no
confidence. You do that when you've
lost a horseshoe that you've found,
instead of nailing it up over the
door, but I hadn't ever heard anybody
say it was any way to keep off bad
luck when you'd killed a spider.
I set down again, a-shaking all over,
and got out my pipe for a smoke;
for the house was all as still as death
now, and so the widow wouldn't
know. Well, after a long time I heard
the clock away off in the town go
boom—boom—boom—twelve
licks; and all still again—stiller than ever.
Pretty soon I heard a twig snap down in
the dark amongst the trees
—something was a stirring. I set
still and listened. Directly I could
just barely hear a "me-yow!
me-yow!" down there. That was good! Says I,
"me-yow! me-yow!" as soft as
I could, and then I put out the light and
scrambled out of the window on to the
shed. Then I slipped down to the
ground and crawled in among the trees,
and, sure enough, there was Tom
Sawyer waiting for me.
CHAPTER II.
WE went tiptoeing along a path amongst
the trees back towards the end of
the widow's garden, stooping down so as
the branches wouldn't scrape our
heads. When we was passing by the
kitchen I fell over a root and made a
noise. We scrouched down and laid
still. Miss Watson's big nigger,
named Jim, was setting in the kitchen
door; we could see him pretty
clear, because there was a light behind
him. He got up and stretched his
neck out about a minute, listening.
Then he says:
"Who dah?"
He listened some more; then he come
tiptoeing down and stood right
between us; we could a touched him,
nearly. Well, likely it was minutes
and minutes that there warn't a sound,
and we all there so close
together. There was a place on my
ankle that got to itching, but I
dasn't scratch it; and then my ear
begun to itch; and next my back, right
between my shoulders. Seemed like I'd
die if I couldn't scratch. Well,
I've noticed that thing plenty times
since. If you are with the quality,
or at a funeral, or trying to go to
sleep when you ain't sleepy—if you
are anywheres where it won't do for you
to scratch, why you will itch all
over in upwards of a thousand places.
Pretty soon Jim says:
"Say, who is you? Whar is you?
Dog my cats ef I didn' hear sumf'n.
Well, I know what I's gwyne to do: I's
gwyne to set down here and listen
tell I hears it agin."
So he set down on the ground betwixt me
and Tom. He leaned his back up
against a tree, and stretched his legs
out till one of them most touched
one of mine. My nose begun to itch.
It itched till the tears come into
my eyes. But I dasn't scratch. Then
it begun to itch on the inside.
Next I got to itching underneath. I
didn't know how I was going to set
still. This miserableness went on as
much as six or seven minutes; but it
seemed a sight longer than that. I was
itching in eleven different
places now. I reckoned I couldn't
stand it more'n a minute longer, but I
set my teeth hard and got ready to try.
Just then Jim begun to breathe
heavy; next he begun to snore—and
then I was pretty soon comfortable
again.
Tom he made a sign to me—kind of
a little noise with his mouth—and we
went creeping away on our hands and
knees. When we was ten foot off Tom
whispered to me, and wanted to tie Jim
to the tree for fun. But I said
no; he might wake and make a
disturbance, and then they'd find out I
warn't in. Then Tom said he hadn't got
candles enough, and he would slip
in the kitchen and get some more. I
didn't want him to try. I said Jim
might wake up and come. But Tom wanted
to resk it; so we slid in there
and got three candles, and Tom laid
five cents on the table for pay.
Then we got out, and I was in a sweat
to get away; but nothing would do
Tom but he must crawl to where Jim was,
on his hands and knees, and play
something on him. I waited, and it
seemed a good while, everything was
so still and lonesome.
As soon as Tom was back we cut along
the path, around the garden fence,
and by and by fetched up on the steep
top of the hill the other side of
the house. Tom said he slipped Jim's
hat off of his head and hung it on
a limb right over him, and Jim stirred
a little, but he didn't wake.
Afterwards Jim said the witches be
witched him and put him in a trance,
and rode him all over the State, and
then set him under the trees again,
and hung his hat on a limb to show who
done it. And next time Jim told
it he said they rode him down to New
Orleans; and, after that, every time
he told it he spread it more and more,
till by and by he said they rode
him all over the world, and tired him
most to death, and his back was all
over saddle-boils. Jim was monstrous
proud about it, and he got so he
wouldn't hardly notice the other
niggers. Niggers would come miles to
hear Jim tell about it, and he was more
looked up to than any nigger in
that country. Strange niggers would
stand with their mouths open and
look him all over, same as if he was a
wonder. Niggers is always talking
about witches in the dark by the
kitchen fire; but whenever one was
talking and letting on to know all
about such things, Jim would happen in
and say, "Hm! What you know 'bout
witches?" and that nigger was corked
up and had to take a back seat. Jim
always kept that five-center piece
round his neck with a string, and said
it was a charm the devil give to
him with his own hands, and told him he
could cure anybody with it and
fetch witches whenever he wanted to
just by saying something to it; but
he never told what it was he said to
it. Niggers would come from all
around there and give Jim anything they
had, just for a sight of that
five-center piece; but they wouldn't
touch it, because the devil had had
his hands on it. Jim was most ruined
for a servant, because he got stuck
up on account of having seen the devil
and been rode by witches.
Well, when Tom and me got to the edge
of the hilltop we looked away down
into the village and could see three or
four lights twinkling, where
there was sick folks, maybe; and the
stars over us was sparkling ever so
fine; and down by the village was the
river, a whole mile broad, and
awful still and grand. We went down
the hill and found Jo Harper and Ben
Rogers, and two or three more of the
boys, hid in the old tanyard. So we
unhitched a skiff and pulled down the
river two mile and a half, to the
big scar on the hillside, and went
ashore.
We went to a clump of bushes, and Tom
made everybody swear to keep the
secret, and then showed them a hole in
the hill, right in the thickest
part of the bushes. Then we lit the
candles, and crawled in on our hands
and knees. We went about two hundred
yards, and then the cave opened up.
Tom poked about amongst the passages,
and pretty soon ducked under a wall
where you wouldn't a noticed that there
was a hole. We went along a
narrow place and got into a kind of
room, all damp and sweaty and cold,
and there we stopped. Tom says:
"Now, we'll start this band of
robbers and call it Tom Sawyer's Gang.
Everybody that wants to join has got to
take an oath, and write his name
in blood."
Everybody was willing. So Tom got out
a sheet of paper that he had wrote
the oath on, and read it. It swore
every boy to stick to the band, and
never tell any of the secrets; and if
anybody done anything to any boy in
the band, whichever boy was ordered to
kill that person and his family
must do it, and he mustn't eat and he
mustn't sleep till he had killed
them and hacked a cross in their
breasts, which was the sign of the band.
And nobody that didn't belong to the
band could use that mark, and if he
did he must be sued; and if he done it
again he must be killed. And if
anybody that belonged to the band told
the secrets, he must have his
throat cut, and then have his carcass
burnt up and the ashes scattered
all around, and his name blotted off of
the list with blood and never
mentioned again by the gang, but have a
curse put on it and be forgot
forever.
Everybody said it was a real beautiful
oath, and asked Tom if he got it
out of his own head. He said, some of
it, but the rest was out of
pirate-books and robber-books, and
every gang that was high-toned had it.
Some thought it would be good to kill
the FAMILIES of boys that told the
secrets. Tom said it was a good idea,
so he took a pencil and wrote it
in. Then Ben Rogers says:
"Here's Huck Finn, he hain't got
no family; what you going to do 'bout
him?"
"Well, hain't he got a father?"
says Tom Sawyer.
"Yes, he's got a father, but you
can't never find him these days. He
used to lay drunk with the hogs in the
tanyard, but he hain't been seen
in these parts for a year or more."
They talked it over, and they was going
to rule me out, because they said
every boy must have a family or
somebody to kill, or else it wouldn't be
fair and square for the others. Well,
nobody could think of anything to
do—everybody was stumped, and set
still. I was most ready to cry; but
all at once I thought of a way, and so
I offered them Miss Watson—they
could kill her. Everybody said:
"Oh, she'll do. That's all right.
Huck can come in."
Then they all stuck a pin in their
fingers to get blood to sign with, and
I made my mark on the paper.
"Now," says Ben Rogers,
"what's the line of business of this Gang?"
"Nothing only robbery and murder,"
Tom said.
"But who are we going to
rob?—houses, or cattle, or—"
"Stuff! stealing cattle and such
things ain't robbery; it's burglary,"
says Tom Sawyer. "We ain't
burglars. That ain't no sort of style. We
are highwaymen. We stop stages and
carriages on the road, with masks on,
and kill the people and take their
watches and money."
"Must we always kill the people?"
"Oh, certainly. It's best. Some
authorities think different, but mostly
it's considered best to kill
them—except some that you bring to the cave
here, and keep them till they're
ransomed."
"Ransomed? What's that?"
"I don't know. But that's what
they do. I've seen it in books; and so
of course that's what we've got to do."
"But how can we do it if we don't
know what it is?"
"Why, blame it all, we've GOT to
do it. Don't I tell you it's in the
books? Do you want to go to doing
different from what's in the books,
and get things all muddled up?"
"Oh, that's all very fine to SAY,
Tom Sawyer, but how in the nation are
these fellows going to be ransomed if
we don't know how to do it to them?
—that's the thing I want to get
at. Now, what do you reckon it is?"
"Well, I don't know. But per'aps
if we keep them till they're ransomed,
it means that we keep them till they're
dead."
"Now, that's something LIKE.
That'll answer. Why couldn't you said that
before? We'll keep them till they're
ransomed to death; and a bothersome
lot they'll be, too—eating up
everything, and always trying to get
loose."
"How you talk, Ben Rogers. How
can they get loose when there's a guard
over them, ready to shoot them down if
they move a peg?"
"A guard! Well, that IS good. So
somebody's got to set up all night and
never get any sleep, just so as to
watch them. I think that's
foolishness. Why can't a body take a
club and ransom them as soon as they
get here?"
"Because it ain't in the books
so—that's why. Now, Ben Rogers, do you
want to do things regular, or don't
you?—that's the idea. Don't you
reckon that the people that made the
books knows what's the correct thing
to do? Do you reckon YOU can learn 'em
anything? Not by a good deal.
No, sir, we'll just go on and ransom
them in the regular way."
"All right. I don't mind; but I
say it's a fool way, anyhow. Say, do we
kill the women, too?"
"Well, Ben Rogers, if I was as
ignorant as you I wouldn't let on. Kill
the women? No; nobody ever saw
anything in the books like that. You
fetch them to the cave, and you're
always as polite as pie to them; and
by and by they fall in love with you,
and never want to go home any
more."
"Well, if that's the way I'm
agreed, but I don't take no stock in it.
Mighty soon we'll have the cave so
cluttered up with women, and fellows
waiting to be ransomed, that there
won't be no place for the robbers.
But go ahead, I ain't got nothing to
say."
Little Tommy Barnes was asleep now, and
when they waked him up he was
scared, and cried, and said he wanted
to go home to his ma, and didn't
want to be a robber any more.
So they all made fun of him, and called
him cry-baby, and that made him
mad, and he said he would go straight
and tell all the secrets. But Tom
give him five cents to keep quiet, and
said we would all go home and meet
next week, and rob somebody and kill
some people.
Ben Rogers said he couldn't get out
much, only Sundays, and so he wanted
to begin next Sunday; but all the boys
said it would be wicked to do it
on Sunday, and that settled the thing.
They agreed to get together and
fix a day as soon as they could, and
then we elected Tom Sawyer first
captain and Jo Harper second captain of
the Gang, and so started home.
I clumb up the shed and crept into my
window just before day was
breaking. My new clothes was all
greased up and clayey, and I was
dog-tired.
CHAPTER III.
WELL, I got a good going-over in the
morning from old Miss Watson on
account of my clothes; but the widow
she didn't scold, but only cleaned
off the grease and clay, and looked so
sorry that I thought I would
behave awhile if I could. Then Miss
Watson she took me in the closet and
prayed, but nothing come of it. She
told me to pray every day, and
whatever I asked for I would get it.
But it warn't so. I tried it.
Once I got a fish-line, but no hooks.
It warn't any good to me without
hooks. I tried for the hooks three or
four times, but somehow I couldn't
make it work. By and by, one day, I
asked Miss Watson to try for me, but
she said I was a fool. She never told
me why, and I couldn't make it out
no way.
I set down one time back in the woods,
and had a long think about it. I
says to myself, if a body can get
anything they pray for, why don't
Deacon Winn get back the money he lost
on pork? Why can't the widow get
back her silver snuffbox that was
stole? Why can't Miss Watson fat up?
No, says I to my self, there ain't
nothing in it. I went and told the
widow about it, and she said the thing
a body could get by praying for it
was "spiritual gifts." This
was too many for me, but she told me what
she meant—I must help other
people, and do everything I could for other
people, and look out for them all the
time, and never think about myself.
This was including Miss Watson, as I
took it. I went out in the woods
and turned it over in my mind a long
time, but I couldn't see no
advantage about it—except for the
other people; so at last I reckoned I
wouldn't worry about it any more, but
just let it go. Sometimes the
widow would take me one side and talk
about Providence in a way to make a
body's mouth water; but maybe next day
Miss Watson would take hold and
knock it all down again. I judged I
could see that there was two
Providences, and a poor chap would
stand considerable show with the
widow's Providence, but if Miss
Watson's got him there warn't no help for
him any more. I thought it all out,
and reckoned I would belong to the
widow's if he wanted me, though I
couldn't make out how he was a-going to
be any better off then than what he was
before, seeing I was so ignorant,
and so kind of low-down and ornery.
Pap he hadn't been seen for more than a
year, and that was comfortable
for me; I didn't want to see him no
more. He used to always whale me
when he was sober and could get his
hands on me; though I used to take to
the woods most of the time when he was
around. Well, about this time he
was found in the river drownded, about
twelve mile above town, so people
said. They judged it was him, anyway;
said this drownded man was just
his size, and was ragged, and had
uncommon long hair, which was all like
pap; but they couldn't make nothing out
of the face, because it had been
in the water so long it warn't much
like a face at all. They said he was
floating on his back in the water.
They took him and buried him on the
bank. But I warn't comfortable long,
because I happened to think of
something. I knowed mighty well that a
drownded man don't float on his
back, but on his face. So I knowed,
then, that this warn't pap, but a
woman dressed up in a man's clothes.
So I was uncomfortable again. I
judged the old man would turn up again
by and by, though I wished he
wouldn't.
We played robber now and then about a
month, and then I resigned. All
the boys did. We hadn't robbed nobody,
hadn't killed any people, but
only just pretended. We used to hop
out of the woods and go charging
down on hog-drivers and women in carts
taking garden stuff to market, but
we never hived any of them. Tom Sawyer
called the hogs "ingots," and he
called the turnips and stuff "julery,"
and we would go to the cave and
powwow over what we had done, and how
many people we had killed and
marked. But I couldn't see no profit
in it. One time Tom sent a boy to
run about town with a blazing stick,
which he called a slogan (which was
the sign for the Gang to get together),
and then he said he had got
secret news by his spies that next day
a whole parcel of Spanish
merchants and rich A-rabs was going to
camp in Cave Hollow with two
hundred elephants, and six hundred
camels, and over a thousand "sumter"
mules, all loaded down with di'monds,
and they didn't have only a guard
of four hundred soldiers, and so we
would lay in ambuscade, as he called
it, and kill the lot and scoop the
things. He said we must slick up our
swords and guns, and get ready. He
never could go after even a
turnip-cart but he must have the swords
and guns all scoured up for it,
though they was only lath and
broomsticks, and you might scour at them
till you rotted, and then they warn't
worth a mouthful of ashes more than
what they was before. I didn't believe
we could lick such a crowd of
Spaniards and A-rabs, but I wanted to
see the camels and elephants, so I
was on hand next day, Saturday, in the
ambuscade; and when we got the
word we rushed out of the woods and
down the hill. But there warn't no
Spaniards and A-rabs, and there warn't
no camels nor no elephants. It
warn't anything but a Sunday-school
picnic, and only a primer-class at
that. We busted it up, and chased the
children up the hollow; but we
never got anything but some doughnuts
and jam, though Ben Rogers got a
rag doll, and Jo Harper got a hymn-book
and a tract; and then the teacher
charged in, and made us drop everything
and cut. I didn't see no
di'monds, and I told Tom Sawyer so. He
said there was loads of them
there, anyway; and he said there was
A-rabs there, too, and elephants and
things. I said, why couldn't we see
them, then? He said if I warn't so
ignorant, but had read a book called
Don Quixote, I would know without
asking. He said it was all done by
enchantment. He said there was
hundreds of soldiers there, and
elephants and treasure, and so on, but we
had enemies which he called magicians;
and they had turned the whole
thing into an infant Sunday-school,
just out of spite. I said, all
right; then the thing for us to do was
to go for the magicians. Tom
Sawyer said I was a numskull.
"Why," said he, "a
magician could call up a lot of genies, and they would
hash you up like nothing before you
could say Jack Robinson. They are as
tall as a tree and as big around as a
church."
"Well," I says, "s'pose
we got some genies to help US—can't we lick the
other crowd then?"
"How you going to get them?"
"I don't know. How do THEY get
them?"
"Why, they rub an old tin lamp or
an iron ring, and then the genies come
tearing in, with the thunder and
lightning a-ripping around and the smoke
a-rolling, and everything they're told
to do they up and do it. They
don't think nothing of pulling a
shot-tower up by the roots, and belting
a Sunday-school superintendent over the
head with it—or any other man."
"Who makes them tear around so?"
"Why, whoever rubs the lamp or the
ring. They belong to whoever rubs the
lamp or the ring, and they've got to do
whatever he says. If he tells
them to build a palace forty miles long
out of di'monds, and fill it full
of chewing-gum, or whatever you want,
and fetch an emperor's daughter
from China for you to marry, they've
got to do it—and they've got to do
it before sun-up next morning, too.
And more: they've got to waltz that
palace around over the country wherever
you want it, you understand."
"Well," says I, "I think
they are a pack of flat-heads for not keeping
the palace themselves 'stead of fooling
them away like that. And what's
more—if I was one of them I would
see a man in Jericho before I would
drop my business and come to him for
the rubbing of an old tin lamp."
"How you talk, Huck Finn. Why,
you'd HAVE to come when he rubbed it,
whether you wanted to or not."
"What! and I as high as a tree and
as big as a church? All right, then;
I WOULD come; but I lay I'd make that
man climb the highest tree there
was in the country."
"Shucks, it ain't no use to talk
to you, Huck Finn. You don't seem to
know anything, somehow—perfect
saphead."
I thought all this over for two or
three days, and then I reckoned I
would see if there was anything in it.
I got an old tin lamp and an iron
ring, and went out in the woods and
rubbed and rubbed till I sweat like
an Injun, calculating to build a palace
and sell it; but it warn't no
use, none of the genies come. So then
I judged that all that stuff was
only just one of Tom Sawyer's lies. I
reckoned he believed in the A-rabs
and the elephants, but as for me I
think different. It had all the marks
of a Sunday-school.
CHAPTER IV.
WELL, three or four months run along,
and it was well into the winter
now. I had been to school most all the
time and could spell and read and
write just a little, and could say the
multiplication table up to six
times seven is thirty-five, and I don't
reckon I could ever get any
further than that if I was to live
forever. I don't take no stock in
mathematics, anyway.
At first I hated the school, but by and
by I got so I could stand it.
Whenever I got uncommon tired I played
hookey, and the hiding I got next
day done me good and cheered me up. So
the longer I went to school the
easier it got to be. I was getting
sort of used to the widow's ways,
too, and they warn't so raspy on me.
Living in a house and sleeping in a
bed pulled on me pretty tight mostly,
but before the cold weather I used
to slide out and sleep in the woods
sometimes, and so that was a rest to
me. I liked the old ways best, but I
was getting so I liked the new
ones, too, a little bit. The widow said
I was coming along slow but sure,
and doing very satisfactory. She said
she warn't ashamed of me.
One morning I happened to turn over the
salt-cellar at breakfast. I
reached for some of it as quick as I
could to throw over my left shoulder
and keep off the bad luck, but Miss
Watson was in ahead of me, and
crossed me off. She says, "Take
your hands away, Huckleberry; what a mess
you are always making!" The widow
put in a good word for me, but that
warn't going to keep off the bad luck,
I knowed that well enough. I
started out, after breakfast, feeling
worried and shaky, and wondering
where it was going to fall on me, and
what it was going to be. There is
ways to keep off some kinds of bad
luck, but this wasn't one of them
kind; so I never tried to do anything,
but just poked along low-spirited
and on the watch-out.
I went down to the front garden and
clumb over the stile where you go
through the high board fence. There
was an inch of new snow on the
ground, and I seen somebody's tracks.
They had come up from the quarry
and stood around the stile a while, and
then went on around the garden
fence. It was funny they hadn't come
in, after standing around so. I
couldn't make it out. It was very
curious, somehow. I was going to
follow around, but I stooped down to
look at the tracks first. I didn't
notice anything at first, but next I
did. There was a cross in the left
boot-heel made with big nails, to keep
off the devil.
I was up in a second and shinning down
the hill. I looked over my
shoulder every now and then, but I
didn't see nobody. I was at Judge
Thatcher's as quick as I could get
there. He said:
"Why, my boy, you are all out of
breath. Did you come for your
interest?"
"No, sir," I says; "is
there some for me?"
"Oh, yes, a half-yearly is in last
night—over a hundred and fifty
dollars. Quite a fortune for you. You
had better let me invest it along
with your six thousand, because if you
take it you'll spend it."
"No, sir," I says, "I
don't want to spend it. I don't want it at all
—nor the six thousand, nuther. I
want you to take it; I want to give it
to you—the six thousand and all."
He looked surprised. He couldn't seem
to make it out. He says:
"Why, what can you mean, my boy?"
I says, "Don't you ask me no
questions about it, please. You'll take it
—won't you?"
He says:
"Well, I'm puzzled. Is something
the matter?"
"Please take it," says I,
"and don't ask me nothing—then I won't have to
tell no lies."
He studied a while, and then he says:
"Oho-o! I think I see. You want
to SELL all your property to me—not
give it. That's the correct idea."
Then he wrote something on a paper and
read it over, and says:
"There; you see it says 'for a
consideration.' That means I have bought
it of you and paid you for it. Here's
a dollar for you. Now you sign
it."
So I signed it, and left.
Miss Watson's nigger, Jim, had a
hair-ball as big as your fist, which had
been took out of the fourth stomach of
an ox, and he used to do magic
with it. He said there was a spirit
inside of it, and it knowed
everything. So I went to him that
night and told him pap was here again,
for I found his tracks in the snow.
What I wanted to know was, what he
was going to do, and was he going to
stay? Jim got out his hair-ball and
said something over it, and then he
held it up and dropped it on the
floor. It fell pretty solid, and only
rolled about an inch. Jim tried
it again, and then another time, and it
acted just the same. Jim got
down on his knees, and put his ear
against it and listened. But it
warn't no use; he said it wouldn't
talk. He said sometimes it wouldn't
talk without money. I told him I had
an old slick counterfeit quarter
that warn't no good because the brass
showed through the silver a little,
and it wouldn't pass nohow, even if the
brass didn't show, because it was
so slick it felt greasy, and so that
would tell on it every time. (I
reckoned I wouldn't say nothing about
the dollar I got from the judge.) I
said it was pretty bad money, but maybe
the hair-ball would take it,
because maybe it wouldn't know the
difference. Jim smelt it and bit it
and rubbed it, and said he would manage
so the hair-ball would think it
was good. He said he would split open
a raw Irish potato and stick the
quarter in between and keep it there
all night, and next morning you
couldn't see no brass, and it wouldn't
feel greasy no more, and so
anybody in town would take it in a
minute, let alone a hair-ball. Well,
I knowed a potato would do that before,
but I had forgot it.
Jim put the quarter under the
hair-ball, and got down and listened again.
This time he said the hair-ball was all
right. He said it would tell my
whole fortune if I wanted it to. I
says, go on. So the hair-ball talked
to Jim, and Jim told it to me. He
says:
"Yo' ole father doan' know yit
what he's a-gwyne to do. Sometimes he
spec he'll go 'way, en den agin he spec
he'll stay. De bes' way is to
res' easy en let de ole man take his
own way. Dey's two angels hoverin'
roun' 'bout him. One uv 'em is white
en shiny, en t'other one is black.
De white one gits him to go right a
little while, den de black one sail
in en bust it all up. A body can't
tell yit which one gwyne to fetch him
at de las'. But you is all right. You
gwyne to have considable trouble
in yo' life, en considable joy.
Sometimes you gwyne to git hurt, en
sometimes you gwyne to git sick; but
every time you's gwyne to git well
agin. Dey's two gals flyin' 'bout you
in yo' life. One uv 'em's light
en t'other one is dark. One is rich en
t'other is po'. You's gwyne to
marry de po' one fust en de rich one by
en by. You wants to keep 'way
fum de water as much as you kin, en
don't run no resk, 'kase it's down in
de bills dat you's gwyne to git hung."
When I lit my candle and went up to my
room that night there sat pap—his
own self!
CHAPTER V.
I HAD shut the door to. Then I turned
around and there he was. I used
to be scared of him all the time, he
tanned me so much. I reckoned I was
scared now, too; but in a minute I see
I was mistaken—that is, after the
first jolt, as you may say, when my
breath sort of hitched, he being so
unexpected; but right away after I see
I warn't scared of him worth
bothring about.
He was most fifty, and he looked it.
His hair was long and tangled and
greasy, and hung down, and you could
see his eyes shining through like he
was behind vines. It was all black, no
gray; so was his long, mixed-up
whiskers. There warn't no color in his
face, where his face showed; it
was white; not like another man's
white, but a white to make a body sick,
a white to make a body's flesh crawl—a
tree-toad white, a fish-belly
white. As for his clothes—just
rags, that was all. He had one ankle
resting on t'other knee; the boot on
that foot was busted, and two of his
toes stuck through, and he worked them
now and then. His hat was laying
on the floor—an old black slouch
with the top caved in, like a lid.
I stood a-looking at him; he set there
a-looking at me, with his chair
tilted back a little. I set the candle
down. I noticed the window was
up; so he had clumb in by the shed. He
kept a-looking me all over. By
and by he says:
"Starchy clothes—very. You
think you're a good deal of a big-bug, DON'T
you?"
"Maybe I am, maybe I ain't,"
I says.
"Don't you give me none o' your
lip," says he. "You've put on
considerable many frills since I been
away. I'll take you down a peg
before I get done with you. You're
educated, too, they say—can read and
write. You think you're better'n your
father, now, don't you, because he
can't? I'LL take it out of you. Who
told you you might meddle with such
hifalut'n foolishness, hey?—who
told you you could?"
"The widow. She told me."
"The widow, hey?—and who
told the widow she could put in her shovel
about a thing that ain't none of her
business?"
"Nobody never told her."
"Well, I'll learn her how to
meddle. And looky here—you drop that
school, you hear? I'll learn people to
bring up a boy to put on airs
over his own father and let on to be
better'n what HE is. You lemme
catch you fooling around that school
again, you hear? Your mother
couldn't read, and she couldn't write,
nuther, before she died. None of
the family couldn't before THEY died.
I can't; and here you're
a-swelling yourself up like this. I
ain't the man to stand it—you hear?
Say, lemme hear you read."
I took up a book and begun something
about General Washington and the
wars. When I'd read about a half a
minute, he fetched the book a whack
with his hand and knocked it across the
house. He says:
"It's so. You can do it. I had
my doubts when you told me. Now looky
here; you stop that putting on frills.
I won't have it. I'll lay for
you, my smarty; and if I catch you
about that school I'll tan you good.
First you know you'll get religion,
too. I never see such a son."
He took up a little blue and yaller
picture of some cows and a boy, and
says:
"What's this?"
"It's something they give me for
learning my lessons good."
He tore it up, and says:
"I'll give you something
better—I'll give you a cowhide."
He set there a-mumbling and a-growling
a minute, and then he says:
"AIN'T you a sweet-scented dandy,
though? A bed; and bedclothes; and a
look'n'-glass; and a piece of carpet on
the floor—and your own father
got to sleep with the hogs in the
tanyard. I never see such a son. I
bet I'll take some o' these frills out
o' you before I'm done with you.
Why, there ain't no end to your
airs—they say you're rich. Hey?—how's
that?"
"They lie—that's how."
"Looky here—mind how you
talk to me; I'm a-standing about all I can
stand now—so don't gimme no sass.
I've been in town two days, and I
hain't heard nothing but about you
bein' rich. I heard about it away
down the river, too. That's why I
come. You git me that money
to-morrow—I want it."
"I hain't got no money."
"It's a lie. Judge Thatcher's got
it. You git it. I want it."
"I hain't got no money, I tell
you. You ask Judge Thatcher; he'll tell
you the same."
"All right. I'll ask him; and
I'll make him pungle, too, or I'll know
the reason why. Say, how much you got
in your pocket? I want it."
"I hain't got only a dollar, and I
want that to—"
"It don't make no difference what
you want it for—you just shell it
out."
He took it and bit it to see if it was
good, and then he said he was
going down town to get some whisky;
said he hadn't had a drink all day.
When he had got out on the shed he put
his head in again, and cussed me
for putting on frills and trying to be
better than him; and when I
reckoned he was gone he come back and
put his head in again, and told me
to mind about that school, because he
was going to lay for me and lick me
if I didn't drop that.
Next day he was drunk, and he went to
Judge Thatcher's and bullyragged
him, and tried to make him give up the
money; but he couldn't, and then
he swore he'd make the law force him.
The judge and the widow went to law to
get the court to take me away from
him and let one of them be my guardian;
but it was a new judge that had
just come, and he didn't know the old
man; so he said courts mustn't
interfere and separate families if they
could help it; said he'd druther
not take a child away from its father.
So Judge Thatcher and the widow
had to quit on the business.
That pleased the old man till he
couldn't rest. He said he'd cowhide me
till I was black and blue if I didn't
raise some money for him. I
borrowed three dollars from Judge
Thatcher, and pap took it and got
drunk, and went a-blowing around and
cussing and whooping and carrying
on; and he kept it up all over town,
with a tin pan, till most midnight;
then they jailed him, and next day they
had him before court, and jailed
him again for a week. But he said HE
was satisfied; said he was boss of
his son, and he'd make it warm for HIM.
When he got out the new judge said he
was a-going to make a man of him.
So he took him to his own house, and
dressed him up clean and nice, and
had him to breakfast and dinner and
supper with the family, and was just
old pie to him, so to speak. And after
supper he talked to him about
temperance and such things till the old
man cried, and said he'd been a
fool, and fooled away his life; but now
he was a-going to turn over a new
leaf and be a man nobody wouldn't be
ashamed of, and he hoped the judge
would help him and not look down on
him. The judge said he could hug him
for them words; so he cried, and his
wife she cried again; pap said he'd
been a man that had always been
misunderstood before, and the judge said
he believed it. The old man said that
what a man wanted that was down
was sympathy, and the judge said it was
so; so they cried again. And
when it was bedtime the old man rose up
and held out his hand, and says:
"Look at it, gentlemen and ladies
all; take a-hold of it; shake it.
There's a hand that was the hand of a
hog; but it ain't so no more; it's
the hand of a man that's started in on
a new life, and'll die before
he'll go back. You mark them
words—don't forget I said them. It's a
clean hand now; shake it—don't be
afeard."
So they shook it, one after the other,
all around, and cried. The
judge's wife she kissed it. Then the
old man he signed a pledge—made
his mark. The judge said it was the
holiest time on record, or something
like that. Then they tucked the old man
into a beautiful room, which was
the spare room, and in the night some
time he got powerful thirsty and
clumb out on to the porch-roof and slid
down a stanchion and traded his
new coat for a jug of forty-rod, and
clumb back again and had a good old
time; and towards daylight he crawled
out again, drunk as a fiddler, and
rolled off the porch and broke his left
arm in two places, and was most
froze to death when somebody found him
after sun-up. And when they come
to look at that spare room they had to
take soundings before they could
navigate it.
The judge he felt kind of sore. He
said he reckoned a body could reform
the old man with a shotgun, maybe, but
he didn't know no other way.
CHAPTER VI.
WELL, pretty soon the old man was up
and around again, and then he went
for Judge Thatcher in the courts to
make him give up that money, and he
went for me, too, for not stopping
school. He catched me a couple of
times and thrashed me, but I went to
school just the same, and dodged him
or outrun him most of the time. I
didn't want to go to school much
before, but I reckoned I'd go now to
spite pap. That law trial was a
slow business—appeared like they
warn't ever going to get started on
it; so every now and then I'd borrow
two or three dollars off of the
judge for him, to keep from getting a
cowhiding. Every time he got money
he got drunk; and every time he got
drunk he raised Cain around town; and
every time he raised Cain he got
jailed. He was just suited—this kind
of thing was right in his line.
He got to hanging around the widow's
too much and so she told him at last
that if he didn't quit using around
there she would make trouble for him.
Well, WASN'T he mad? He said he would
show who was Huck Finn's boss. So
he watched out for me one day in the
spring, and catched me, and took me
up the river about three mile in a
skiff, and crossed over to the
Illinois shore where it was woody and
there warn't no houses but an old
log hut in a place where the timber was
so thick you couldn't find it if
you didn't know where it was.
He kept me with him all the time, and I
never got a chance to run off.
We lived in that old cabin, and he
always locked the door and put the key
under his head nights. He had a gun
which he had stole, I reckon, and we
fished and hunted, and that was what we
lived on. Every little while he
locked me in and went down to the
store, three miles, to the ferry, and
traded fish and game for whisky, and
fetched it home and got drunk and
had a good time, and licked me. The
widow she found out where I was by
and by, and she sent a man over to try
to get hold of me; but pap drove
him off with the gun, and it warn't
long after that till I was used to
being where I was, and liked it—all
but the cowhide part.
It was kind of lazy and jolly, laying
off comfortable all day, smoking
and fishing, and no books nor study.
Two months or more run along, and
my clothes got to be all rags and dirt,
and I didn't see how I'd ever got
to like it so well at the widow's,
where you had to wash, and eat on a
plate, and comb up, and go to bed and
get up regular, and be forever
bothering over a book, and have old
Miss Watson pecking at you all the
time. I didn't want to go back no
more. I had stopped cussing, because
the widow didn't like it; but now I
took to it again because pap hadn't
no objections. It was pretty good
times up in the woods there, take it
all around.
But by and by pap got too handy with
his hick'ry, and I couldn't stand
it. I was all over welts. He got to
going away so much, too, and locking
me in. Once he locked me in and was
gone three days. It was dreadful
lonesome. I judged he had got drowned,
and I wasn't ever going to get
out any more. I was scared. I made up
my mind I would fix up some way
to leave there. I had tried to get out
of that cabin many a time, but I
couldn't find no way. There warn't a
window to it big enough for a dog
to get through. I couldn't get up the
chimbly; it was too narrow. The
door was thick, solid oak slabs. Pap
was pretty careful not to leave a
knife or anything in the cabin when he
was away; I reckon I had hunted
the place over as much as a hundred
times; well, I was most all the time
at it, because it was about the only
way to put in the time. But this
time I found something at last; I found
an old rusty wood-saw without any
handle; it was laid in between a rafter
and the clapboards of the roof.
I greased it up and went to work.
There was an old horse-blanket nailed
against the logs at the far end of the
cabin behind the table, to keep
the wind from blowing through the
chinks and putting the candle out. I
got under the table and raised the
blanket, and went to work to saw a
section of the big bottom log out—big
enough to let me through. Well,
it was a good long job, but I was
getting towards the end of it when I
heard pap's gun in the woods. I got
rid of the signs of my work, and
dropped the blanket and hid my saw, and
pretty soon pap come in.
Pap warn't in a good humor—so he
was his natural self. He said he was
down town, and everything was going
wrong. His lawyer said he reckoned
he would win his lawsuit and get the
money if they ever got started on
the trial; but then there was ways to
put it off a long time, and Judge
Thatcher knowed how to do it. And he
said people allowed there'd be
another trial to get me away from him
and give me to the widow for my
guardian, and they guessed it would win
this time. This shook me up
considerable, because I didn't want to
go back to the widow's any more
and be so cramped up and sivilized, as
they called it. Then the old man
got to cussing, and cussed everything
and everybody he could think of,
and then cussed them all over again to
make sure he hadn't skipped any,
and after that he polished off with a
kind of a general cuss all round,
including a considerable parcel of
people which he didn't know the names
of, and so called them what's-his-name
when he got to them, and went
right along with his cussing.
He said he would like to see the widow
get me. He said he would watch
out, and if they tried to come any such
game on him he knowed of a place
six or seven mile off to stow me in,
where they might hunt till they
dropped and they couldn't find me.
That made me pretty uneasy again, but
only for a minute; I reckoned I
wouldn't stay on hand till he got that
chance.
The old man made me go to the skiff and
fetch the things he had got.
There was a fifty-pound sack of corn
meal, and a side of bacon,
ammunition, and a four-gallon jug of
whisky, and an old book and two
newspapers for wadding, besides some
tow. I toted up a load, and went
back and set down on the bow of the
skiff to rest. I thought it all
over, and I reckoned I would walk off
with the gun and some lines, and
take to the woods when I run away. I
guessed I wouldn't stay in one
place, but just tramp right across the
country, mostly night times, and
hunt and fish to keep alive, and so get
so far away that the old man nor
the widow couldn't ever find me any
more. I judged I would saw out and
leave that night if pap got drunk
enough, and I reckoned he would. I got
so full of it I didn't notice how long
I was staying till the old man
hollered and asked me whether I was
asleep or drownded.
I got the things all up to the cabin,
and then it was about dark. While
I was cooking supper the old man took a
swig or two and got sort of
warmed up, and went to ripping again.
He had been drunk over in town,
and laid in the gutter all night, and
he was a sight to look at. A body
would a thought he was Adam—he
was just all mud. Whenever his liquor
begun to work he most always went for
the govment, this time he says:
"Call this a govment! why, just
look at it and see what it's like.
Here's the law a-standing ready to take
a man's son away from him—a
man's own son, which he has had all the
trouble and all the anxiety and
all the expense of raising. Yes, just
as that man has got that son
raised at last, and ready to go to work
and begin to do suthin' for HIM
and give him a rest, the law up and
goes for him. And they call THAT
govment! That ain't all, nuther. The
law backs that old Judge Thatcher
up and helps him to keep me out o' my
property. Here's what the law
does: The law takes a man worth six
thousand dollars and up'ards, and
jams him into an old trap of a cabin
like this, and lets him go round in
clothes that ain't fitten for a hog.
They call that govment! A man can't
get his rights in a govment like this.
Sometimes I've a mighty notion to
just leave the country for good and
all. Yes, and I TOLD 'em so; I told
old Thatcher so to his face. Lots of
'em heard me, and can tell what I
said. Says I, for two cents I'd leave
the blamed country and never come
a-near it agin. Them's the very words.
I says look at my hat—if you
call it a hat—but the lid raises
up and the rest of it goes down till
it's below my chin, and then it ain't
rightly a hat at all, but more like
my head was shoved up through a jint o'
stove-pipe. Look at it, says I
—such a hat for me to wear—one
of the wealthiest men in this town if I
could git my rights.
"Oh, yes, this is a wonderful
govment, wonderful. Why, looky here.
There was a free nigger there from
Ohio—a mulatter, most as white as a
white man. He had the whitest shirt on
you ever see, too, and the
shiniest hat; and there ain't a man in
that town that's got as fine
clothes as what he had; and he had a
gold watch and chain, and a
silver-headed cane—the awfulest
old gray-headed nabob in the State. And
what do you think? They said he was a
p'fessor in a college, and could
talk all kinds of languages, and knowed
everything. And that ain't the
wust. They said he could VOTE when he
was at home. Well, that let me
out. Thinks I, what is the country
a-coming to? It was 'lection day, and
I was just about to go and vote myself
if I warn't too drunk to get
there; but when they told me there was
a State in this country where
they'd let that nigger vote, I drawed
out. I says I'll never vote agin.
Them's the very words I said; they all
heard me; and the country may rot
for all me—I'll never vote agin
as long as I live. And to see the cool
way of that nigger—why, he
wouldn't a give me the road if I hadn't
shoved him out o' the way. I says to
the people, why ain't this nigger
put up at auction and sold?—that's
what I want to know. And what do you
reckon they said? Why, they said he
couldn't be sold till he'd been in
the State six months, and he hadn't
been there that long yet. There,
now—that's a specimen. They call
that a govment that can't sell a free
nigger till he's been in the State six
months. Here's a govment that
calls itself a govment, and lets on to
be a govment, and thinks it is a
govment, and yet's got to set
stock-still for six whole months before it
can take a hold of a prowling,
thieving, infernal, white-shirted free
nigger, and—"
Pap was agoing on so he never noticed
where his old limber legs was
taking him to, so he went head over
heels over the tub of salt pork and
barked both shins, and the rest of his
speech was all the hottest kind of
language—mostly hove at the
nigger and the govment, though he give the
tub some, too, all along, here and
there. He hopped around the cabin
considerable, first on one leg and then
on the other, holding first one
shin and then the other one, and at
last he let out with his left foot
all of a sudden and fetched the tub a
rattling kick. But it warn't good
judgment, because that was the boot
that had a couple of his toes leaking
out of the front end of it; so now he
raised a howl that fairly made a
body's hair raise, and down he went in
the dirt, and rolled there, and
held his toes; and the cussing he done
then laid over anything he had
ever done previous. He said so his own
self afterwards. He had heard
old Sowberry Hagan in his best days,
and he said it laid over him, too;
but I reckon that was sort of piling it
on, maybe.
After supper pap took the jug, and said
he had enough whisky there for
two drunks and one delirium tremens.
That was always his word. I judged
he would be blind drunk in about an
hour, and then I would steal the key,
or saw myself out, one or t'other. He
drank and drank, and tumbled down
on his blankets by and by; but luck
didn't run my way. He didn't go
sound asleep, but was uneasy. He
groaned and moaned and thrashed around
this way and that for a long time. At
last I got so sleepy I couldn't
keep my eyes open all I could do, and
so before I knowed what I was about
I was sound asleep, and the candle
burning.
I don't know how long I was asleep, but
all of a sudden there was an
awful scream and I was up. There was
pap looking wild, and skipping
around every which way and yelling
about snakes. He said they was
crawling up his legs; and then he would
give a jump and scream, and say
one had bit him on the cheek—but
I couldn't see no snakes. He started
and run round and round the cabin,
hollering "Take him off! take him off!
he's biting me on the neck!" I
never see a man look so wild in the eyes.
Pretty soon he was all fagged out, and
fell down panting; then he rolled
over and over wonderful fast, kicking
things every which way, and
striking and grabbing at the air with
his hands, and screaming and saying
there was devils a-hold of him. He
wore out by and by, and laid still a
while, moaning. Then he laid stiller,
and didn't make a sound. I could
hear the owls and the wolves away off
in the woods, and it seemed
terrible still. He was laying over by
the corner. By and by he raised up
part way and listened, with his head to
one side. He says, very low:
"Tramp—tramp—tramp;
that's the dead; tramp—tramp—tramp; they're
coming after me; but I won't go. Oh,
they're here! don't touch me
—don't! hands off—they're
cold; let go. Oh, let a poor devil alone!"
Then he went down on all fours and
crawled off, begging them to let him
alone, and he rolled himself up in his
blanket and wallowed in under the
old pine table, still a-begging; and
then he went to crying. I could
hear him through the blanket.
By and by he rolled out and jumped up
on his feet looking wild, and he
see me and went for me. He chased me
round and round the place with a
clasp-knife, calling me the Angel of
Death, and saying he would kill me,
and then I couldn't come for him no
more. I begged, and told him I was
only Huck; but he laughed SUCH a
screechy laugh, and roared and cussed,
and kept on chasing me up. Once when I
turned short and dodged under his
arm he made a grab and got me by the
jacket between my shoulders, and I
thought I was gone; but I slid out of
the jacket quick as lightning, and
saved myself. Pretty soon he was all
tired out, and dropped down with his
back against the door, and said he
would rest a minute and then kill me.
He put his knife under him, and said he
would sleep and get strong, and
then he would see who was who.
So he dozed off pretty soon. By and by
I got the old split-bottom chair
and clumb up as easy as I could, not to
make any noise, and got down the
gun. I slipped the ramrod down it to
make sure it was loaded, then I
laid it across the turnip barrel,
pointing towards pap, and set down
behind it to wait for him to stir. And
how slow and still the time did
drag along.
CHAPTER VII.
"GIT up! What you 'bout?"
I opened my eyes and looked around,
trying to make out where I was. It
was after sun-up, and I had been sound
asleep. Pap was standing over me
looking sour and sick, too. He says:
"What you doin' with this gun?"
I judged he didn't know nothing about
what he had been doing, so I says:
"Somebody tried to get in, so I
was laying for him."
"Why didn't you roust me out?"
"Well, I tried to, but I couldn't;
I couldn't budge you."
"Well, all right. Don't stand
there palavering all day, but out with you
and see if there's a fish on the lines
for breakfast. I'll be along in a
minute."
He unlocked the door, and I cleared out
up the river-bank. I noticed
some pieces of limbs and such things
floating down, and a sprinkling of
bark; so I knowed the river had begun
to rise. I reckoned I would have
great times now if I was over at the
town. The June rise used to be
always luck for me; because as soon as
that rise begins here comes
cordwood floating down, and pieces of
log rafts—sometimes a dozen logs
together; so all you have to do is to
catch them and sell them to the
wood-yards and the sawmill.
I went along up the bank with one eye
out for pap and t'other one out for
what the rise might fetch along. Well,
all at once here comes a canoe;
just a beauty, too, about thirteen or
fourteen foot long, riding high
like a duck. I shot head-first off of
the bank like a frog, clothes and
all on, and struck out for the canoe.
I just expected there'd be
somebody laying down in it, because
people often done that to fool folks,
and when a chap had pulled a skiff out
most to it they'd raise up and
laugh at him. But it warn't so this
time. It was a drift-canoe sure
enough, and I clumb in and paddled her
ashore. Thinks I, the old man
will be glad when he sees this—she's
worth ten dollars. But when I
got to shore pap wasn't in sight yet,
and as I was running her into a
little creek like a gully, all hung
over with vines and willows, I struck
another idea: I judged I'd hide her
good, and then, 'stead of taking to
the woods when I run off, I'd go down
the river about fifty mile and camp
in one place for good, and not have
such a rough time tramping on foot.
It was pretty close to the shanty, and
I thought I heard the old man
coming all the time; but I got her hid;
and then I out and looked around
a bunch of willows, and there was the
old man down the path a piece just
drawing a bead on a bird with his gun.
So he hadn't seen anything.
When he got along I was hard at it
taking up a "trot" line. He abused me
a little for being so slow; but I told
him I fell in the river, and that
was what made me so long. I knowed he
would see I was wet, and then he
would be asking questions. We got five
catfish off the lines and went
home.
While we laid off after breakfast to
sleep up, both of us being about
wore out, I got to thinking that if I
could fix up some way to keep pap
and the widow from trying to follow me,
it would be a certainer thing
than trusting to luck to get far enough
off before they missed me; you
see, all kinds of things might happen.
Well, I didn't see no way for a
while, but by and by pap raised up a
minute to drink another barrel of
water, and he says:
"Another time a man comes
a-prowling round here you roust me out, you
hear? That man warn't here for no good.
I'd a shot him. Next time you
roust me out, you hear?"
Then he dropped down and went to sleep
again; but what he had been saying
give me the very idea I wanted. I says
to myself, I can fix it now so
nobody won't think of following me.
About twelve o'clock we turned out and
went along up the bank. The river
was coming up pretty fast, and lots of
driftwood going by on the rise.
By and by along comes part of a log
raft—nine logs fast together. We
went out with the skiff and towed it
ashore. Then we had dinner.
Anybody but pap would a waited and seen
the day through, so as to catch
more stuff; but that warn't pap's
style. Nine logs was enough for one
time; he must shove right over to town
and sell. So he locked me in and
took the skiff, and started off towing
the raft about half-past three. I
judged he wouldn't come back that
night. I waited till I reckoned he had
got a good start; then I out with my
saw, and went to work on that log
again. Before he was t'other side of
the river I was out of the hole;
him and his raft was just a speck on
the water away off yonder.
I took the sack of corn meal and took
it to where the canoe was hid, and
shoved the vines and branches apart and
put it in; then I done the same
with the side of bacon; then the
whisky-jug. I took all the coffee and
sugar there was, and all the
ammunition; I took the wadding; I took the
bucket and gourd; I took a dipper and a
tin cup, and my old saw and two
blankets, and the skillet and the
coffee-pot. I took fish-lines and
matches and other things—everything
that was worth a cent. I cleaned
out the place. I wanted an axe, but
there wasn't any, only the one out
at the woodpile, and I knowed why I was
going to leave that. I fetched
out the gun, and now I was done.
I had wore the ground a good deal
crawling out of the hole and dragging
out so many things. So I fixed that as
good as I could from the outside
by scattering dust on the place, which
covered up the smoothness and the
sawdust. Then I fixed the piece of log
back into its place, and put two
rocks under it and one against it to
hold it there, for it was bent up at
that place and didn't quite touch
ground. If you stood four or five foot
away and didn't know it was sawed, you
wouldn't never notice it; and
besides, this was the back of the
cabin, and it warn't likely anybody
would go fooling around there.
It was all grass clear to the canoe, so
I hadn't left a track. I
followed around to see. I stood on the
bank and looked out over the
river. All safe. So I took the gun
and went up a piece into the woods,
and was hunting around for some birds
when I see a wild pig; hogs soon
went wild in them bottoms after they
had got away from the prairie farms.
I shot this fellow and took him into
camp.
I took the axe and smashed in the door.
I beat it and hacked it
considerable a-doing it. I fetched the
pig in, and took him back nearly
to the table and hacked into his throat
with the axe, and laid him down
on the ground to bleed; I say ground
because it was ground—hard packed,
and no boards. Well, next I took an
old sack and put a lot of big rocks
in it—all I could drag—and
I started it from the pig, and dragged it
to the door and through the woods down
to the river and dumped it in, and
down it sunk, out of sight. You could
easy see that something had been
dragged over the ground. I did wish
Tom Sawyer was there; I knowed he
would take an interest in this kind of
business, and throw in the fancy
touches. Nobody could spread himself
like Tom Sawyer in such a thing as
that.
Well, last I pulled out some of my
hair, and blooded the axe good, and
stuck it on the back side, and slung
the axe in the corner. Then I took
up the pig and held him to my breast
with my jacket (so he couldn't drip)
till I got a good piece below the house
and then dumped him into the
river. Now I thought of something
else. So I went and got the bag of
meal and my old saw out of the canoe,
and fetched them to the house. I
took the bag to where it used to stand,
and ripped a hole in the bottom
of it with the saw, for there warn't no
knives and forks on the place
—pap done everything with his
clasp-knife about the cooking. Then I
carried the sack about a hundred yards
across the grass and through the
willows east of the house, to a shallow
lake that was five mile wide and
full of rushes—and ducks too, you
might say, in the season. There was a
slough or a creek leading out of it on
the other side that went miles
away, I don't know where, but it didn't
go to the river. The meal sifted
out and made a little track all the way
to the lake. I dropped pap's
whetstone there too, so as to look like
it had been done by accident.
Then I tied up the rip in the meal sack
with a string, so it wouldn't
leak no more, and took it and my saw to
the canoe again.
It was about dark now; so I dropped the
canoe down the river under some
willows that hung over the bank, and
waited for the moon to rise. I made
fast to a willow; then I took a bite to
eat, and by and by laid down in
the canoe to smoke a pipe and lay out a
plan. I says to myself, they'll
follow the track of that sackful of
rocks to the shore and then drag the
river for me. And they'll follow that
meal track to the lake and go
browsing down the creek that leads out
of it to find the robbers that
killed me and took the things. They
won't ever hunt the river for
anything but my dead carcass. They'll
soon get tired of that, and won't
bother no more about me. All right; I
can stop anywhere I want to.
Jackson's Island is good enough for me;
I know that island pretty well,
and nobody ever comes there. And then
I can paddle over to town nights,
and slink around and pick up things I
want. Jackson's Island's the place.
I was pretty tired, and the first thing
I knowed I was asleep. When I
woke up I didn't know where I was for a
minute. I set up and looked
around, a little scared. Then I
remembered. The river looked miles and
miles across. The moon was so bright I
could a counted the drift logs
that went a-slipping along, black and
still, hundreds of yards out from
shore. Everything was dead quiet, and
it looked late, and SMELT late.
You know what I mean—I don't know
the words to put it in.
I took a good gap and a stretch, and
was just going to unhitch and start
when I heard a sound away over the
water. I listened. Pretty soon I
made it out. It was that dull kind of
a regular sound that comes from
oars working in rowlocks when it's a
still night. I peeped out through
the willow branches, and there it was—a
skiff, away across the water. I
couldn't tell how many was in it. It
kept a-coming, and when it was
abreast of me I see there warn't but
one man in it. Think's I, maybe
it's pap, though I warn't expecting
him. He dropped below me with the
current, and by and by he came
a-swinging up shore in the easy water, and
he went by so close I could a reached
out the gun and touched him. Well,
it WAS pap, sure enough—and
sober, too, by the way he laid his oars.
I didn't lose no time. The next minute
I was a-spinning down stream soft
but quick in the shade of the bank. I
made two mile and a half, and then
struck out a quarter of a mile or more
towards the middle of the river,
because pretty soon I would be passing
the ferry landing, and people
might see me and hail me. I got out
amongst the driftwood, and then laid
down in the bottom of the canoe and let
her float. I laid there, and had
a good rest and a smoke out of my pipe,
looking away into the sky; not a
cloud in it. The sky looks ever so
deep when you lay down on your back
in the moonshine; I never knowed it
before. And how far a body can hear
on the water such nights! I heard
people talking at the ferry landing.
I heard what they said, too—every
word of it. One man said it was
getting towards the long days and the
short nights now. T'other one said
THIS warn't one of the short ones, he
reckoned—and then they laughed,
and he said it over again, and they
laughed again; then they waked up
another fellow and told him, and
laughed, but he didn't laugh; he ripped
out something brisk, and said let him
alone. The first fellow said he
'lowed to tell it to his old woman—she
would think it was pretty good;
but he said that warn't nothing to some
things he had said in his time.
I heard one man say it was nearly three
o'clock, and he hoped daylight
wouldn't wait more than about a week
longer. After that the talk got
further and further away, and I
couldn't make out the words any more; but
I could hear the mumble, and now and
then a laugh, too, but it seemed a
long ways off.
I was away below the ferry now. I rose
up, and there was Jackson's
Island, about two mile and a half down
stream, heavy timbered and
standing up out of the middle of the
river, big and dark and solid, like
a steamboat without any lights. There
warn't any signs of the bar at the
head—it was all under water now.
It didn't take me long to get there. I
shot past the head at a ripping
rate, the current was so swift, and
then I got into the dead water and
landed on the side towards the Illinois
shore. I run the canoe into a
deep dent in the bank that I knowed
about; I had to part the willow
branches to get in; and when I made
fast nobody could a seen the canoe
from the outside.
I went up and set down on a log at the
head of the island, and looked out
on the big river and the black
driftwood and away over to the town, three
mile away, where there was three or
four lights twinkling. A monstrous
big lumber-raft was about a mile up
stream, coming along down, with a
lantern in the middle of it. I watched
it come creeping down, and when
it was most abreast of where I stood I
heard a man say, "Stern oars,
there! heave her head to stabboard!"
I heard that just as plain as if
the man was by my side.
There was a little gray in the sky now;
so I stepped into the woods, and
laid down for a nap before breakfast.
CHAPTER VIII.
THE sun was up so high when I waked
that I judged it was after eight
o'clock. I laid there in the grass and
the cool shade thinking about
things, and feeling rested and ruther
comfortable and satisfied. I could
see the sun out at one or two holes,
but mostly it was big trees all
about, and gloomy in there amongst
them. There was freckled places on
the ground where the light sifted down
through the leaves, and the
freckled places swapped about a little,
showing there was a little breeze
up there. A couple of squirrels set on
a limb and jabbered at me very
friendly.
I was powerful lazy and
comfortable—didn't want to get up and cook
breakfast. Well, I was dozing off
again when I thinks I hears a deep
sound of "boom!" away up the
river. I rouses up, and rests on my elbow
and listens; pretty soon I hears it
again. I hopped up, and went and
looked out at a hole in the leaves, and
I see a bunch of smoke laying on
the water a long ways up—about
abreast the ferry. And there was the
ferryboat full of people floating along
down. I knowed what was the
matter now. "Boom!" I see
the white smoke squirt out of the ferryboat's
side. You see, they was firing cannon
over the water, trying to make my
carcass come to the top.
I was pretty hungry, but it warn't
going to do for me to start a fire,
because they might see the smoke. So I
set there and watched the
cannon-smoke and listened to the boom.
The river was a mile wide there,
and it always looks pretty on a summer
morning—so I was having a good
enough time seeing them hunt for my
remainders if I only had a bite to
eat. Well, then I happened to think how
they always put quicksilver in
loaves of bread and float them off,
because they always go right to the
drownded carcass and stop there. So,
says I, I'll keep a lookout, and if
any of them's floating around after me
I'll give them a show. I changed
to the Illinois edge of the island to
see what luck I could have, and I
warn't disappointed. A big double loaf
come along, and I most got it
with a long stick, but my foot slipped
and she floated out further. Of
course I was where the current set in
the closest to the shore—I knowed
enough for that. But by and by along
comes another one, and this time I
won. I took out the plug and shook out
the little dab of quicksilver,
and set my teeth in. It was "baker's
bread"—what the quality eat; none
of your low-down corn-pone.
I got a good place amongst the leaves,
and set there on a log, munching
the bread and watching the ferry-boat,
and very well satisfied. And then
something struck me. I says, now I
reckon the widow or the parson or
somebody prayed that this bread would
find me, and here it has gone and
done it. So there ain't no doubt but
there is something in that thing
—that is, there's something in it
when a body like the widow or the parson
prays, but it don't work for me, and I
reckon it don't work for only just
the right kind.
I lit a pipe and had a good long smoke,
and went on watching. The
ferryboat was floating with the
current, and I allowed I'd have a chance
to see who was aboard when she come
along, because she would come in
close, where the bread did. When she'd
got pretty well along down
towards me, I put out my pipe and went
to where I fished out the bread,
and laid down behind a log on the bank
in a little open place. Where the
log forked I could peep through.
By and by she come along, and she
drifted in so close that they could a
run out a plank and walked ashore.
Most everybody was on the boat. Pap,
and Judge Thatcher, and Bessie
Thatcher, and Jo Harper, and Tom Sawyer,
and his old Aunt Polly, and Sid and
Mary, and plenty more. Everybody was
talking about the murder, but the
captain broke in and says:
"Look sharp, now; the current sets
in the closest here, and maybe he's
washed ashore and got tangled amongst
the brush at the water's edge. I
hope so, anyway."
I didn't hope so. They all crowded up
and leaned over the rails, nearly
in my face, and kept still, watching
with all their might. I could see
them first-rate, but they couldn't see
me. Then the captain sung out:
"Stand away!" and the cannon
let off such a blast right before me that it
made me deef with the noise and pretty
near blind with the smoke, and I
judged I was gone. If they'd a had
some bullets in, I reckon they'd a
got the corpse they was after. Well, I
see I warn't hurt, thanks to
goodness. The boat floated on and went
out of sight around the shoulder
of the island. I could hear the
booming now and then, further and
further off, and by and by, after an
hour, I didn't hear it no more. The
island was three mile long. I judged
they had got to the foot, and was
giving it up. But they didn't yet a
while. They turned around the foot
of the island and started up the
channel on the Missouri side, under
steam, and booming once in a while as
they went. I crossed over to that
side and watched them. When they got
abreast the head of the island they
quit shooting and dropped over to the
Missouri shore and went home to the
town.
I knowed I was all right now. Nobody
else would come a-hunting after me.
I got my traps out of the canoe and
made me a nice camp in the thick
woods. I made a kind of a tent out of
my blankets to put my things under
so the rain couldn't get at them. I
catched a catfish and haggled him
open with my saw, and towards sundown I
started my camp fire and had
supper. Then I set out a line to catch
some fish for breakfast.
When it was dark I set by my camp fire
smoking, and feeling pretty well
satisfied; but by and by it got sort of
lonesome, and so I went and set
on the bank and listened to the current
swashing along, and counted the
stars and drift logs and rafts that
come down, and then went to bed;
there ain't no better way to put in
time when you are lonesome; you can't
stay so, you soon get over it.
And so for three days and nights. No
difference—just the same thing.
But the next day I went exploring
around down through the island. I was
boss of it; it all belonged to me, so
to say, and I wanted to know all
about it; but mainly I wanted to put in
the time. I found plenty
strawberries, ripe and prime; and green
summer grapes, and green
razberries; and the green blackberries
was just beginning to show. They
would all come handy by and by, I
judged.
Well, I went fooling along in the deep
woods till I judged I warn't far
from the foot of the island. I had my
gun along, but I hadn't shot
nothing; it was for protection; thought
I would kill some game nigh home.
About this time I mighty near stepped
on a good-sized snake, and it went
sliding off through the grass and
flowers, and I after it, trying to get
a shot at it. I clipped along, and all
of a sudden I bounded right on to
the ashes of a camp fire that was still
smoking.
My heart jumped up amongst my lungs. I
never waited for to look further,
but uncocked my gun and went sneaking
back on my tiptoes as fast as ever
I could. Every now and then I stopped
a second amongst the thick leaves
and listened, but my breath come so
hard I couldn't hear nothing else. I
slunk along another piece further, then
listened again; and so on, and so
on. If I see a stump, I took it for a
man; if I trod on a stick and
broke it, it made me feel like a person
had cut one of my breaths in two
and I only got half, and the short
half, too.
When I got to camp I warn't feeling
very brash, there warn't much sand in
my craw; but I says, this ain't no time
to be fooling around. So I got
all my traps into my canoe again so as
to have them out of sight, and I
put out the fire and scattered the
ashes around to look like an old last
year's camp, and then clumb a tree.
I reckon I was up in the tree two
hours; but I didn't see nothing, I
didn't hear nothing—I only
THOUGHT I heard and seen as much as a
thousand things. Well, I couldn't stay
up there forever; so at last I
got down, but I kept in the thick woods
and on the lookout all the time.
All I could get to eat was berries and
what was left over from breakfast.
By the time it was night I was pretty
hungry. So when it was good and
dark I slid out from shore before
moonrise and paddled over to the
Illinois bank—about a quarter of
a mile. I went out in the woods and
cooked a supper, and I had about made
up my mind I would stay there all
night when I hear a PLUNKETY-PLUNK,
PLUNKETY-PLUNK, and says to myself,
horses coming; and next I hear people's
voices. I got everything into
the canoe as quick as I could, and then
went creeping through the woods
to see what I could find out. I hadn't
got far when I hear a man say:
"We better camp here if we can
find a good place; the horses is about
beat out. Let's look around."
I didn't wait, but shoved out and
paddled away easy. I tied up in the
old place, and reckoned I would sleep
in the canoe.
I didn't sleep much. I couldn't,
somehow, for thinking. And every time
I waked up I thought somebody had me by
the neck. So the sleep didn't do
me no good. By and by I says to
myself, I can't live this way; I'm
a-going to find out who it is that's
here on the island with me; I'll
find it out or bust. Well, I felt
better right off.
So I took my paddle and slid out from
shore just a step or two, and then
let the canoe drop along down amongst
the shadows. The moon was shining,
and outside of the shadows it made it
most as light as day. I poked
along well on to an hour, everything
still as rocks and sound asleep.
Well, by this time I was most down to
the foot of the island. A little
ripply, cool breeze begun to blow, and
that was as good as saying the
night was about done. I give her a
turn with the paddle and brung her
nose to shore; then I got my gun and
slipped out and into the edge of the
woods. I sat down there on a log, and
looked out through the leaves. I
see the moon go off watch, and the
darkness begin to blanket the river.
But in a little while I see a pale
streak over the treetops, and knowed
the day was coming. So I took my gun
and slipped off towards where I had
run across that camp fire, stopping
every minute or two to listen. But I
hadn't no luck somehow; I couldn't seem
to find the place. But by and
by, sure enough, I catched a glimpse of
fire away through the trees. I
went for it, cautious and slow. By and
by I was close enough to have a
look, and there laid a man on the
ground. It most give me the fan-tods.
He had a blanket around his head, and
his head was nearly in the fire. I
set there behind a clump of bushes, in
about six foot of him, and kept my
eyes on him steady. It was getting
gray daylight now. Pretty soon he
gapped and stretched himself and hove
off the blanket, and it was Miss
Watson's Jim! I bet I was glad to see
him. I says:
"Hello, Jim!" and skipped
out.
He bounced up and stared at me wild.
Then he drops down on his knees,
and puts his hands together and says:
"Doan' hurt me—don't! I
hain't ever done no harm to a ghos'. I alwuz
liked dead people, en done all I could
for 'em. You go en git in de
river agin, whah you b'longs, en doan'
do nuffn to Ole Jim, 'at 'uz awluz
yo' fren'."
Well, I warn't long making him
understand I warn't dead. I was ever so
glad to see Jim. I warn't lonesome
now. I told him I warn't afraid of
HIM telling the people where I was. I
talked along, but he only set
there and looked at me; never said
nothing. Then I says:
"It's good daylight. Le's get
breakfast. Make up your camp fire good."
"What's de use er makin' up de
camp fire to cook strawbries en sich
truck? But you got a gun, hain't you?
Den we kin git sumfn better den
strawbries."
"Strawberries and such truck,"
I says. "Is that what you live on?"
"I couldn' git nuffn else,"
he says.
"Why, how long you been on the
island, Jim?"
"I come heah de night arter you's
killed."
"What, all that time?"
"Yes—indeedy."
"And ain't you had nothing but
that kind of rubbage to eat?"
"No, sah—nuffn else."
"Well, you must be most starved,
ain't you?"
"I reck'n I could eat a hoss. I
think I could. How long you ben on de
islan'?"
"Since the night I got killed."
"No! W'y, what has you lived on?
But you got a gun. Oh, yes, you got a
gun. Dat's good. Now you kill sumfn
en I'll make up de fire."
So we went over to where the canoe was,
and while he built a fire in a
grassy open place amongst the trees, I
fetched meal and bacon and coffee,
and coffee-pot and frying-pan, and
sugar and tin cups, and the nigger was
set back considerable, because he
reckoned it was all done with
witchcraft. I catched a good big
catfish, too, and Jim cleaned him with
his knife, and fried him.
When breakfast was ready we lolled on
the grass and eat it smoking hot.
Jim laid it in with all his might, for
he was most about starved. Then
when we had got pretty well stuffed, we
laid off and lazied. By and by
Jim says:
"But looky here, Huck, who wuz it
dat 'uz killed in dat shanty ef it
warn't you?"
Then I told him the whole thing, and he
said it was smart. He said Tom
Sawyer couldn't get up no better plan
than what I had. Then I says:
"How do you come to be here, Jim,
and how'd you get here?"
He looked pretty uneasy, and didn't say
nothing for a minute. Then he
says:
"Maybe I better not tell."
"Why, Jim?"
"Well, dey's reasons. But you
wouldn' tell on me ef I uz to tell you,
would you, Huck?"
"Blamed if I would, Jim."
"Well, I b'lieve you, Huck. I—I
RUN OFF."
"Jim!"
"But mind, you said you wouldn'
tell—you know you said you wouldn' tell,
Huck."
"Well, I did. I said I wouldn't,
and I'll stick to it. Honest INJUN, I
will. People would call me a low-down
Abolitionist and despise me for
keeping mum—but that don't make
no difference. I ain't a-going to tell,
and I ain't a-going back there,
anyways. So, now, le's know all about
it."
"Well, you see, it 'uz dis way.
Ole missus—dat's Miss Watson—she pecks
on me all de time, en treats me pooty
rough, but she awluz said she
wouldn' sell me down to Orleans. But I
noticed dey wuz a nigger trader
roun' de place considable lately, en I
begin to git oneasy. Well, one
night I creeps to de do' pooty late, en
de do' warn't quite shet, en I
hear old missus tell de widder she
gwyne to sell me down to Orleans, but
she didn' want to, but she could git
eight hund'd dollars for me, en it
'uz sich a big stack o' money she
couldn' resis'. De widder she try to
git her to say she wouldn' do it, but I
never waited to hear de res'. I
lit out mighty quick, I tell you.
"I tuck out en shin down de hill,
en 'spec to steal a skift 'long de sho'
som'ers 'bove de town, but dey wuz
people a-stirring yit, so I hid in de
ole tumble-down cooper-shop on de bank
to wait for everybody to go 'way.
Well, I wuz dah all night. Dey wuz
somebody roun' all de time. 'Long
'bout six in de mawnin' skifts begin to
go by, en 'bout eight er nine
every skift dat went 'long wuz talkin'
'bout how yo' pap come over to de
town en say you's killed. Dese las'
skifts wuz full o' ladies en genlmen
a-goin' over for to see de place.
Sometimes dey'd pull up at de sho' en
take a res' b'fo' dey started acrost,
so by de talk I got to know all
'bout de killin'. I 'uz powerful sorry
you's killed, Huck, but I ain't
no mo' now.
"I laid dah under de shavin's all
day. I 'uz hungry, but I warn't
afeard; bekase I knowed ole missus en
de widder wuz goin' to start to de
camp-meet'n' right arter breakfas' en
be gone all day, en dey knows I
goes off wid de cattle 'bout daylight,
so dey wouldn' 'spec to see me
roun' de place, en so dey wouldn' miss
me tell arter dark in de evenin'.
De yuther servants wouldn' miss me,
kase dey'd shin out en take holiday
soon as de ole folks 'uz out'n de way.
"Well, when it come dark I tuck
out up de river road, en went 'bout two
mile er more to whah dey warn't no
houses. I'd made up my mine 'bout
what I's agwyne to do. You see, ef I
kep' on tryin' to git away afoot,
de dogs 'ud track me; ef I stole a
skift to cross over, dey'd miss dat
skift, you see, en dey'd know 'bout
whah I'd lan' on de yuther side, en
whah to pick up my track. So I says, a
raff is what I's arter; it doan'
MAKE no track.
"I see a light a-comin' roun' de
p'int bymeby, so I wade' in en shove' a
log ahead o' me en swum more'n half way
acrost de river, en got in
'mongst de drift-wood, en kep' my head
down low, en kinder swum agin de
current tell de raff come along. Den I
swum to de stern uv it en tuck
a-holt. It clouded up en 'uz pooty
dark for a little while. So I clumb
up en laid down on de planks. De men
'uz all 'way yonder in de middle,
whah de lantern wuz. De river wuz
a-risin', en dey wuz a good current;
so I reck'n'd 'at by fo' in de mawnin'
I'd be twenty-five mile down de
river, en den I'd slip in jis b'fo'
daylight en swim asho', en take to
de woods on de Illinois side.
"But I didn' have no luck. When
we 'uz mos' down to de head er de islan'
a man begin to come aft wid de lantern,
I see it warn't no use fer to
wait, so I slid overboard en struck out
fer de islan'. Well, I had a
notion I could lan' mos' anywhers, but
I couldn't—bank too bluff. I 'uz
mos' to de foot er de islan' b'fo' I
found' a good place. I went into de
woods en jedged I wouldn' fool wid
raffs no mo', long as dey move de
lantern roun' so. I had my pipe en a
plug er dog-leg, en some matches in
my cap, en dey warn't wet, so I 'uz all
right."
"And so you ain't had no meat nor
bread to eat all this time? Why didn't
you get mud-turkles?"
"How you gwyne to git 'm? You
can't slip up on um en grab um; en how's a
body gwyne to hit um wid a rock? How
could a body do it in de night? En
I warn't gwyne to show mysef on de bank
in de daytime."
"Well, that's so. You've had to
keep in the woods all the time, of
course. Did you hear 'em shooting the
cannon?"
"Oh, yes. I knowed dey was arter
you. I see um go by heah—watched um
thoo de bushes."
Some young birds come along, flying a
yard or two at a time and lighting.
Jim said it was a sign it was going to
rain. He said it was a sign when
young chickens flew that way, and so he
reckoned it was the same way when
young birds done it. I was going to
catch some of them, but Jim wouldn't
let me. He said it was death. He said
his father laid mighty sick once,
and some of them catched a bird, and
his old granny said his father would
die, and he did.
And Jim said you mustn't count the
things you are going to cook for
dinner, because that would bring bad
luck. The same if you shook the
table-cloth after sundown. And he said
if a man owned a beehive and that
man died, the bees must be told about
it before sun-up next morning, or
else the bees would all weaken down and
quit work and die. Jim said bees
wouldn't sting idiots; but I didn't
believe that, because I had tried
them lots of times myself, and they
wouldn't sting me.
I had heard about some of these things
before, but not all of them. Jim
knowed all kinds of signs. He said he
knowed most everything. I said it
looked to me like all the signs was
about bad luck, and so I asked him if
there warn't any good-luck signs. He
says:
"Mighty few—an' DEY ain't no
use to a body. What you want to know when
good luck's a-comin' for? Want to keep
it off?" And he said: "Ef you's
got hairy arms en a hairy breas', it's
a sign dat you's agwyne to be
rich. Well, dey's some use in a sign
like dat, 'kase it's so fur ahead.
You see, maybe you's got to be po' a
long time fust, en so you might git
discourage' en kill yo'sef 'f you didn'
know by de sign dat you gwyne to
be rich bymeby."
"Have you got hairy arms and a
hairy breast, Jim?"
"What's de use to ax dat question?
Don't you see I has?"
"Well, are you rich?"
"No, but I ben rich wunst, and
gwyne to be rich agin. Wunst I had foteen
dollars, but I tuck to specalat'n', en
got busted out."
"What did you speculate in, Jim?"
"Well, fust I tackled stock."
"What kind of stock?"
"Why, live stock—cattle, you
know. I put ten dollars in a cow. But I
ain' gwyne to resk no mo' money in
stock. De cow up 'n' died on my
han's."
"So you lost the ten dollars."
"No, I didn't lose it all. I on'y
los' 'bout nine of it. I sole de hide
en taller for a dollar en ten cents."
"You had five dollars and ten
cents left. Did you speculate any more?"
"Yes. You know that one-laigged
nigger dat b'longs to old Misto Bradish?
Well, he sot up a bank, en say anybody
dat put in a dollar would git fo'
dollars mo' at de en' er de year.
Well, all de niggers went in, but dey
didn't have much. I wuz de on'y one
dat had much. So I stuck out for
mo' dan fo' dollars, en I said 'f I
didn' git it I'd start a bank mysef.
Well, o' course dat nigger want' to
keep me out er de business, bekase he
says dey warn't business 'nough for two
banks, so he say I could put in
my five dollars en he pay me
thirty-five at de en' er de year.
"So I done it. Den I reck'n'd I'd
inves' de thirty-five dollars right
off en keep things a-movin'. Dey wuz a
nigger name' Bob, dat had ketched
a wood-flat, en his marster didn' know
it; en I bought it off'n him en
told him to take de thirty-five dollars
when de en' er de year come; but
somebody stole de wood-flat dat night,
en nex day de one-laigged nigger
say de bank's busted. So dey didn'
none uv us git no money."
"What did you do with the ten
cents, Jim?"
"Well, I 'uz gwyne to spen' it,
but I had a dream, en de dream tole me to
give it to a nigger name' Balum—Balum's
Ass dey call him for short; he's
one er dem chuckleheads, you know. But
he's lucky, dey say, en I see I
warn't lucky. De dream say let Balum
inves' de ten cents en he'd make a
raise for me. Well, Balum he tuck de
money, en when he wuz in church he
hear de preacher say dat whoever give
to de po' len' to de Lord, en boun'
to git his money back a hund'd times.
So Balum he tuck en give de ten
cents to de po', en laid low to see
what wuz gwyne to come of it."
"Well, what did come of it, Jim?"
"Nuffn never come of it. I
couldn' manage to k'leck dat money no way; en
Balum he couldn'. I ain' gwyne to len'
no mo' money 'dout I see de
security. Boun' to git yo' money back
a hund'd times, de preacher says!
Ef I could git de ten CENTS back, I'd
call it squah, en be glad er de
chanst."
"Well, it's all right anyway, Jim,
long as you're going to be rich again
some time or other."
"Yes; en I's rich now, come to
look at it. I owns mysef, en I's wuth
eight hund'd dollars. I wisht I had de
money, I wouldn' want no mo'."
CHAPTER IX.
I WANTED to go and look at a place
right about the middle of the island
that I'd found when I was exploring; so
we started and soon got to it,
because the island was only three miles
long and a quarter of a mile
wide.
This place was a tolerable long, steep
hill or ridge about forty foot
high. We had a rough time getting to
the top, the sides was so steep and
the bushes so thick. We tramped and
clumb around all over it, and by and
by found a good big cavern in the rock,
most up to the top on the side
towards Illinois. The cavern was as
big as two or three rooms bunched
together, and Jim could stand up
straight in it. It was cool in there.
Jim was for putting our traps in there
right away, but I said we didn't
want to be climbing up and down there
all the time.
Jim said if we had the canoe hid in a
good place, and had all the traps
in the cavern, we could rush there if
anybody was to come to the island,
and they would never find us without
dogs. And, besides, he said them
little birds had said it was going to
rain, and did I want the things to
get wet?
So we went back and got the canoe, and
paddled up abreast the cavern, and
lugged all the traps up there. Then we
hunted up a place close by to
hide the canoe in, amongst the thick
willows. We took some fish off of
the lines and set them again, and begun
to get ready for dinner.
The door of the cavern was big enough
to roll a hogshead in, and on one
side of the door the floor stuck out a
little bit, and was flat and a
good place to build a fire on. So we
built it there and cooked dinner.
We spread the blankets inside for a
carpet, and eat our dinner in there.
We put all the other things handy at
the back of the cavern. Pretty soon
it darkened up, and begun to thunder
and lighten; so the birds was right
about it. Directly it begun to rain,
and it rained like all fury, too,
and I never see the wind blow so. It
was one of these regular summer
storms. It would get so dark that it
looked all blue-black outside, and
lovely; and the rain would thrash along
by so thick that the trees off a
little ways looked dim and
spider-webby; and here would come a blast of
wind that would bend the trees down and
turn up the pale underside of the
leaves; and then a perfect ripper of a
gust would follow along and set
the branches to tossing their arms as
if they was just wild; and next,
when it was just about the bluest and
blackest—FST! it was as bright as
glory, and you'd have a little glimpse
of tree-tops a-plunging about away
off yonder in the storm, hundreds of
yards further than you could see
before; dark as sin again in a second,
and now you'd hear the thunder let
go with an awful crash, and then go
rumbling, grumbling, tumbling, down
the sky towards the under side of the
world, like rolling empty barrels
down stairs—where it's long
stairs and they bounce a good deal, you
know.
"Jim, this is nice," I says.
"I wouldn't want to be nowhere else but
here. Pass me along another hunk of
fish and some hot corn-bread."
"Well, you wouldn't a ben here 'f
it hadn't a ben for Jim. You'd a ben
down dah in de woods widout any dinner,
en gittn' mos' drownded, too; dat
you would, honey. Chickens knows when
it's gwyne to rain, en so do de
birds, chile."
The river went on raising and raising
for ten or twelve days, till at
last it was over the banks. The water
was three or four foot deep on the
island in the low places and on the
Illinois bottom. On that side it was
a good many miles wide, but on the
Missouri side it was the same old
distance across—a half a
mile—because the Missouri shore was just a
wall of high bluffs.
Daytimes we paddled all over the island
in the canoe, It was mighty cool
and shady in the deep woods, even if
the sun was blazing outside. We
went winding in and out amongst the
trees, and sometimes the vines hung
so thick we had to back away and go
some other way. Well, on every old
broken-down tree you could see rabbits
and snakes and such things; and
when the island had been overflowed a
day or two they got so tame, on
account of being hungry, that you could
paddle right up and put your hand
on them if you wanted to; but not the
snakes and turtles—they would
slide off in the water. The ridge our
cavern was in was full of them.
We could a had pets enough if we'd
wanted them.
One night we catched a little section
of a lumber raft—nice pine planks.
It was twelve foot wide and about
fifteen or sixteen foot long, and the
top stood above water six or seven
inches—a solid, level floor. We
could see saw-logs go by in the
daylight sometimes, but we let them go;
we didn't show ourselves in daylight.
Another night when we was up at the
head of the island, just before
daylight, here comes a frame-house
down, on the west side. She was a
two-story, and tilted over
considerable. We paddled out and got aboard
—clumb in at an upstairs window.
But it was too dark to see yet, so we
made the canoe fast and set in her to
wait for daylight.
The light begun to come before we got
to the foot of the island. Then we
looked in at the window. We could make
out a bed, and a table, and two
old chairs, and lots of things around
about on the floor, and there was
clothes hanging against the wall.
There was something laying on the
floor in the far corner that looked
like a man. So Jim says:
"Hello, you!"
But it didn't budge. So I hollered
again, and then Jim says:
"De man ain't asleep—he's
dead. You hold still—I'll go en see."
He went, and bent down and looked, and
says:
"It's a dead man. Yes, indeedy;
naked, too. He's ben shot in de back.
I reck'n he's ben dead two er three
days. Come in, Huck, but doan' look
at his face—it's too gashly."
I didn't look at him at all. Jim
throwed some old rags over him, but he
needn't done it; I didn't want to see
him. There was heaps of old greasy
cards scattered around over the floor,
and old whisky bottles, and a
couple of masks made out of black
cloth; and all over the walls was the
ignorantest kind of words and pictures
made with charcoal. There was two
old dirty calico dresses, and a
sun-bonnet, and some women's underclothes
hanging against the wall, and some
men's clothing, too. We put the lot
into the canoe—it might come
good. There was a boy's old speckled straw
hat on the floor; I took that, too.
And there was a bottle that had had
milk in it, and it had a rag stopper
for a baby to suck. We would a took
the bottle, but it was broke. There
was a seedy old chest, and an old
hair trunk with the hinges broke. They
stood open, but there warn't
nothing left in them that was any
account. The way things was scattered
about we reckoned the people left in a
hurry, and warn't fixed so as to
carry off most of their stuff.
We got an old tin lantern, and a
butcher-knife without any handle, and a
bran-new Barlow knife worth two bits in
any store, and a lot of tallow
candles, and a tin candlestick, and a
gourd, and a tin cup, and a ratty
old bedquilt off the bed, and a
reticule with needles and pins and
beeswax and buttons and thread and all
such truck in it, and a hatchet
and some nails, and a fishline as thick
as my little finger with some
monstrous hooks on it, and a roll of
buckskin, and a leather dog-collar,
and a horseshoe, and some vials of
medicine that didn't have no label on
them; and just as we was leaving I
found a tolerable good curry-comb, and
Jim he found a ratty old fiddle-bow,
and a wooden leg. The straps was
broke off of it, but, barring that, it
was a good enough leg, though it
was too long for me and not long enough
for Jim, and we couldn't find the
other one, though we hunted all around.
And so, take it all around, we made a
good haul. When we was ready to
shove off we was a quarter of a mile
below the island, and it was pretty
broad day; so I made Jim lay down in
the canoe and cover up with the
quilt, because if he set up people
could tell he was a nigger a good ways
off. I paddled over to the Illinois
shore, and drifted down most a half
a mile doing it. I crept up the dead
water under the bank, and hadn't no
accidents and didn't see nobody. We
got home all safe.
CHAPTER X.
AFTER breakfast I wanted to talk about
the dead man and guess out how he
come to be killed, but Jim didn't want
to. He said it would fetch bad
luck; and besides, he said, he might
come and ha'nt us; he said a man
that warn't buried was more likely to
go a-ha'nting around than one that
was planted and comfortable. That
sounded pretty reasonable, so I didn't
say no more; but I couldn't keep from
studying over it and wishing I
knowed who shot the man, and what they
done it for.
We rummaged the clothes we'd got, and
found eight dollars in silver sewed
up in the lining of an old blanket
overcoat. Jim said he reckoned the
people in that house stole the coat,
because if they'd a knowed the money
was there they wouldn't a left it. I
said I reckoned they killed him,
too; but Jim didn't want to talk about
that. I says:
"Now you think it's bad luck; but
what did you say when I fetched in the
snake-skin that I found on the top of
the ridge day before yesterday?
You said it was the worst bad luck in
the world to touch a snake-skin
with my hands. Well, here's your bad
luck! We've raked in all this
truck and eight dollars besides. I
wish we could have some bad luck like
this every day, Jim."
"Never you mind, honey, never you
mind. Don't you git too peart. It's
a-comin'. Mind I tell you, it's
a-comin'."
It did come, too. It was a Tuesday
that we had that talk. Well, after
dinner Friday we was laying around in
the grass at the upper end of the
ridge, and got out of tobacco. I went
to the cavern to get some, and
found a rattlesnake in there. I killed
him, and curled him up on the
foot of Jim's blanket, ever so natural,
thinking there'd be some fun when
Jim found him there. Well, by night I
forgot all about the snake, and
when Jim flung himself down on the
blanket while I struck a light the
snake's mate was there, and bit him.
He jumped up yelling, and the first
thing the light showed was the
varmint curled up and ready for another
spring. I laid him out in a
second with a stick, and Jim grabbed
pap's whisky-jug and begun to pour
it down.
He was barefooted, and the snake bit
him right on the heel. That all
comes of my being such a fool as to not
remember that wherever you leave
a dead snake its mate always comes
there and curls around it. Jim told
me to chop off the snake's head and
throw it away, and then skin the body
and roast a piece of it. I done it,
and he eat it and said it would help
cure him. He made me take off the
rattles and tie them around his wrist,
too. He said that that would help.
Then I slid out quiet and throwed
the snakes clear away amongst the
bushes; for I warn't going to let Jim
find out it was all my fault, not if I
could help it.
Jim sucked and sucked at the jug, and
now and then he got out of his head
and pitched around and yelled; but
every time he come to himself he went
to sucking at the jug again. His foot
swelled up pretty big, and so did
his leg; but by and by the drunk begun
to come, and so I judged he was
all right; but I'd druther been bit
with a snake than pap's whisky.
Jim was laid up for four days and
nights. Then the swelling was all gone
and he was around again. I made up my
mind I wouldn't ever take a-holt
of a snake-skin again with my hands,
now that I see what had come of it.
Jim said he reckoned I would believe
him next time. And he said that
handling a snake-skin was such awful
bad luck that maybe we hadn't got to
the end of it yet. He said he druther
see the new moon over his left
shoulder as much as a thousand times
than take up a snake-skin in his
hand. Well, I was getting to feel that
way myself, though I've always
reckoned that looking at the new moon
over your left shoulder is one of
the carelessest and foolishest things a
body can do. Old Hank Bunker
done it once, and bragged about it; and
in less than two years he got
drunk and fell off of the shot-tower,
and spread himself out so that he
was just a kind of a layer, as you may
say; and they slid him edgeways
between two barn doors for a coffin,
and buried him so, so they say, but
I didn't see it. Pap told me. But
anyway it all come of looking at the
moon that way, like a fool.
Well, the days went along, and the
river went down between its banks
again; and about the first thing we
done was to bait one of the big hooks
with a skinned rabbit and set it and
catch a catfish that was as big as a
man, being six foot two inches long,
and weighed over two hundred pounds.
We couldn't handle him, of course; he
would a flung us into Illinois. We
just set there and watched him rip and
tear around till he drownded. We
found a brass button in his stomach and
a round ball, and lots of
rubbage. We split the ball open with
the hatchet, and there was a spool
in it. Jim said he'd had it there a
long time, to coat it over so and
make a ball of it. It was as big a
fish as was ever catched in the
Mississippi, I reckon. Jim said he
hadn't ever seen a bigger one. He
would a been worth a good deal over at
the village. They peddle out such
a fish as that by the pound in the
market-house there; everybody buys
some of him; his meat's as white as
snow and makes a good fry.
Next morning I said it was getting slow
and dull, and I wanted to get a
stirring up some way. I said I
reckoned I would slip over the river and
find out what was going on. Jim liked
that notion; but he said I must go
in the dark and look sharp. Then he
studied it over and said, couldn't I
put on some of them old things and
dress up like a girl? That was a good
notion, too. So we shortened up one of
the calico gowns, and I turned up
my trouser-legs to my knees and got
into it. Jim hitched it behind with
the hooks, and it was a fair fit. I
put on the sun-bonnet and tied it
under my chin, and then for a body to
look in and see my face was like
looking down a joint of stove-pipe.
Jim said nobody would know me, even
in the daytime, hardly. I practiced
around all day to get the hang of
the things, and by and by I could do
pretty well in them, only Jim said I
didn't walk like a girl; and he said I
must quit pulling up my gown to
get at my britches-pocket. I took
notice, and done better.
I started up the Illinois shore in the
canoe just after dark.
I started across to the town from a
little below the ferry-landing, and
the drift of the current fetched me in
at the bottom of the town. I tied
up and started along the bank. There
was a light burning in a little
shanty that hadn't been lived in for a
long time, and I wondered who had
took up quarters there. I slipped up
and peeped in at the window. There
was a woman about forty year old in
there knitting by a candle that was
on a pine table. I didn't know her
face; she was a stranger, for you
couldn't start a face in that town that
I didn't know. Now this was
lucky, because I was weakening; I was
getting afraid I had come; people
might know my voice and find me out.
But if this woman had been in such
a little town two days she could tell
me all I wanted to know; so I
knocked at the door, and made up my
mind I wouldn't forget I was a girl.
CHAPTER XI.
"COME in," says the woman,
and I did. She says: "Take a cheer."
I done it. She looked me all over with
her little shiny eyes, and says:
"What might your name be?"
"Sarah Williams."
"Where 'bouts do you live? In
this neighborhood?'
"No'm. In Hookerville, seven mile
below. I've walked all the way and
I'm all tired out."
"Hungry, too, I reckon. I'll find
you something."
"No'm, I ain't hungry. I was so
hungry I had to stop two miles below
here at a farm; so I ain't hungry no
more. It's what makes me so late.
My mother's down sick, and out of money
and everything, and I come to
tell my uncle Abner Moore. He lives at
the upper end of the town, she
says. I hain't ever been here before.
Do you know him?"
"No; but I don't know everybody
yet. I haven't lived here quite two
weeks. It's a considerable ways to the
upper end of the town. You better
stay here all night. Take off your
bonnet."
"No," I says; "I'll rest
a while, I reckon, and go on. I ain't afeared
of the dark."
She said she wouldn't let me go by
myself, but her husband would be in by
and by, maybe in a hour and a half, and
she'd send him along with me.
Then she got to talking about her
husband, and about her relations up the
river, and her relations down the
river, and about how much better off
they used to was, and how they didn't
know but they'd made a mistake
coming to our town, instead of letting
well alone—and so on and so on,
till I was afeard I had made a mistake
coming to her to find out what was
going on in the town; but by and by she
dropped on to pap and the murder,
and then I was pretty willing to let
her clatter right along. She told
about me and Tom Sawyer finding the six
thousand dollars (only she got it
ten) and all about pap and what a hard
lot he was, and what a hard lot I
was, and at last she got down to where
I was murdered. I says:
"Who done it? We've heard
considerable about these goings on down in
Hookerville, but we don't know who
'twas that killed Huck Finn."
"Well, I reckon there's a right
smart chance of people HERE that'd like
to know who killed him. Some think old
Finn done it himself."
"No—is that so?"
"Most everybody thought it at
first. He'll never know how nigh he come
to getting lynched. But before night
they changed around and judged it
was done by a runaway nigger named
Jim."
"Why HE—"
I stopped. I reckoned I better keep
still. She run on, and never
noticed I had put in at all:
"The nigger run off the very night
Huck Finn was killed. So there's a
reward out for him—three hundred
dollars. And there's a reward out for
old Finn, too—two hundred
dollars. You see, he come to town the morning
after the murder, and told about it,
and was out with 'em on the
ferryboat hunt, and right away after he
up and left. Before night they
wanted to lynch him, but he was gone,
you see. Well, next day they found
out the nigger was gone; they found out
he hadn't ben seen sence ten
o'clock the night the murder was done.
So then they put it on him, you
see; and while they was full of it,
next day, back comes old Finn, and
went boo-hooing to Judge Thatcher to
get money to hunt for the nigger all
over Illinois with. The judge gave him
some, and that evening he got
drunk, and was around till after
midnight with a couple of mighty
hard-looking strangers, and then went
off with them. Well, he hain't
come back sence, and they ain't looking
for him back till this thing
blows over a little, for people thinks
now that he killed his boy and
fixed things so folks would think
robbers done it, and then he'd get
Huck's money without having to bother a
long time with a lawsuit. People
do say he warn't any too good to do it.
Oh, he's sly, I reckon. If he
don't come back for a year he'll be all
right. You can't prove anything
on him, you know; everything will be
quieted down then, and he'll walk in
Huck's money as easy as nothing."
"Yes, I reckon so, 'm. I don't
see nothing in the way of it. Has
everybody quit thinking the nigger done
it?"
"Oh, no, not everybody. A good
many thinks he done it. But they'll get
the nigger pretty soon now, and maybe
they can scare it out of him."
"Why, are they after him yet?"
"Well, you're innocent, ain't you!
Does three hundred dollars lay around
every day for people to pick up? Some
folks think the nigger ain't far
from here. I'm one of them—but I
hain't talked it around. A few days
ago I was talking with an old couple
that lives next door in the log
shanty, and they happened to say hardly
anybody ever goes to that island
over yonder that they call Jackson's
Island. Don't anybody live there?
says I. No, nobody, says they. I
didn't say any more, but I done some
thinking. I was pretty near certain
I'd seen smoke over there, about the
head of the island, a day or two before
that, so I says to myself, like
as not that nigger's hiding over there;
anyway, says I, it's worth the
trouble to give the place a hunt. I
hain't seen any smoke sence, so I
reckon maybe he's gone, if it was him;
but husband's going over to see
—him and another man. He was
gone up the river; but he got back to-day,
and I told him as soon as he got here
two hours ago."
I had got so uneasy I couldn't set
still. I had to do something with my
hands; so I took up a needle off of the
table and went to threading it.
My hands shook, and I was making a bad
job of it. When the woman stopped
talking I looked up, and she was
looking at me pretty curious and smiling
a little. I put down the needle and
thread, and let on to be interested
—and I was, too—and says:
"Three hundred dollars is a power
of money. I wish my mother could get
it. Is your husband going over there
to-night?"
"Oh, yes. He went up-town with
the man I was telling you of, to get a
boat and see if they could borrow
another gun. They'll go over after
midnight."
"Couldn't they see better if they
was to wait till daytime?"
"Yes. And couldn't the nigger see
better, too? After midnight he'll
likely be asleep, and they can slip
around through the woods and hunt up
his camp fire all the better for the
dark, if he's got one."
"I didn't think of that."
The woman kept looking at me pretty
curious, and I didn't feel a bit
comfortable. Pretty soon she says,
"What did you say your name was,
honey?"
"M—Mary Williams."
Somehow it didn't seem to me that I
said it was Mary before, so I didn't
look up—seemed to me I said it
was Sarah; so I felt sort of cornered,
and was afeared maybe I was looking it,
too. I wished the woman would
say something more; the longer she set
still the uneasier I was. But now
she says:
"Honey, I thought you said it was
Sarah when you first come in?"
"Oh, yes'm, I did. Sarah Mary
Williams. Sarah's my first name. Some
calls me Sarah, some calls me Mary."
"Oh, that's the way of it?"
"Yes'm."
I was feeling better then, but I wished
I was out of there, anyway. I
couldn't look up yet.
Well, the woman fell to talking about
how hard times was, and how poor
they had to live, and how the rats was
as free as if they owned the
place, and so forth and so on, and then
I got easy again. She was right
about the rats. You'd see one stick his
nose out of a hole in the corner
every little while. She said she had
to have things handy to throw at
them when she was alone, or they
wouldn't give her no peace. She showed
me a bar of lead twisted up into a
knot, and said she was a good shot
with it generly, but she'd wrenched her
arm a day or two ago, and didn't
know whether she could throw true now.
But she watched for a chance, and
directly banged away at a rat; but she
missed him wide, and said "Ouch!"
it hurt her arm so. Then she told me
to try for the next one. I wanted
to be getting away before the old man
got back, but of course I didn't
let on. I got the thing, and the first
rat that showed his nose I let
drive, and if he'd a stayed where he
was he'd a been a tolerable sick
rat. She said that was first-rate, and
she reckoned I would hive the
next one. She went and got the lump of
lead and fetched it back, and
brought along a hank of yarn which she
wanted me to help her with. I
held up my two hands and she put the
hank over them, and went on talking
about her and her husband's matters.
But she broke off to say:
"Keep your eye on the rats. You
better have the lead in your lap,
handy."
So she dropped the lump into my lap
just at that moment, and I clapped my
legs together on it and she went on
talking. But only about a minute.
Then she took off the hank and looked
me straight in the face, and very
pleasant, and says:
"Come, now, what's your real
name?"
"Wh—what, mum?"
"What's your real name? Is it
Bill, or Tom, or Bob?—or what is it?"
I reckon I shook like a leaf, and I
didn't know hardly what to do. But I
says:
"Please to don't poke fun at a
poor girl like me, mum. If I'm in the way
here, I'll—"
"No, you won't. Set down and stay
where you are. I ain't going to hurt
you, and I ain't going to tell on you,
nuther. You just tell me your
secret, and trust me. I'll keep it;
and, what's more, I'll help you.
So'll my old man if you want him to.
You see, you're a runaway
'prentice, that's all. It ain't
anything. There ain't no harm in it.
You've been treated bad, and you made
up your mind to cut. Bless you,
child, I wouldn't tell on you. Tell me
all about it now, that's a good
boy."
So I said it wouldn't be no use to try
to play it any longer, and I would
just make a clean breast and tell her
everything, but she musn't go back
on her promise. Then I told her my
father and mother was dead, and the
law had bound me out to a mean old
farmer in the country thirty mile back
from the river, and he treated me so
bad I couldn't stand it no longer;
he went away to be gone a couple of
days, and so I took my chance and
stole some of his daughter's old
clothes and cleared out, and I had been
three nights coming the thirty miles.
I traveled nights, and hid
daytimes and slept, and the bag of
bread and meat I carried from home
lasted me all the way, and I had
a-plenty. I said I believed my uncle
Abner Moore would take care of me, and
so that was why I struck out for
this town of Goshen.
"Goshen, child? This ain't
Goshen. This is St. Petersburg. Goshen's
ten mile further up the river. Who
told you this was Goshen?"
"Why, a man I met at daybreak this
morning, just as I was going to turn
into the woods for my regular sleep.
He told me when the roads forked I
must take the right hand, and five mile
would fetch me to Goshen."
"He was drunk, I reckon. He told
you just exactly wrong."
"Well, he did act like he was
drunk, but it ain't no matter now. I got
to be moving along. I'll fetch Goshen
before daylight."
"Hold on a minute. I'll put you
up a snack to eat. You might want it."
So she put me up a snack, and says:
"Say, when a cow's laying down,
which end of her gets up first? Answer
up prompt now—don't stop to study
over it. Which end gets up first?"
"The hind end, mum."
"Well, then, a horse?"
"The for'rard end, mum."
"Which side of a tree does the
moss grow on?"
"North side."
"If fifteen cows is browsing on a
hillside, how many of them eats with
their heads pointed the same
direction?"
"The whole fifteen, mum."
"Well, I reckon you HAVE lived in
the country. I thought maybe you was
trying to hocus me again. What's your
real name, now?"
"George Peters, mum."
"Well, try to remember it, George.
Don't forget and tell me it's
Elexander before you go, and then get
out by saying it's George Elexander
when I catch you. And don't go about
women in that old calico. You do a
girl tolerable poor, but you might fool
men, maybe. Bless you, child,
when you set out to thread a needle
don't hold the thread still and fetch
the needle up to it; hold the needle
still and poke the thread at it;
that's the way a woman most always
does, but a man always does t'other
way. And when you throw at a rat or
anything, hitch yourself up a tiptoe
and fetch your hand up over your head
as awkward as you can, and miss
your rat about six or seven foot. Throw
stiff-armed from the shoulder,
like there was a pivot there for it to
turn on, like a girl; not from the
wrist and elbow, with your arm out to
one side, like a boy. And, mind
you, when a girl tries to catch
anything in her lap she throws her knees
apart; she don't clap them together,
the way you did when you catched the
lump of lead. Why, I spotted you for a
boy when you was threading the
needle; and I contrived the other
things just to make certain. Now trot
along to your uncle, Sarah Mary
Williams George Elexander Peters, and if
you get into trouble you send word to
Mrs. Judith Loftus, which is me,
and I'll do what I can to get you out
of it. Keep the river road all the
way, and next time you tramp take shoes
and socks with you. The river
road's a rocky one, and your feet'll be
in a condition when you get to
Goshen, I reckon."
I went up the bank about fifty yards,
and then I doubled on my tracks and
slipped back to where my canoe was, a
good piece below the house. I
jumped in, and was off in a hurry. I
went up-stream far enough to make
the head of the island, and then
started across. I took off the
sun-bonnet, for I didn't want no
blinders on then. When I was about the
middle I heard the clock begin to
strike, so I stops and listens; the
sound come faint over the water but
clear—eleven. When I struck the
head of the island I never waited to
blow, though I was most winded, but
I shoved right into the timber where my
old camp used to be, and started
a good fire there on a high and dry
spot.
Then I jumped in the canoe and dug out
for our place, a mile and a half
below, as hard as I could go. I
landed, and slopped through the timber
and up the ridge and into the cavern.
There Jim laid, sound asleep on
the ground. I roused him out and says:
"Git up and hump yourself, Jim!
There ain't a minute to lose. They're
after us!"
Jim never asked no questions, he never
said a word; but the way he worked
for the next half an hour showed about
how he was scared. By that time
everything we had in the world was on
our raft, and she was ready to be
shoved out from the willow cove where
she was hid. We put out the camp
fire at the cavern the first thing, and
didn't show a candle outside
after that.
I took the canoe out from the shore a
little piece, and took a look; but
if there was a boat around I couldn't
see it, for stars and shadows ain't
good to see by. Then we got out the
raft and slipped along down in the
shade, past the foot of the island dead
still—never saying a word.
CHAPTER XII.
IT must a been close on to one o'clock
when we got below the island at
last, and the raft did seem to go
mighty slow. If a boat was to come
along we was going to take to the canoe
and break for the Illinois shore;
and it was well a boat didn't come, for
we hadn't ever thought to put the
gun in the canoe, or a fishing-line, or
anything to eat. We was in
ruther too much of a sweat to think of
so many things. It warn't good
judgment to put EVERYTHING on the raft.
If the men went to the island I just
expect they found the camp fire I
built, and watched it all night for Jim
to come. Anyways, they stayed
away from us, and if my building the
fire never fooled them it warn't no
fault of mine. I played it as low down
on them as I could.
When the first streak of day began to
show we tied up to a towhead in a
big bend on the Illinois side, and
hacked off cottonwood branches with
the hatchet, and covered up the raft
with them so she looked like there
had been a cave-in in the bank there.
A tow-head is a sandbar that has
cottonwoods on it as thick as
harrow-teeth.
We had mountains on the Missouri shore
and heavy timber on the Illinois
side, and the channel was down the
Missouri shore at that place, so we
warn't afraid of anybody running across
us. We laid there all day, and
watched the rafts and steamboats spin
down the Missouri shore, and
up-bound steamboats fight the big river
in the middle. I told Jim all
about the time I had jabbering with
that woman; and Jim said she was a
smart one, and if she was to start
after us herself she wouldn't set down
and watch a camp fire—no, sir,
she'd fetch a dog. Well, then, I said,
why couldn't she tell her husband to
fetch a dog? Jim said he bet she
did think of it by the time the men was
ready to start, and he believed
they must a gone up-town to get a dog
and so they lost all that time, or
else we wouldn't be here on a towhead
sixteen or seventeen mile below the
village—no, indeedy, we would be
in that same old town again. So I said
I didn't care what was the reason they
didn't get us as long as they
didn't.
When it was beginning to come on dark
we poked our heads out of the
cottonwood thicket, and looked up and
down and across; nothing in sight;
so Jim took up some of the top planks
of the raft and built a snug wigwam
to get under in blazing weather and
rainy, and to keep the things dry.
Jim made a floor for the wigwam, and
raised it a foot or more above the
level of the raft, so now the blankets
and all the traps was out of reach
of steamboat waves. Right in the
middle of the wigwam we made a layer of
dirt about five or six inches deep with
a frame around it for to hold it
to its place; this was to build a fire
on in sloppy weather or chilly;
the wigwam would keep it from being
seen. We made an extra steering-oar,
too, because one of the others might
get broke on a snag or something.
We fixed up a short forked stick to
hang the old lantern on, because we
must always light the lantern whenever
we see a steamboat coming
down-stream, to keep from getting run
over; but we wouldn't have to light
it for up-stream boats unless we see we
was in what they call a
"crossing"; for the river was
pretty high yet, very low banks being still
a little under water; so up-bound boats
didn't always run the channel,
but hunted easy water.
This second night we run between seven
and eight hours, with a current
that was making over four mile an hour.
We catched fish and talked, and
we took a swim now and then to keep off
sleepiness. It was kind of
solemn, drifting down the big, still
river, laying on our backs looking
up at the stars, and we didn't ever
feel like talking loud, and it warn't
often that we laughed—only a
little kind of a low chuckle. We had
mighty good weather as a general thing,
and nothing ever happened to us
at all—that night, nor the next,
nor the next.
Every night we passed towns, some of
them away up on black hillsides,
nothing but just a shiny bed of lights;
not a house could you see. The
fifth night we passed St. Louis, and it
was like the whole world lit up.
In St. Petersburg they used to say
there was twenty or thirty thousand
people in St. Louis, but I never
believed it till I see that wonderful
spread of lights at two o'clock that
still night. There warn't a sound
there; everybody was asleep.
Every night now I used to slip ashore
towards ten o'clock at some little
village, and buy ten or fifteen cents'
worth of meal or bacon or other
stuff to eat; and sometimes I lifted a
chicken that warn't roosting
comfortable, and took him along. Pap
always said, take a chicken when
you get a chance, because if you don't
want him yourself you can easy
find somebody that does, and a good
deed ain't ever forgot. I never see
pap when he didn't want the chicken
himself, but that is what he used to
say, anyway.
Mornings before daylight I slipped into
cornfields and borrowed a
watermelon, or a mushmelon, or a
punkin, or some new corn, or things of
that kind. Pap always said it warn't
no harm to borrow things if you was
meaning to pay them back some time; but
the widow said it warn't anything
but a soft name for stealing, and no
decent body would do it. Jim said
he reckoned the widow was partly right
and pap was partly right; so the
best way would be for us to pick out
two or three things from the list
and say we wouldn't borrow them any
more—then he reckoned it wouldn't be
no harm to borrow the others. So we
talked it over all one night,
drifting along down the river, trying
to make up our minds whether to
drop the watermelons, or the
cantelopes, or the mushmelons, or what. But
towards daylight we got it all settled
satisfactory, and concluded to
drop crabapples and p'simmons. We
warn't feeling just right before that,
but it was all comfortable now. I was
glad the way it come out, too,
because crabapples ain't ever good, and
the p'simmons wouldn't be ripe
for two or three months yet.
We shot a water-fowl now and then that
got up too early in the morning or
didn't go to bed early enough in the
evening. Take it all round, we
lived pretty high.
The fifth night below St. Louis we had
a big storm after midnight, with a
power of thunder and lightning, and the
rain poured down in a solid
sheet. We stayed in the wigwam and let
the raft take care of itself.
When the lightning glared out we could
see a big straight river ahead,
and high, rocky bluffs on both sides.
By and by says I, "Hel-LO, Jim,
looky yonder!" It was a steamboat
that had killed herself on a rock. We
was drifting straight down for her.
The lightning showed her very
distinct. She was leaning over, with
part of her upper deck above water,
and you could see every little
chimbly-guy clean and clear, and a chair
by the big bell, with an old slouch hat
hanging on the back of it, when
the flashes come.
Well, it being away in the night and
stormy, and all so mysterious-like,
I felt just the way any other boy would
a felt when I see that wreck
laying there so mournful and lonesome
in the middle of the river. I
wanted to get aboard of her and slink
around a little, and see what there
was there. So I says:
"Le's land on her, Jim."
But Jim was dead against it at first.
He says:
"I doan' want to go fool'n 'long
er no wrack. We's doin' blame' well, en
we better let blame' well alone, as de
good book says. Like as not dey's
a watchman on dat wrack."
"Watchman your grandmother,"
I says; "there ain't nothing to watch but
the texas and the pilot-house; and do
you reckon anybody's going to resk
his life for a texas and a pilot-house
such a night as this, when it's
likely to break up and wash off down
the river any minute?" Jim couldn't
say nothing to that, so he didn't try.
"And besides," I says, "we might
borrow something worth having out of
the captain's stateroom. Seegars, I
bet you—and cost five cents
apiece, solid cash. Steamboat captains is
always rich, and get sixty dollars a
month, and THEY don't care a cent
what a thing costs, you know, long as
they want it. Stick a candle in
your pocket; I can't rest, Jim, till we
give her a rummaging. Do you
reckon Tom Sawyer would ever go by this
thing? Not for pie, he wouldn't.
He'd call it an adventure—that's
what he'd call it; and he'd land on
that wreck if it was his last act. And
wouldn't he throw style into it?
—wouldn't he spread himself, nor
nothing? Why, you'd think it was
Christopher C'lumbus discovering
Kingdom-Come. I wish Tom Sawyer WAS
here."
Jim he grumbled a little, but give in.
He said we mustn't talk any more
than we could help, and then talk
mighty low. The lightning showed us
the wreck again just in time, and we
fetched the stabboard derrick, and
made fast there.
The deck was high out here. We went
sneaking down the slope of it to
labboard, in the dark, towards the
texas, feeling our way slow with our
feet, and spreading our hands out to
fend off the guys, for it was so
dark we couldn't see no sign of them.
Pretty soon we struck the forward
end of the skylight, and clumb on to
it; and the next step fetched us in
front of the captain's door, which was
open, and by Jimminy, away down
through the texas-hall we see a light!
and all in the same second we seem
to hear low voices in yonder!
Jim whispered and said he was feeling
powerful sick, and told me to come
along. I says, all right, and was
going to start for the raft; but just
then I heard a voice wail out and say:
"Oh, please don't, boys; I swear I
won't ever tell!"
Another voice said, pretty loud:
"It's a lie, Jim Turner. You've
acted this way before. You always want
more'n your share of the truck, and
you've always got it, too, because
you've swore 't if you didn't you'd
tell. But this time you've said it
jest one time too many. You're the
meanest, treacherousest hound in this
country."
By this time Jim was gone for the raft.
I was just a-biling with
curiosity; and I says to myself, Tom
Sawyer wouldn't back out now, and so
I won't either; I'm a-going to see
what's going on here. So I dropped on
my hands and knees in the little
passage, and crept aft in the dark till
there warn't but one stateroom betwixt
me and the cross-hall of the
texas. Then in there I see a man
stretched on the floor and tied hand
and foot, and two men standing over
him, and one of them had a dim
lantern in his hand, and the other one
had a pistol. This one kept
pointing the pistol at the man's head
on the floor, and saying:
"I'd LIKE to! And I orter, too—a
mean skunk!"
The man on the floor would shrivel up
and say, "Oh, please don't, Bill; I
hain't ever goin' to tell."
And every time he said that the man
with the lantern would laugh and say:
"'Deed you AIN'T! You never said
no truer thing 'n that, you bet you."
And once he said: "Hear him beg!
and yit if we hadn't got the best of
him and tied him he'd a killed us both.
And what FOR? Jist for noth'n.
Jist because we stood on our
RIGHTS—that's what for. But I lay you
ain't a-goin' to threaten nobody any
more, Jim Turner. Put UP that
pistol, Bill."
Bill says:
"I don't want to, Jake Packard.
I'm for killin' him—and didn't he kill
old Hatfield jist the same way—and
don't he deserve it?"
"But I don't WANT him killed, and
I've got my reasons for it."
"Bless yo' heart for them words,
Jake Packard! I'll never forgit you
long's I live!" says the man on
the floor, sort of blubbering.
Packard didn't take no notice of that,
but hung up his lantern on a nail
and started towards where I was there
in the dark, and motioned Bill to
come. I crawfished as fast as I could
about two yards, but the boat
slanted so that I couldn't make very
good time; so to keep from getting
run over and catched I crawled into a
stateroom on the upper side. The
man came a-pawing along in the dark,
and when Packard got to my
stateroom, he says:
"Here—come in here."
And in he come, and Bill after him.
But before they got in I was up in
the upper berth, cornered, and sorry I
come. Then they stood there, with
their hands on the ledge of the berth,
and talked. I couldn't see them,
but I could tell where they was by the
whisky they'd been having. I was
glad I didn't drink whisky; but it
wouldn't made much difference anyway,
because most of the time they couldn't
a treed me because I didn't
breathe. I was too scared. And,
besides, a body COULDN'T breathe and
hear such talk. They talked low and
earnest. Bill wanted to kill
Turner. He says:
"He's said he'll tell, and he
will. If we was to give both our shares to
him NOW it wouldn't make no difference
after the row and the way we've
served him. Shore's you're born, he'll
turn State's evidence; now you
hear ME. I'm for putting him out of
his troubles."
"So'm I," says Packard, very
quiet.
"Blame it, I'd sorter begun to
think you wasn't. Well, then, that's all
right. Le's go and do it."
"Hold on a minute; I hain't had my
say yit. You listen to me.
Shooting's good, but there's quieter
ways if the thing's GOT to be done.
But what I say is this: it ain't good
sense to go court'n around after a
halter if you can git at what you're up
to in some way that's jist as
good and at the same time don't bring
you into no resks. Ain't that so?"
"You bet it is. But how you goin'
to manage it this time?"
"Well, my idea is this: we'll
rustle around and gather up whatever
pickins we've overlooked in the
staterooms, and shove for shore and hide
the truck. Then we'll wait. Now I say
it ain't a-goin' to be more'n two
hours befo' this wrack breaks up and
washes off down the river. See?
He'll be drownded, and won't have
nobody to blame for it but his own
self. I reckon that's a considerble
sight better 'n killin' of him. I'm
unfavorable to killin' a man as long as
you can git aroun' it; it ain't
good sense, it ain't good morals.
Ain't I right?"
"Yes, I reck'n you are. But
s'pose she DON'T break up and wash off?"
"Well, we can wait the two hours
anyway and see, can't we?"
"All right, then; come along."
So they started, and I lit out, all in
a cold sweat, and scrambled
forward. It was dark as pitch there;
but I said, in a kind of a coarse
whisper, "Jim!" and he
answered up, right at my elbow, with a sort of a
moan, and I says:
"Quick, Jim, it ain't no time for
fooling around and moaning; there's a
gang of murderers in yonder, and if we
don't hunt up their boat and set
her drifting down the river so these
fellows can't get away from the
wreck there's one of 'em going to be in
a bad fix. But if we find their
boat we can put ALL of 'em in a bad
fix—for the sheriff 'll get 'em.
Quick—hurry! I'll hunt the
labboard side, you hunt the stabboard.
You start at the raft, and—"
"Oh, my lordy, lordy! RAF'? Dey
ain' no raf' no mo'; she done broke
loose en gone I—en here we is!"
CHAPTER XIII.
WELL, I catched my breath and most
fainted. Shut up on a wreck with such
a gang as that! But it warn't no time
to be sentimentering. We'd GOT to
find that boat now—had to have it
for ourselves. So we went a-quaking
and shaking down the stabboard side,
and slow work it was, too—seemed a
week before we got to the stern. No
sign of a boat. Jim said he didn't
believe he could go any further—so
scared he hadn't hardly any strength
left, he said. But I said, come on, if
we get left on this wreck we are
in a fix, sure. So on we prowled
again. We struck for the stern of the
texas, and found it, and then scrabbled
along forwards on the skylight,
hanging on from shutter to shutter, for
the edge of the skylight was in
the water. When we got pretty close to
the cross-hall door there was the
skiff, sure enough! I could just
barely see her. I felt ever so
thankful. In another second I would a
been aboard of her, but just then
the door opened. One of the men stuck
his head out only about a couple
of foot from me, and I thought I was
gone; but he jerked it in again, and
says:
"Heave that blame lantern out o'
sight, Bill!"
He flung a bag of something into the
boat, and then got in himself and
set down. It was Packard. Then Bill
HE come out and got in. Packard
says, in a low voice:
"All ready—shove off!"
I couldn't hardly hang on to the
shutters, I was so weak. But Bill says:
"Hold on—'d you go through
him?"
"No. Didn't you?"
"No. So he's got his share o' the
cash yet."
"Well, then, come along; no use to
take truck and leave money."
"Say, won't he suspicion what
we're up to?"
"Maybe he won't. But we got to
have it anyway. Come along."
So they got out and went in.
The door slammed to because it was on
the careened side; and in a half
second I was in the boat, and Jim come
tumbling after me. I out with my
knife and cut the rope, and away we
went!
We didn't touch an oar, and we didn't
speak nor whisper, nor hardly even
breathe. We went gliding swift along,
dead silent, past the tip of the
paddle-box, and past the stern; then in
a second or two more we was a
hundred yards below the wreck, and the
darkness soaked her up, every last
sign of her, and we was safe, and
knowed it.
When we was three or four hundred yards
down-stream we see the lantern
show like a little spark at the texas
door for a second, and we knowed by
that that the rascals had missed their
boat, and was beginning to
understand that they was in just as
much trouble now as Jim Turner was.
Then Jim manned the oars, and we took
out after our raft. Now was the
first time that I begun to worry about
the men—I reckon I hadn't had
time to before. I begun to think how
dreadful it was, even for
murderers, to be in such a fix. I says
to myself, there ain't no telling
but I might come to be a murderer
myself yet, and then how would I like
it? So says I to Jim:
"The first light we see we'll land
a hundred yards below it or above it,
in a place where it's a good
hiding-place for you and the skiff, and then
I'll go and fix up some kind of a yarn,
and get somebody to go for that
gang and get them out of their scrape,
so they can be hung when their
time comes."
But that idea was a failure; for pretty
soon it begun to storm again, and
this time worse than ever. The rain
poured down, and never a light
showed; everybody in bed, I reckon. We
boomed along down the river,
watching for lights and watching for
our raft. After a long time the
rain let up, but the clouds stayed, and
the lightning kept whimpering,
and by and by a flash showed us a black
thing ahead, floating, and we
made for it.
It was the raft, and mighty glad was we
to get aboard of it again. We
seen a light now away down to the
right, on shore. So I said I would go
for it. The skiff was half full of
plunder which that gang had stole
there on the wreck. We hustled it on
to the raft in a pile, and I told
Jim to float along down, and show a
light when he judged he had gone
about two mile, and keep it burning
till I come; then I manned my oars
and shoved for the light. As I got
down towards it three or four more
showed—up on a hillside. It was
a village. I closed in above the shore
light, and laid on my oars and floated.
As I went by I see it was a
lantern hanging on the jackstaff of a
double-hull ferryboat. I skimmed
around for the watchman, a-wondering
whereabouts he slept; and by and by
I found him roosting on the bitts
forward, with his head down between his
knees. I gave his shoulder two or
three little shoves, and begun to cry.
He stirred up in a kind of a startlish
way; but when he see it was only
me he took a good gap and stretch, and
then he says:
"Hello, what's up? Don't cry,
bub. What's the trouble?"
I says:
"Pap, and mam, and sis, and—"
Then I broke down. He says:
"Oh, dang it now, DON'T take on
so; we all has to have our troubles, and
this 'n 'll come out all right. What's
the matter with 'em?"
"They're—they're—are
you the watchman of the boat?"
"Yes," he says, kind of
pretty-well-satisfied like. "I'm the captain and
the owner and the mate and the pilot
and watchman and head deck-hand; and
sometimes I'm the freight and
passengers. I ain't as rich as old Jim
Hornback, and I can't be so blame'
generous and good to Tom, Dick, and
Harry as what he is, and slam around
money the way he does; but I've told
him a many a time 't I wouldn't trade
places with him; for, says I, a
sailor's life's the life for me, and
I'm derned if I'D live two mile out
o' town, where there ain't nothing ever
goin' on, not for all his
spondulicks and as much more on top of
it. Says I—"
I broke in and says:
"They're in an awful peck of
trouble, and—"
"WHO is?"
"Why, pap and mam and sis and Miss
Hooker; and if you'd take your
ferryboat and go up there—"
"Up where? Where are they?"
"On the wreck."
"What wreck?"
"Why, there ain't but one."
"What, you don't mean the Walter
Scott?"
"Yes."
"Good land! what are they doin'
THERE, for gracious sakes?"
"Well, they didn't go there
a-purpose."
"I bet they didn't! Why, great
goodness, there ain't no chance for 'em
if they don't git off mighty quick!
Why, how in the nation did they ever
git into such a scrape?"
"Easy enough. Miss Hooker was
a-visiting up there to the town—"
"Yes, Booth's Landing—go
on."
"She was a-visiting there at
Booth's Landing, and just in the edge of the
evening she started over with her
nigger woman in the horse-ferry to stay
all night at her friend's house, Miss
What-you-may-call-her I disremember
her name—and they lost their
steering-oar, and swung around and went
a-floating down, stern first, about two
mile, and saddle-baggsed on the
wreck, and the ferryman and the nigger
woman and the horses was all lost,
but Miss Hooker she made a grab and got
aboard the wreck. Well, about an
hour after dark we come along down in
our trading-scow, and it was so
dark we didn't notice the wreck till we
was right on it; and so WE
saddle-baggsed; but all of us was saved
but Bill Whipple—and oh, he WAS
the best cretur!—I most wish 't
it had been me, I do."
"My George! It's the beatenest
thing I ever struck. And THEN what did
you all do?"
"Well, we hollered and took on,
but it's so wide there we couldn't make
nobody hear. So pap said somebody got
to get ashore and get help
somehow. I was the only one that could
swim, so I made a dash for it, and
Miss Hooker she said if I didn't strike
help sooner, come here and hunt
up her uncle, and he'd fix the thing.
I made the land about a mile
below, and been fooling along ever
since, trying to get people to do
something, but they said, 'What, in
such a night and such a current?
There ain't no sense in it; go for the
steam ferry.' Now if you'll go
and—"
"By Jackson, I'd LIKE to, and,
blame it, I don't know but I will; but who
in the dingnation's a-going' to PAY for
it? Do you reckon your pap—"
"Why THAT'S all right. Miss
Hooker she tole me, PARTICULAR, that her
uncle Hornback—"
"Great guns! is HE her uncle?
Looky here, you break for that light over
yonder-way, and turn out west when you
git there, and about a quarter of
a mile out you'll come to the tavern;
tell 'em to dart you out to Jim
Hornback's, and he'll foot the bill.
And don't you fool around any,
because he'll want to know the news.
Tell him I'll have his niece all
safe before he can get to town. Hump
yourself, now; I'm a-going up
around the corner here to roust out my
engineer."
I struck for the light, but as soon as
he turned the corner I went back
and got into my skiff and bailed her
out, and then pulled up shore in the
easy water about six hundred yards, and
tucked myself in among some
woodboats; for I couldn't rest easy
till I could see the ferryboat start.
But take it all around, I was feeling
ruther comfortable on accounts of
taking all this trouble for that gang,
for not many would a done it. I
wished the widow knowed about it. I
judged she would be proud of me for
helping these rapscallions, because
rapscallions and dead beats is the
kind the widow and good people takes
the most interest in.
Well, before long here comes the wreck,
dim and dusky, sliding along
down! A kind of cold shiver went
through me, and then I struck out for
her. She was very deep, and I see in a
minute there warn't much chance
for anybody being alive in her. I
pulled all around her and hollered a
little, but there wasn't any answer;
all dead still. I felt a little bit
heavy-hearted about the gang, but not
much, for I reckoned if they could
stand it I could.
Then here comes the ferryboat; so I
shoved for the middle of the river on
a long down-stream slant; and when I
judged I was out of eye-reach I laid
on my oars, and looked back and see her
go and smell around the wreck for
Miss Hooker's remainders, because the
captain would know her uncle
Hornback would want them; and then
pretty soon the ferryboat give it up
and went for the shore, and I laid into
my work and went a-booming down
the river.
It did seem a powerful long time before
Jim's light showed up; and when
it did show it looked like it was a
thousand mile off. By the time I got
there the sky was beginning to get a
little gray in the east; so we
struck for an island, and hid the raft,
and sunk the skiff, and turned in
and slept like dead people.
CHAPTER XIV.
BY and by, when we got up, we turned
over the truck the gang had stole
off of the wreck, and found boots, and
blankets, and clothes, and all
sorts of other things, and a lot of
books, and a spyglass, and three
boxes of seegars. We hadn't ever been
this rich before in neither of our
lives. The seegars was prime. We laid
off all the afternoon in the
woods talking, and me reading the
books, and having a general good time.
I told Jim all about what happened
inside the wreck and at the ferryboat,
and I said these kinds of things was
adventures; but he said he didn't
want no more adventures. He said that
when I went in the texas and he
crawled back to get on the raft and
found her gone he nearly died,
because he judged it was all up with
HIM anyway it could be fixed; for if
he didn't get saved he would get
drownded; and if he did get saved,
whoever saved him would send him back
home so as to get the reward, and
then Miss Watson would sell him South,
sure. Well, he was right; he was
most always right; he had an uncommon
level head for a nigger.
I read considerable to Jim about kings
and dukes and earls and such, and
how gaudy they dressed, and how much
style they put on, and called each
other your majesty, and your grace, and
your lordship, and so on, 'stead
of mister; and Jim's eyes bugged out,
and he was interested. He says:
"I didn' know dey was so many un
um. I hain't hearn 'bout none un um,
skasely, but ole King Sollermun, onless
you counts dem kings dat's in a
pack er k'yards. How much do a king
git?"
"Get?" I says; "why,
they get a thousand dollars a month if they want
it; they can have just as much as they
want; everything belongs to them."
"AIN' dat gay? En what dey got to
do, Huck?"
"THEY don't do nothing! Why, how
you talk! They just set around."
"No; is dat so?"
"Of course it is. They just set
around—except, maybe, when there's a
war; then they go to the war. But
other times they just lazy around; or
go hawking—just hawking and
sp—Sh!—d' you hear a noise?"
We skipped out and looked; but it
warn't nothing but the flutter of a
steamboat's wheel away down, coming
around the point; so we come back.
"Yes," says I, "and
other times, when things is dull, they fuss with the
parlyment; and if everybody don't go
just so he whacks their heads off.
But mostly they hang round the harem."
"Roun' de which?"
"Harem."
"What's de harem?"
"The place where he keeps his
wives. Don't you know about the harem?
Solomon had one; he had about a million
wives."
"Why, yes, dat's so; I—I'd
done forgot it. A harem's a bo'd'n-house, I
reck'n. Mos' likely dey has rackety
times in de nussery. En I reck'n de
wives quarrels considable; en dat
'crease de racket. Yit dey say
Sollermun de wises' man dat ever live'.
I doan' take no stock in dat.
Bekase why: would a wise man want to
live in de mids' er sich a
blim-blammin' all de time? No—'deed
he wouldn't. A wise man 'ud take
en buil' a biler-factry; en den he
could shet DOWN de biler-factry when
he want to res'."
"Well, but he WAS the wisest man,
anyway; because the widow she told me
so, her own self."
"I doan k'yer what de widder say,
he WARN'T no wise man nuther. He had
some er de dad-fetchedes' ways I ever
see. Does you know 'bout dat chile
dat he 'uz gwyne to chop in two?"
"Yes, the widow told me all about
it."
"WELL, den! Warn' dat de
beatenes' notion in de worl'? You jes' take en
look at it a minute. Dah's de stump,
dah—dat's one er de women; heah's
you—dat's de yuther one; I's
Sollermun; en dish yer dollar bill's de
chile. Bofe un you claims it. What
does I do? Does I shin aroun'
mongs' de neighbors en fine out which
un you de bill DO b'long to, en
han' it over to de right one, all safe
en soun', de way dat anybody dat
had any gumption would? No; I take en
whack de bill in TWO, en give half
un it to you, en de yuther half to de
yuther woman. Dat's de way
Sollermun was gwyne to do wid de chile.
Now I want to ast you: what's
de use er dat half a bill?—can't
buy noth'n wid it. En what use is a
half a chile? I wouldn' give a dern
for a million un um."
"But hang it, Jim, you've clean
missed the point—blame it, you've missed
it a thousand mile."
"Who? Me? Go 'long. Doan' talk
to me 'bout yo' pints. I reck'n I
knows sense when I sees it; en dey ain'
no sense in sich doin's as dat.
De 'spute warn't 'bout a half a chile,
de 'spute was 'bout a whole chile;
en de man dat think he kin settle a
'spute 'bout a whole chile wid a half
a chile doan' know enough to come in
out'n de rain. Doan' talk to me
'bout Sollermun, Huck, I knows him by
de back."
"But I tell you you don't get the
point."
"Blame de point! I reck'n I knows
what I knows. En mine you, de REAL
pint is down furder—it's down
deeper. It lays in de way Sollermun was
raised. You take a man dat's got on'y
one or two chillen; is dat man
gwyne to be waseful o' chillen? No, he
ain't; he can't 'ford it. HE
know how to value 'em. But you take a
man dat's got 'bout five million
chillen runnin' roun' de house, en it's
diffunt. HE as soon chop a chile
in two as a cat. Dey's plenty mo'. A
chile er two, mo' er less, warn't
no consekens to Sollermun, dad fatch
him!"
I never see such a nigger. If he got a
notion in his head once, there
warn't no getting it out again. He was
the most down on Solomon of any
nigger I ever see. So I went to
talking about other kings, and let
Solomon slide. I told about Louis
Sixteenth that got his head cut off in
France long time ago; and about his
little boy the dolphin, that would a
been a king, but they took and shut him
up in jail, and some say he died
there.
"Po' little chap."
"But some says he got out and got
away, and come to America."
"Dat's good! But he'll be pooty
lonesome—dey ain' no kings here, is
dey, Huck?"
"No."
"Den he cain't git no situation.
What he gwyne to do?"
"Well, I don't know. Some of them
gets on the police, and some of them
learns people how to talk French."
"Why, Huck, doan' de French people
talk de same way we does?"
"NO, Jim; you couldn't understand
a word they said—not a single word."
"Well, now, I be ding-busted! How
do dat come?"
"I don't know; but it's so. I got
some of their jabber out of a book.
S'pose a man was to come to you and say
Polly-voo-franzy—what would you
think?"
"I wouldn' think nuff'n; I'd take
en bust him over de head—dat is, if he
warn't white. I wouldn't 'low no
nigger to call me dat."
"Shucks, it ain't calling you
anything. It's only saying, do you know
how to talk French?"
"Well, den, why couldn't he SAY
it?"
"Why, he IS a-saying it. That's a
Frenchman's WAY of saying it."
"Well, it's a blame ridicklous
way, en I doan' want to hear no mo' 'bout
it. Dey ain' no sense in it."
"Looky here, Jim; does a cat talk
like we do?"
"No, a cat don't."
"Well, does a cow?"
"No, a cow don't, nuther."
"Does a cat talk like a cow, or a
cow talk like a cat?"
"No, dey don't."
"It's natural and right for 'em to
talk different from each other, ain't
it?"
"Course."
"And ain't it natural and right
for a cat and a cow to talk different
from US?"
"Why, mos' sholy it is."
"Well, then, why ain't it natural
and right for a FRENCHMAN to talk
different from us? You answer me
that."
"Is a cat a man, Huck?"
"No."
"Well, den, dey ain't no sense in
a cat talkin' like a man. Is a cow a
man?—er is a cow a cat?"
"No, she ain't either of them."
"Well, den, she ain't got no
business to talk like either one er the
yuther of 'em. Is a Frenchman a man?"
"Yes."
"WELL, den! Dad blame it, why
doan' he TALK like a man? You answer me
DAT!"
I see it warn't no use wasting
words—you can't learn a nigger to argue.
So I quit.
CHAPTER XV.
WE judged that three nights more would
fetch us to Cairo, at the bottom
of Illinois, where the Ohio River comes
in, and that was what we was
after. We would sell the raft and get
on a steamboat and go way up the
Ohio amongst the free States, and then
be out of trouble.
Well, the second night a fog begun to
come on, and we made for a towhead
to tie to, for it wouldn't do to try to
run in a fog; but when I paddled
ahead in the canoe, with the line to
make fast, there warn't anything but
little saplings to tie to. I passed
the line around one of them right on
the edge of the cut bank, but there was
a stiff current, and the raft
come booming down so lively she tore it
out by the roots and away she
went. I see the fog closing down, and
it made me so sick and scared I
couldn't budge for most a half a minute
it seemed to me—and then there
warn't no raft in sight; you couldn't
see twenty yards. I jumped into
the canoe and run back to the stern,
and grabbed the paddle and set her
back a stroke. But she didn't come. I
was in such a hurry I hadn't
untied her. I got up and tried to
untie her, but I was so excited my
hands shook so I couldn't hardly do
anything with them.
As soon as I got started I took out
after the raft, hot and heavy, right
down the towhead. That was all right
as far as it went, but the towhead
warn't sixty yards long, and the minute
I flew by the foot of it I shot
out into the solid white fog, and
hadn't no more idea which way I was
going than a dead man.
Thinks I, it won't do to paddle; first
I know I'll run into the bank or a
towhead or something; I got to set
still and float, and yet it's mighty
fidgety business to have to hold your
hands still at such a time. I
whooped and listened. Away down there
somewheres I hears a small whoop,
and up comes my spirits. I went
tearing after it, listening sharp to
hear it again. The next time it come I
see I warn't heading for it, but
heading away to the right of it. And
the next time I was heading away to
the left of it—and not gaining on
it much either, for I was flying
around, this way and that and t'other,
but it was going straight ahead
all the time.
I did wish the fool would think to beat
a tin pan, and beat it all the
time, but he never did, and it was the
still places between the whoops
that was making the trouble for me.
Well, I fought along, and directly I
hears the whoop BEHIND me. I was
tangled good now. That was somebody
else's whoop, or else I was turned
around.
I throwed the paddle down. I heard the
whoop again; it was behind me
yet, but in a different place; it kept
coming, and kept changing its
place, and I kept answering, till by
and by it was in front of me again,
and I knowed the current had swung the
canoe's head down-stream, and I
was all right if that was Jim and not
some other raftsman hollering. I
couldn't tell nothing about voices in a
fog, for nothing don't look
natural nor sound natural in a fog.
The whooping went on, and in about a
minute I come a-booming down on a
cut bank with smoky ghosts of big trees
on it, and the current throwed me
off to the left and shot by, amongst a
lot of snags that fairly roared,
the currrent was tearing by them so
swift.
In another second or two it was solid
white and still again. I set
perfectly still then, listening to my
heart thump, and I reckon I didn't
draw a breath while it thumped a
hundred.
I just give up then. I knowed what the
matter was. That cut bank was an
island, and Jim had gone down t'other
side of it. It warn't no towhead
that you could float by in ten minutes.
It had the big timber of a
regular island; it might be five or six
miles long and more than half a
mile wide.
I kept quiet, with my ears cocked,
about fifteen minutes, I reckon. I
was floating along, of course, four or
five miles an hour; but you don't
ever think of that. No, you FEEL like
you are laying dead still on the
water; and if a little glimpse of a
snag slips by you don't think to
yourself how fast YOU'RE going, but you
catch your breath and think, my!
how that snag's tearing along. If you
think it ain't dismal and lonesome
out in a fog that way by yourself in
the night, you try it once—you'll
see.
Next, for about a half an hour, I
whoops now and then; at last I hears
the answer a long ways off, and tries
to follow it, but I couldn't do it,
and directly I judged I'd got into a
nest of towheads, for I had little
dim glimpses of them on both sides of
me—sometimes just a narrow channel
between, and some that I couldn't see I
knowed was there because I'd hear
the wash of the current against the old
dead brush and trash that hung
over the banks. Well, I warn't long
loosing the whoops down amongst the
towheads; and I only tried to chase
them a little while, anyway, because
it was worse than chasing a
Jack-o'-lantern. You never knowed a sound
dodge around so, and swap places so
quick and so much.
I had to claw away from the bank pretty
lively four or five times, to
keep from knocking the islands out of
the river; and so I judged the raft
must be butting into the bank every now
and then, or else it would get
further ahead and clear out of
hearing—it was floating a little faster
than what I was.
Well, I seemed to be in the open river
again by and by, but I couldn't
hear no sign of a whoop nowheres. I
reckoned Jim had fetched up on a
snag, maybe, and it was all up with
him. I was good and tired, so I laid
down in the canoe and said I wouldn't
bother no more. I didn't want to
go to sleep, of course; but I was so
sleepy I couldn't help it; so I
thought I would take jest one little
cat-nap.
But I reckon it was more than a
cat-nap, for when I waked up the stars
was shining bright, the fog was all
gone, and I was spinning down a big
bend stern first. First I didn't know
where I was; I thought I was
dreaming; and when things began to come
back to me they seemed to come up
dim out of last week.
It was a monstrous big river here, with
the tallest and the thickest kind
of timber on both banks; just a solid
wall, as well as I could see by the
stars. I looked away down-stream, and
seen a black speck on the water.
I took after it; but when I got to it
it warn't nothing but a couple of
sawlogs made fast together. Then I see
another speck, and chased that;
then another, and this time I was
right. It was the raft.
When I got to it Jim was setting there
with his head down between his
knees, asleep, with his right arm
hanging over the steering-oar. The
other oar was smashed off, and the raft
was littered up with leaves and
branches and dirt. So she'd had a
rough time.
I made fast and laid down under Jim's
nose on the raft, and began to gap,
and stretch my fists out against Jim,
and says:
"Hello, Jim, have I been asleep?
Why didn't you stir me up?"
"Goodness gracious, is dat you,
Huck? En you ain' dead—you ain'
drownded—you's back agin? It's
too good for true, honey, it's too
good for true. Lemme look at you chile,
lemme feel o' you. No, you ain'
dead! you's back agin, 'live en soun',
jis de same ole Huck—de same ole
Huck, thanks to goodness!"
"What's the matter with you, Jim?
You been a-drinking?"
"Drinkin'? Has I ben a-drinkin'?
Has I had a chance to be a-drinkin'?"
"Well, then, what makes you talk
so wild?"
"How does I talk wild?"
"HOW? Why, hain't you been
talking about my coming back, and all that
stuff, as if I'd been gone away?"
"Huck—Huck Finn, you look me
in de eye; look me in de eye. HAIN'T you
ben gone away?"
"Gone away? Why, what in the
nation do you mean? I hain't been gone
anywheres. Where would I go to?"
"Well, looky here, boss, dey's
sumf'n wrong, dey is. Is I ME, or who IS
I? Is I heah, or whah IS I? Now dat's
what I wants to know."
"Well, I think you're here, plain
enough, but I think you're a
tangle-headed old fool, Jim."
"I is, is I? Well, you answer me
dis: Didn't you tote out de line in de
canoe fer to make fas' to de tow-head?"
"No, I didn't. What tow-head? I
hain't see no tow-head."
"You hain't seen no towhead?
Looky here, didn't de line pull loose en de
raf' go a-hummin' down de river, en
leave you en de canoe behine in de
fog?"
"What fog?"
"Why, de fog!—de fog dat's
been aroun' all night. En didn't you whoop,
en didn't I whoop, tell we got mix' up
in de islands en one un us got
los' en t'other one was jis' as good as
los', 'kase he didn' know whah he
wuz? En didn't I bust up agin a lot er
dem islands en have a turrible
time en mos' git drownded? Now ain'
dat so, boss—ain't it so? You
answer me dat."
"Well, this is too many for me,
Jim. I hain't seen no fog, nor no
islands, nor no troubles, nor nothing.
I been setting here talking with
you all night till you went to sleep
about ten minutes ago, and I reckon
I done the same. You couldn't a got
drunk in that time, so of course
you've been dreaming."
"Dad fetch it, how is I gwyne to
dream all dat in ten minutes?"
"Well, hang it all, you did dream
it, because there didn't any of it
happen."
"But, Huck, it's all jis' as plain
to me as—"
"It don't make no difference how
plain it is; there ain't nothing in it.
I know, because I've been here all the
time."
Jim didn't say nothing for about five
minutes, but set there studying
over it. Then he says:
"Well, den, I reck'n I did dream
it, Huck; but dog my cats ef it ain't de
powerfullest dream I ever see. En I
hain't ever had no dream b'fo' dat's
tired me like dis one."
"Oh, well, that's all right,
because a dream does tire a body like
everything sometimes. But this one was
a staving dream; tell me all
about it, Jim."
So Jim went to work and told me the
whole thing right through, just as it
happened, only he painted it up
considerable. Then he said he must start
in and "'terpret" it, because
it was sent for a warning. He said the
first towhead stood for a man that
would try to do us some good, but the
current was another man that would get
us away from him. The whoops was
warnings that would come to us every
now and then, and if we didn't try
hard to make out to understand them
they'd just take us into bad luck,
'stead of keeping us out of it. The
lot of towheads was troubles we was
going to get into with quarrelsome
people and all kinds of mean folks,
but if we minded our business and
didn't talk back and aggravate them, we
would pull through and get out of the
fog and into the big clear river,
which was the free States, and wouldn't
have no more trouble.
It had clouded up pretty dark just
after I got on to the raft, but it was
clearing up again now.
"Oh, well, that's all interpreted
well enough as far as it goes, Jim," I
says; "but what does THESE things
stand for?"
It was the leaves and rubbish on the
raft and the smashed oar. You could
see them first-rate now.
Jim looked at the trash, and then
looked at me, and back at the trash
again. He had got the dream fixed so
strong in his head that he couldn't
seem to shake it loose and get the
facts back into its place again right
away. But when he did get the thing
straightened around he looked at me
steady without ever smiling, and says:
"What do dey stan' for? I'se
gwyne to tell you. When I got all wore out
wid work, en wid de callin' for you, en
went to sleep, my heart wuz mos'
broke bekase you wuz los', en I didn'
k'yer no' mo' what become er me en
de raf'. En when I wake up en fine you
back agin, all safe en soun', de
tears come, en I could a got down on my
knees en kiss yo' foot, I's so
thankful. En all you wuz thinkin' 'bout
wuz how you could make a fool uv
ole Jim wid a lie. Dat truck dah is
TRASH; en trash is what people is
dat puts dirt on de head er dey fren's
en makes 'em ashamed."
Then he got up slow and walked to the
wigwam, and went in there without
saying anything but that. But that was
enough. It made me feel so mean
I could almost kissed HIS foot to get
him to take it back.
It was fifteen minutes before I could
work myself up to go and humble
myself to a nigger; but I done it, and
I warn't ever sorry for it
afterwards, neither. I didn't do him
no more mean tricks, and I wouldn't
done that one if I'd a knowed it would
make him feel that way.
CHAPTER XVI.
WE slept most all day, and started out
at night, a little ways behind a
monstrous long raft that was as long
going by as a procession. She had
four long sweeps at each end, so we
judged she carried as many as thirty
men, likely. She had five big wigwams
aboard, wide apart, and an open
camp fire in the middle, and a tall
flag-pole at each end. There was a
power of style about her. It AMOUNTED
to something being a raftsman on
such a craft as that.
We went drifting down into a big bend,
and the night clouded up and got
hot. The river was very wide, and was
walled with solid timber on both
sides; you couldn't see a break in it
hardly ever, or a light. We talked
about Cairo, and wondered whether we
would know it when we got to it. I
said likely we wouldn't, because I had
heard say there warn't but about a
dozen houses there, and if they didn't
happen to have them lit up, how
was we going to know we was passing a
town? Jim said if the two big
rivers joined together there, that
would show. But I said maybe we might
think we was passing the foot of an
island and coming into the same old
river again. That disturbed Jim—and
me too. So the question was, what
to do? I said, paddle ashore the first
time a light showed, and tell
them pap was behind, coming along with
a trading-scow, and was a green
hand at the business, and wanted to
know how far it was to Cairo. Jim
thought it was a good idea, so we took
a smoke on it and waited.
There warn't nothing to do now but to
look out sharp for the town, and
not pass it without seeing it. He said
he'd be mighty sure to see it,
because he'd be a free man the minute
he seen it, but if he missed it
he'd be in a slave country again and no
more show for freedom. Every
little while he jumps up and says:
"Dah she is?"
But it warn't. It was
Jack-o'-lanterns, or lightning bugs; so he set
down again, and went to watching, same
as before. Jim said it made him
all over trembly and feverish to be so
close to freedom. Well, I can
tell you it made me all over trembly
and feverish, too, to hear him,
because I begun to get it through my
head that he WAS most free—and who
was to blame for it? Why, ME. I
couldn't get that out of my conscience,
no how nor no way. It got to troubling
me so I couldn't rest; I couldn't
stay still in one place. It hadn't
ever come home to me before, what
this thing was that I was doing. But
now it did; and it stayed with me,
and scorched me more and more. I tried
to make out to myself that I
warn't to blame, because I didn't run
Jim off from his rightful owner;
but it warn't no use, conscience up and
says, every time, "But you knowed
he was running for his freedom, and you
could a paddled ashore and told
somebody." That was so—I
couldn't get around that noway. That was
where it pinched. Conscience says to
me, "What had poor Miss Watson done
to you that you could see her nigger go
off right under your eyes and
never say one single word? What did
that poor old woman do to you that
you could treat her so mean? Why, she
tried to learn you your book, she
tried to learn you your manners, she
tried to be good to you every way
she knowed how. THAT'S what she done."
I got to feeling so mean and so
miserable I most wished I was dead. I
fidgeted up and down the raft, abusing
myself to myself, and Jim was
fidgeting up and down past me. We
neither of us could keep still. Every
time he danced around and says, "Dah's
Cairo!" it went through me like a
shot, and I thought if it WAS Cairo I
reckoned I would die of
miserableness.
Jim talked out loud all the time while
I was talking to myself. He was
saying how the first thing he would do
when he got to a free State he
would go to saving up money and never
spend a single cent, and when he
got enough he would buy his wife, which
was owned on a farm close to
where Miss Watson lived; and then they
would both work to buy the two
children, and if their master wouldn't
sell them, they'd get an
Ab'litionist to go and steal them.
It most froze me to hear such talk. He
wouldn't ever dared to talk such
talk in his life before. Just see what
a difference it made in him the
minute he judged he was about free. It
was according to the old saying,
"Give a nigger an inch and he'll
take an ell." Thinks I, this is what
comes of my not thinking. Here was
this nigger, which I had as good as
helped to run away, coming right out
flat-footed and saying he would
steal his children—children that
belonged to a man I didn't even know; a
man that hadn't ever done me no harm.
I was sorry to hear Jim say that, it
was such a lowering of him. My
conscience got to stirring me up hotter
than ever, until at last I says
to it, "Let up on me—it
ain't too late yet—I'll paddle ashore at the
first light and tell." I felt
easy and happy and light as a feather
right off. All my troubles was gone.
I went to looking out sharp for a
light, and sort of singing to myself.
By and by one showed. Jim sings
out:
"We's safe, Huck, we's safe! Jump
up and crack yo' heels! Dat's de good
ole Cairo at las', I jis knows it!"
I says:
"I'll take the canoe and go and
see, Jim. It mightn't be, you know."
He jumped and got the canoe ready, and
put his old coat in the bottom for
me to set on, and give me the paddle;
and as I shoved off, he says:
"Pooty soon I'll be a-shout'n' for
joy, en I'll say, it's all on accounts
o' Huck; I's a free man, en I couldn't
ever ben free ef it hadn' ben for
Huck; Huck done it. Jim won't ever
forgit you, Huck; you's de bes' fren'
Jim's ever had; en you's de ONLY fren'
ole Jim's got now."
I was paddling off, all in a sweat to
tell on him; but when he says this,
it seemed to kind of take the tuck all
out of me. I went along slow
then, and I warn't right down certain
whether I was glad I started or
whether I warn't. When I was fifty
yards off, Jim says:
"Dah you goes, de ole true Huck;
de on'y white genlman dat ever kep' his
promise to ole Jim."
Well, I just felt sick. But I says, I
GOT to do it—I can't get OUT of
it. Right then along comes a skiff
with two men in it with guns, and
they stopped and I stopped. One of
them says:
"What's that yonder?"
"A piece of a raft," I says.
"Do you belong on it?"
"Yes, sir."
"Any men on it?"
"Only one, sir."
"Well, there's five niggers run
off to-night up yonder, above the head of
the bend. Is your man white or black?"
I didn't answer up prompt. I tried to,
but the words wouldn't come. I
tried for a second or two to brace up
and out with it, but I warn't man
enough—hadn't the spunk of a
rabbit. I see I was weakening; so I just
give up trying, and up and says:
"He's white."
"I reckon we'll go and see for
ourselves."
"I wish you would," says I,
"because it's pap that's there, and maybe
you'd help me tow the raft ashore where
the light is. He's sick—and so
is mam and Mary Ann."
"Oh, the devil! we're in a hurry,
boy. But I s'pose we've got to. Come,
buckle to your paddle, and let's get
along."
I buckled to my paddle and they laid to
their oars. When we had made a
stroke or two, I says:
"Pap'll be mighty much obleeged to
you, I can tell you. Everybody goes
away when I want them to help me tow
the raft ashore, and I can't do it
by myself."
"Well, that's infernal mean. Odd,
too. Say, boy, what's the matter with
your father?"
"It's the—a—the—well,
it ain't anything much."
They stopped pulling. It warn't but a
mighty little ways to the raft
now. One says:
"Boy, that's a lie. What IS the
matter with your pap? Answer up square
now, and it'll be the better for you."
"I will, sir, I will, honest—but
don't leave us, please. It's the—the
—Gentlemen, if you'll only pull
ahead, and let me heave you the
headline, you won't have to come a-near
the raft—please do."
"Set her back, John, set her
back!" says one. They backed water. "Keep
away, boy—keep to looard.
Confound it, I just expect the wind has
blowed it to us. Your pap's got the
small-pox, and you know it precious
well. Why didn't you come out and say
so? Do you want to spread it all
over?"
"Well," says I, a-blubbering,
"I've told everybody before, and they just
went away and left us."
"Poor devil, there's something in
that. We are right down sorry for you,
but we—well, hang it, we don't
want the small-pox, you see. Look here,
I'll tell you what to do. Don't you
try to land by yourself, or you'll
smash everything to pieces. You float
along down about twenty miles, and
you'll come to a town on the left-hand
side of the river. It will be
long after sun-up then, and when you
ask for help you tell them your
folks are all down with chills and
fever. Don't be a fool again, and let
people guess what is the matter. Now
we're trying to do you a kindness;
so you just put twenty miles between
us, that's a good boy. It wouldn't
do any good to land yonder where the
light is—it's only a wood-yard.
Say, I reckon your father's poor, and
I'm bound to say he's in pretty
hard luck. Here, I'll put a
twenty-dollar gold piece on this board, and
you get it when it floats by. I feel
mighty mean to leave you; but my
kingdom! it won't do to fool with
small-pox, don't you see?"
"Hold on, Parker," says the
other man, "here's a twenty to put on the
board for me. Good-bye, boy; you do as
Mr. Parker told you, and you'll
be all right."
"That's so, my boy—good-bye,
good-bye. If you see any runaway niggers
you get help and nab them, and you can
make some money by it."
"Good-bye, sir," says I; "I
won't let no runaway niggers get by me if I
can help it."
They went off and I got aboard the
raft, feeling bad and low, because I
knowed very well I had done wrong, and
I see it warn't no use for me to
try to learn to do right; a body that
don't get STARTED right when he's
little ain't got no show—when the
pinch comes there ain't nothing to
back him up and keep him to his work,
and so he gets beat. Then I
thought a minute, and says to myself,
hold on; s'pose you'd a done right
and give Jim up, would you felt better
than what you do now? No, says I,
I'd feel bad—I'd feel just the
same way I do now. Well, then, says I,
what's the use you learning to do right
when it's troublesome to do right
and ain't no trouble to do wrong, and
the wages is just the same? I was
stuck. I couldn't answer that. So I
reckoned I wouldn't bother no more
about it, but after this always do
whichever come handiest at the time.
I went into the wigwam; Jim warn't
there. I looked all around; he warn't
anywhere. I says:
"Jim!"
"Here I is, Huck. Is dey out o'
sight yit? Don't talk loud."
He was in the river under the stern
oar, with just his nose out. I told
him they were out of sight, so he come
aboard. He says:
"I was a-listenin' to all de talk,
en I slips into de river en was gwyne
to shove for sho' if dey come aboard.
Den I was gwyne to swim to de raf'
agin when dey was gone. But lawsy, how
you did fool 'em, Huck! Dat WUZ
de smartes' dodge! I tell you, chile,
I'spec it save' ole Jim—ole Jim
ain't going to forgit you for dat,
honey."
Then we talked about the money. It was
a pretty good raise—twenty
dollars apiece. Jim said we could take
deck passage on a steamboat now,
and the money would last us as far as
we wanted to go in the free States.
He said twenty mile more warn't far for
the raft to go, but he wished we
was already there.
Towards daybreak we tied up, and Jim
was mighty particular about hiding
the raft good. Then he worked all day
fixing things in bundles, and
getting all ready to quit rafting.
That night about ten we hove in sight
of the lights of a town away down
in a left-hand bend.
I went off in the canoe to ask about
it. Pretty soon I found a man out
in the river with a skiff, setting a
trot-line. I ranged up and says:
"Mister, is that town Cairo?"
"Cairo? no. You must be a blame'
fool."
"What town is it, mister?"
"If you want to know, go and find
out. If you stay here botherin' around
me for about a half a minute longer
you'll get something you won't want."
I paddled to the raft. Jim was awful
disappointed, but I said never
mind, Cairo would be the next place, I
reckoned.
We passed another town before daylight,
and I was going out again; but it
was high ground, so I didn't go. No
high ground about Cairo, Jim said.
I had forgot it. We laid up for the
day on a towhead tolerable close to
the left-hand bank. I begun to
suspicion something. So did Jim. I
says:
"Maybe we went by Cairo in the fog
that night."
He says:
"Doan' le's talk about it, Huck.
Po' niggers can't have no luck. I
awluz 'spected dat rattlesnake-skin
warn't done wid its work."
"I wish I'd never seen that
snake-skin, Jim—I do wish I'd never laid
eyes on it."
"It ain't yo' fault, Huck; you
didn' know. Don't you blame yo'self 'bout
it."
When it was daylight, here was the
clear Ohio water inshore, sure enough,
and outside was the old regular Muddy!
So it was all up with Cairo.
We talked it all over. It wouldn't do
to take to the shore; we couldn't
take the raft up the stream, of course.
There warn't no way but to wait
for dark, and start back in the canoe
and take the chances. So we slept
all day amongst the cottonwood thicket,
so as to be fresh for the work,
and when we went back to the raft about
dark the canoe was gone!
We didn't say a word for a good while.
There warn't anything to say. We
both knowed well enough it was some
more work of the rattlesnake-skin; so
what was the use to talk about it? It
would only look like we was
finding fault, and that would be bound
to fetch more bad luck—and keep
on fetching it, too, till we knowed
enough to keep still.
By and by we talked about what we
better do, and found there warn't no
way but just to go along down with the
raft till we got a chance to buy a
canoe to go back in. We warn't going
to borrow it when there warn't
anybody around, the way pap would do,
for that might set people after us.
So we shoved out after dark on the
raft.
Anybody that don't believe yet that
it's foolishness to handle a
snake-skin, after all that that
snake-skin done for us, will believe
it now if they read on and see what
more it done for us.
The place to buy canoes is off of rafts
laying up at shore. But we
didn't see no rafts laying up; so we
went along during three hours and
more. Well, the night got gray and
ruther thick, which is the next
meanest thing to fog. You can't tell
the shape of the river, and you
can't see no distance. It got to be
very late and still, and then along
comes a steamboat up the river. We lit
the lantern, and judged she would
see it. Up-stream boats didn't generly
come close to us; they go out and
follow the bars and hunt for easy water
under the reefs; but nights like
this they bull right up the channel
against the whole river.
We could hear her pounding along, but
we didn't see her good till she was
close. She aimed right for us. Often
they do that and try to see how
close they can come without touching;
sometimes the wheel bites off a
sweep, and then the pilot sticks his
head out and laughs, and thinks he's
mighty smart. Well, here she comes,
and we said she was going to try and
shave us; but she didn't seem to be
sheering off a bit. She was a big
one, and she was coming in a hurry,
too, looking like a black cloud with
rows of glow-worms around it; but all
of a sudden she bulged out, big and
scary, with a long row of wide-open
furnace doors shining like red-hot
teeth, and her monstrous bows and
guards hanging right over us. There
was a yell at us, and a jingling of
bells to stop the engines, a powwow
of cussing, and whistling of steam—and
as Jim went overboard on one side
and I on the other, she come smashing
straight through the raft.
I dived—and I aimed to find the
bottom, too, for a thirty-foot wheel had
got to go over me, and I wanted it to
have plenty of room. I could
always stay under water a minute; this
time I reckon I stayed under a
minute and a half. Then I bounced for
the top in a hurry, for I was
nearly busting. I popped out to my
armpits and blowed the water out of
my nose, and puffed a bit. Of course
there was a booming current; and of
course that boat started her engines
again ten seconds after she stopped
them, for they never cared much for
raftsmen; so now she was churning
along up the river, out of sight in the
thick weather, though I could
hear her.
I sung out for Jim about a dozen times,
but I didn't get any answer; so I
grabbed a plank that touched me while I
was "treading water," and struck
out for shore, shoving it ahead of me.
But I made out to see that the
drift of the current was towards the
left-hand shore, which meant that I
was in a crossing; so I changed off and
went that way.
It was one of these long, slanting,
two-mile crossings; so I was a good
long time in getting over. I made a
safe landing, and clumb up the bank.
I couldn't see but a little ways, but I
went poking along over rough
ground for a quarter of a mile or more,
and then I run across a big
old-fashioned double log-house before I
noticed it. I was going to rush
by and get away, but a lot of dogs
jumped out and went to howling and
barking at me, and I knowed better than
to move another peg.
CHAPTER XVII.
IN about a minute somebody spoke out of
a window without putting his head
out, and says:
"Be done, boys! Who's there?"
I says:
"It's me."
"Who's me?"
"George Jackson, sir."
"What do you want?"
"I don't want nothing, sir. I
only want to go along by, but the dogs
won't let me."
"What are you prowling around here
this time of night for—hey?"
"I warn't prowling around, sir, I
fell overboard off of the steamboat."
"Oh, you did, did you? Strike a
light there, somebody. What did you say
your name was?"
"George Jackson, sir. I'm only a
boy."
"Look here, if you're telling the
truth you needn't be afraid—nobody'll
hurt you. But don't try to budge;
stand right where you are. Rouse out
Bob and Tom, some of you, and fetch the
guns. George Jackson, is there
anybody with you?"
"No, sir, nobody."
I heard the people stirring around in
the house now, and see a light.
The man sung out:
"Snatch that light away, Betsy,
you old fool—ain't you got any sense?
Put it on the floor behind the front
door. Bob, if you and Tom are
ready, take your places."
"All ready."
"Now, George Jackson, do you know
the Shepherdsons?"
"No, sir; I never heard of them."
"Well, that may be so, and it
mayn't. Now, all ready. Step forward,
George Jackson. And mind, don't you
hurry—come mighty slow. If there's
anybody with you, let him keep back—if
he shows himself he'll be shot.
Come along now. Come slow; push the
door open yourself—just enough to
squeeze in, d' you hear?"
I didn't hurry; I couldn't if I'd a
wanted to. I took one slow step at a
time and there warn't a sound, only I
thought I could hear my heart. The
dogs were as still as the humans, but
they followed a little behind me.
When I got to the three log doorsteps I
heard them unlocking and
unbarring and unbolting. I put my hand
on the door and pushed it a
little and a little more till somebody
said, "There, that's enough—put
your head in." I done it, but I
judged they would take it off.
The candle was on the floor, and there
they all was, looking at me, and
me at them, for about a quarter of a
minute: Three big men with guns
pointed at me, which made me wince, I
tell you; the oldest, gray and
about sixty, the other two thirty or
more—all of them fine and handsome
—and the sweetest old gray-headed
lady, and back of her two young women
which I couldn't see right well. The
old gentleman says:
"There; I reckon it's all right.
Come in."
As soon as I was in the old gentleman
he locked the door and barred it
and bolted it, and told the young men
to come in with their guns, and
they all went in a big parlor that had
a new rag carpet on the floor, and
got together in a corner that was out
of the range of the front windows
—there warn't none on the side.
They held the candle, and took a good
look at me, and all said, "Why, HE
ain't a Shepherdson—no, there ain't
any Shepherdson about him." Then
the old man said he hoped I wouldn't
mind being searched for arms, because
he didn't mean no harm by it—it
was only to make sure. So he didn't
pry into my pockets, but only felt
outside with his hands, and said it was
all right. He told me to make
myself easy and at home, and tell all
about myself; but the old lady
says:
"Why, bless you, Saul, the poor
thing's as wet as he can be; and don't
you reckon it may be he's hungry?"
"True for you, Rachel—I
forgot."
So the old lady says:
"Betsy" (this was a nigger
woman), "you fly around and get him something
to eat as quick as you can, poor thing;
and one of you girls go and wake
up Buck and tell him—oh, here he
is himself. Buck, take this little
stranger and get the wet clothes off
from him and dress him up in some of
yours that's dry."
Buck looked about as old as me—thirteen
or fourteen or along there,
though he was a little bigger than me.
He hadn't on anything but a
shirt, and he was very frowzy-headed.
He came in gaping and digging one
fist into his eyes, and he was dragging
a gun along with the other one.
He says:
"Ain't they no Shepherdsons
around?"
They said, no, 'twas a false alarm.
"Well," he says, "if
they'd a ben some, I reckon I'd a got one."
They all laughed, and Bob says:
"Why, Buck, they might have
scalped us all, you've been so slow in
coming."
"Well, nobody come after me, and
it ain't right I'm always kept down; I
don't get no show."
"Never mind, Buck, my boy,"
says the old man, "you'll have show enough,
all in good time, don't you fret about
that. Go 'long with you now, and
do as your mother told you."
When we got up-stairs to his room he
got me a coarse shirt and a
roundabout and pants of his, and I put
them on. While I was at it he
asked me what my name was, but before I
could tell him he started to tell
me about a bluejay and a young rabbit
he had catched in the woods day
before yesterday, and he asked me where
Moses was when the candle went
out. I said I didn't know; I hadn't
heard about it before, no way.
"Well, guess," he says.
"How'm I going to guess,"
says I, "when I never heard tell of it before?"
"But you can guess, can't you?
It's just as easy."
"WHICH candle?" I says.
"Why, any candle," he says.
"I don't know where he was,"
says I; "where was he?"
"Why, he was in the DARK! That's
where he was!"
"Well, if you knowed where he was,
what did you ask me for?"
"Why, blame it, it's a riddle,
don't you see? Say, how long are you
going to stay here? You got to stay
always. We can just have booming
times—they don't have no school
now. Do you own a dog? I've got a
dog—and he'll go in the river and
bring out chips that you throw in. Do
you like to comb up Sundays, and all
that kind of foolishness? You bet I
don't, but ma she makes me. Confound
these ole britches! I reckon I'd
better put 'em on, but I'd ruther not,
it's so warm. Are you all ready?
All right. Come along, old hoss."
Cold corn-pone, cold corn-beef, butter
and buttermilk—that is what they
had for me down there, and there ain't
nothing better that ever I've come
across yet. Buck and his ma and all of
them smoked cob pipes, except the
nigger woman, which was gone, and the
two young women. They all smoked
and talked, and I eat and talked. The
young women had quilts around
them, and their hair down their backs.
They all asked me questions, and
I told them how pap and me and all the
family was living on a little farm
down at the bottom of Arkansaw, and my
sister Mary Ann run off and got
married and never was heard of no more,
and Bill went to hunt them and he
warn't heard of no more, and Tom and
Mort died, and then there warn't
nobody but just me and pap left, and he
was just trimmed down to nothing,
on account of his troubles; so when he
died I took what there was left,
because the farm didn't belong to us,
and started up the river, deck
passage, and fell overboard; and that
was how I come to be here. So they
said I could have a home there as long
as I wanted it. Then it was most
daylight and everybody went to bed, and
I went to bed with Buck, and when
I waked up in the morning, drat it all,
I had forgot what my name was.
So I laid there about an hour trying to
think, and when Buck waked up I
says:
"Can you spell, Buck?"
"Yes," he says.
"I bet you can't spell my name,"
says I.
"I bet you what you dare I can,"
says he.
"All right," says I, "go
ahead."
"G-e-o-r-g-e J-a-x-o-n—there
now," he says.
"Well," says I, "you
done it, but I didn't think you could. It ain't no
slouch of a name to spell—right
off without studying."
I set it down, private, because
somebody might want ME to spell it next,
and so I wanted to be handy with it and
rattle it off like I was used to
it.
It was a mighty nice family, and a
mighty nice house, too. I hadn't seen
no house out in the country before that
was so nice and had so much
style. It didn't have an iron latch on
the front door, nor a wooden one
with a buckskin string, but a brass
knob to turn, the same as houses in
town. There warn't no bed in the
parlor, nor a sign of a bed; but heaps
of parlors in towns has beds in them.
There was a big fireplace that was
bricked on the bottom, and the bricks
was kept clean and red by pouring
water on them and scrubbing them with
another brick; sometimes they wash
them over with red water-paint that
they call Spanish-brown, same as they
do in town. They had big brass
dog-irons that could hold up a saw-log.
There was a clock on the middle of the
mantelpiece, with a picture of a
town painted on the bottom half of the
glass front, and a round place in
the middle of it for the sun, and you
could see the pendulum swinging
behind it. It was beautiful to hear
that clock tick; and sometimes when
one of these peddlers had been along
and scoured her up and got her in
good shape, she would start in and
strike a hundred and fifty before she
got tuckered out. They wouldn't took
any money for her.
Well, there was a big outlandish parrot
on each side of the clock, made
out of something like chalk, and
painted up gaudy. By one of the parrots
was a cat made of crockery, and a
crockery dog by the other; and when you
pressed down on them they squeaked, but
didn't open their mouths nor look
different nor interested. They
squeaked through underneath. There was a
couple of big wild-turkey-wing fans
spread out behind those things. On
the table in the middle of the room was
a kind of a lovely crockery
basket that had apples and oranges and
peaches and grapes piled up in it,
which was much redder and yellower and
prettier than real ones is, but
they warn't real because you could see
where pieces had got chipped off
and showed the white chalk, or whatever
it was, underneath.
This table had a cover made out of
beautiful oilcloth, with a red and
blue spread-eagle painted on it, and a
painted border all around. It
come all the way from Philadelphia,
they said. There was some books,
too, piled up perfectly exact, on each
corner of the table. One was a
big family Bible full of pictures. One
was Pilgrim's Progress, about a
man that left his family, it didn't say
why. I read considerable in it
now and then. The statements was
interesting, but tough. Another was
Friendship's Offering, full of
beautiful stuff and poetry; but I didn't
read the poetry. Another was Henry
Clay's Speeches, and another was Dr.
Gunn's Family Medicine, which told you
all about what to do if a body was
sick or dead. There was a hymn book,
and a lot of other books. And
there was nice split-bottom chairs, and
perfectly sound, too—not bagged
down in the middle and busted, like an
old basket.
They had pictures hung on the
walls—mainly Washingtons and Lafayettes,
and battles, and Highland Marys, and
one called "Signing the
Declaration." There was some that
they called crayons, which one of the
daughters which was dead made her own
self when she was only fifteen
years old. They was different from any
pictures I ever see before
—blacker, mostly, than is common.
One was a woman in a slim black dress,
belted small under the armpits, with
bulges like a cabbage in the middle
of the sleeves, and a large black
scoop-shovel bonnet with a black veil,
and white slim ankles crossed about
with black tape, and very wee black
slippers, like a chisel, and she was
leaning pensive on a tombstone on
her right elbow, under a weeping
willow, and her other hand hanging down
her side holding a white handkerchief
and a reticule, and underneath the
picture it said "Shall I Never See
Thee More Alas." Another one was a
young lady with her hair all combed up
straight to the top of her head,
and knotted there in front of a comb
like a chair-back, and she was
crying into a handkerchief and had a
dead bird laying on its back in her
other hand with its heels up, and
underneath the picture it said "I Shall
Never Hear Thy Sweet Chirrup More
Alas." There was one where a young
lady was at a window looking up at the
moon, and tears running down her
cheeks; and she had an open letter in
one hand with black sealing wax
showing on one edge of it, and she was
mashing a locket with a chain to
it against her mouth, and underneath
the picture it said "And Art Thou
Gone Yes Thou Art Gone Alas."
These was all nice pictures, I reckon, but
I didn't somehow seem to take to them,
because if ever I was down a
little they always give me the
fan-tods. Everybody was sorry she died,
because she had laid out a lot more of
these pictures to do, and a body
could see by what she had done what
they had lost. But I reckoned that
with her disposition she was having a
better time in the graveyard. She
was at work on what they said was her
greatest picture when she took
sick, and every day and every night it
was her prayer to be allowed to
live till she got it done, but she
never got the chance. It was a
picture of a young woman in a long
white gown, standing on the rail of a
bridge all ready to jump off, with her
hair all down her back, and
looking up to the moon, with the tears
running down her face, and she had
two arms folded across her breast, and
two arms stretched out in front,
and two more reaching up towards the
moon—and the idea was to see which
pair would look best, and then scratch
out all the other arms; but, as I
was saying, she died before she got her
mind made up, and now they kept
this picture over the head of the bed
in her room, and every time her
birthday come they hung flowers on it.
Other times it was hid with a
little curtain. The young woman in the
picture had a kind of a nice
sweet face, but there was so many arms
it made her look too spidery,
seemed to me.
This young girl kept a scrap-book when
she was alive, and used to paste
obituaries and accidents and cases of
patient suffering in it out of the
Presbyterian Observer, and write poetry
after them out of her own head.
It was very good poetry. This is what
she wrote about a boy by the name
of Stephen Dowling Bots that fell down
a well and was drownded:
ODE TO STEPHEN DOWLING BOTS, DEC'D
And did young Stephen sicken, And did
young Stephen die? And did the sad
hearts thicken, And did the mourners
cry?
No; such was not the fate of Young
Stephen Dowling Bots; Though sad
hearts round him thickened, 'Twas not
from sickness' shots.
No whooping-cough did rack his frame,
Nor measles drear with spots; Not
these impaired the sacred name Of
Stephen Dowling Bots.
Despised love struck not with woe That
head of curly knots, Nor stomach
troubles laid him low, Young Stephen
Dowling Bots.
O no. Then list with tearful eye,
Whilst I his fate do tell. His soul
did from this cold world fly By falling
down a well.
They got him out and emptied him; Alas
it was too late; His spirit was
gone for to sport aloft In the realms
of the good and great.
If Emmeline Grangerford could make
poetry like that before she was
fourteen, there ain't no telling what
she could a done by and by. Buck
said she could rattle off poetry like
nothing. She didn't ever have to
stop to think. He said she would slap
down a line, and if she couldn't
find anything to rhyme with it would
just scratch it out and slap down
another one, and go ahead. She warn't
particular; she could write about
anything you choose to give her to
write about just so it was sadful.
Every time a man died, or a woman died,
or a child died, she would be on
hand with her "tribute"
before he was cold. She called them tributes.
The neighbors said it was the doctor
first, then Emmeline, then the
undertaker—the undertaker never
got in ahead of Emmeline but once, and
then she hung fire on a rhyme for the
dead person's name, which was
Whistler. She warn't ever the same
after that; she never complained, but
she kinder pined away and did not live
long. Poor thing, many's the time
I made myself go up to the little room
that used to be hers and get out
her poor old scrap-book and read in it
when her pictures had been
aggravating me and I had soured on her
a little. I liked all that
family, dead ones and all, and warn't
going to let anything come between
us. Poor Emmeline made poetry about
all the dead people when she was
alive, and it didn't seem right that
there warn't nobody to make some
about her now she was gone; so I tried
to sweat out a verse or two
myself, but I couldn't seem to make it
go somehow. They kept Emmeline's
room trim and nice, and all the things
fixed in it just the way she liked
to have them when she was alive, and
nobody ever slept there. The old
lady took care of the room herself,
though there was plenty of niggers,
and she sewed there a good deal and
read her Bible there mostly.
Well, as I was saying about the parlor,
there was beautiful curtains on
the windows: white, with pictures
painted on them of castles with vines
all down the walls, and cattle coming
down to drink. There was a little
old piano, too, that had tin pans in
it, I reckon, and nothing was ever
so lovely as to hear the young ladies
sing "The Last Link is Broken" and
play "The Battle of Prague"
on it. The walls of all the rooms was
plastered, and most had carpets on the
floors, and the whole house was
whitewashed on the outside.
It was a double house, and the big open
place betwixt them was roofed and
floored, and sometimes the table was
set there in the middle of the day,
and it was a cool, comfortable place.
Nothing couldn't be better. And
warn't the cooking good, and just
bushels of it too!
CHAPTER XVIII.
COL. GRANGERFORD was a gentleman, you
see. He was a gentleman all over;
and so was his family. He was well
born, as the saying is, and that's
worth as much in a man as it is in a
horse, so the Widow Douglas said,
and nobody ever denied that she was of
the first aristocracy in our town;
and pap he always said it, too, though
he warn't no more quality than a
mudcat himself. Col. Grangerford was
very tall and very slim, and had a
darkish-paly complexion, not a sign of
red in it anywheres; he was clean
shaved every morning all over his thin
face, and he had the thinnest kind
of lips, and the thinnest kind of
nostrils, and a high nose, and heavy
eyebrows, and the blackest kind of
eyes, sunk so deep back that they
seemed like they was looking out of
caverns at you, as you may say. His
forehead was high, and his hair was
black and straight and hung to his
shoulders. His hands was long and thin,
and every day of his life he put
on a clean shirt and a full suit from
head to foot made out of linen so
white it hurt your eyes to look at it;
and on Sundays he wore a blue
tail-coat with brass buttons on it. He
carried a mahogany cane with a
silver head to it. There warn't no
frivolishness about him, not a bit,
and he warn't ever loud. He was as
kind as he could be—you could feel
that, you know, and so you had
confidence. Sometimes he smiled, and it
was good to see; but when he
straightened himself up like a liberty-pole,
and the lightning begun to flicker out
from under his eyebrows, you
wanted to climb a tree first, and find
out what the matter was
afterwards. He didn't ever have to
tell anybody to mind their manners
—everybody was always
good-mannered where he was. Everybody loved to have
him around, too; he was sunshine most
always—I mean he made it seem
like good weather. When he turned into
a cloudbank it was awful dark for
half a minute, and that was enough;
there wouldn't nothing go wrong again
for a week.
When him and the old lady come down in
the morning all the family got up
out of their chairs and give them
good-day, and didn't set down again
till they had set down. Then Tom and
Bob went to the sideboard where the
decanter was, and mixed a glass of
bitters and handed it to him, and he
held it in his hand and waited till
Tom's and Bob's was mixed, and then
they bowed and said, "Our duty to
you, sir, and madam;" and THEY bowed
the least bit in the world and said
thank you, and so they drank, all
three, and Bob and Tom poured a
spoonful of water on the sugar and the
mite of whisky or apple brandy in the
bottom of their tumblers, and give
it to me and Buck, and we drank to the
old people too.
Bob was the oldest and Tom next—tall,
beautiful men with very broad
shoulders and brown faces, and long
black hair and black eyes. They
dressed in white linen from head to
foot, like the old gentleman, and
wore broad Panama hats.
Then there was Miss Charlotte; she was
twenty-five, and tall and proud
and grand, but as good as she could be
when she warn't stirred up; but
when she was she had a look that would
make you wilt in your tracks, like
her father. She was beautiful.
So was her sister, Miss Sophia, but it
was a different kind. She was
gentle and sweet like a dove, and she
was only twenty.
Each person had their own nigger to
wait on them—Buck too. My nigger
had a monstrous easy time, because I
warn't used to having anybody do
anything for me, but Buck's was on the
jump most of the time.
This was all there was of the family
now, but there used to be more
—three sons; they got killed; and
Emmeline that died.
The old gentleman owned a lot of farms
and over a hundred niggers.
Sometimes a stack of people would come
there, horseback, from ten or
fifteen mile around, and stay five or
six days, and have such junketings
round about and on the river, and
dances and picnics in the woods
daytimes, and balls at the house
nights. These people was mostly
kinfolks of the family. The men
brought their guns with them. It was a
handsome lot of quality, I tell you.
There was another clan of aristocracy
around there—five or six families
—mostly of the name of
Shepherdson. They was as high-toned and well
born and rich and grand as the tribe of
Grangerfords. The Shepherdsons
and Grangerfords used the same
steamboat landing, which was about two
mile above our house; so sometimes when
I went up there with a lot of our
folks I used to see a lot of the
Shepherdsons there on their fine horses.
One day Buck and me was away out in the
woods hunting, and heard a horse
coming. We was crossing the road.
Buck says:
"Quick! Jump for the woods!"
We done it, and then peeped down the
woods through the leaves. Pretty
soon a splendid young man come
galloping down the road, setting his horse
easy and looking like a soldier. He
had his gun across his pommel. I
had seen him before. It was young
Harney Shepherdson. I heard Buck's
gun go off at my ear, and Harney's hat
tumbled off from his head. He
grabbed his gun and rode straight to
the place where we was hid. But we
didn't wait. We started through the
woods on a run. The woods warn't
thick, so I looked over my shoulder to
dodge the bullet, and twice I seen
Harney cover Buck with his gun; and
then he rode away the way he come—to
get his hat, I reckon, but I couldn't
see. We never stopped running till
we got home. The old gentleman's eyes
blazed a minute—'twas pleasure,
mainly, I judged—then his face
sort of smoothed down, and he says,
kind of gentle:
"I don't like that shooting from
behind a bush. Why didn't you step into
the road, my boy?"
"The Shepherdsons don't, father.
They always take advantage."
Miss Charlotte she held her head up
like a queen while Buck was telling
his tale, and her nostrils spread and
her eyes snapped. The two young
men looked dark, but never said
nothing. Miss Sophia she turned pale,
but the color come back when she found
the man warn't hurt.
Soon as I could get Buck down by the
corn-cribs under the trees by
ourselves, I says:
"Did you want to kill him, Buck?"
"Well, I bet I did."
"What did he do to you?"
"Him? He never done nothing to
me."
"Well, then, what did you want to
kill him for?"
"Why, nothing—only it's on
account of the feud."
"What's a feud?"
"Why, where was you raised? Don't
you know what a feud is?"
"Never heard of it before—tell
me about it."
"Well," says Buck, "a
feud is this way: A man has a quarrel with another
man, and kills him; then that other
man's brother kills HIM; then the
other brothers, on both sides, goes for
one another; then the COUSINS
chip in—and by and by everybody's
killed off, and there ain't no more
feud. But it's kind of slow, and takes
a long time."
"Has this one been going on long,
Buck?"
"Well, I should RECKON! It
started thirty year ago, or som'ers along
there. There was trouble 'bout
something, and then a lawsuit to settle
it; and the suit went agin one of the
men, and so he up and shot the man
that won the suit—which he would
naturally do, of course. Anybody
would."
"What was the trouble about,
Buck?—land?"
"I reckon maybe—I don't
know."
"Well, who done the shooting? Was
it a Grangerford or a Shepherdson?"
"Laws, how do I know? It was so
long ago."
"Don't anybody know?"
"Oh, yes, pa knows, I reckon, and
some of the other old people; but they
don't know now what the row was about
in the first place."
"Has there been many killed,
Buck?"
"Yes; right smart chance of
funerals. But they don't always kill. Pa's
got a few buckshot in him; but he don't
mind it 'cuz he don't weigh much,
anyway. Bob's been carved up some with
a bowie, and Tom's been hurt once
or twice."
"Has anybody been killed this
year, Buck?"
"Yes; we got one and they got one.
'Bout three months ago my cousin Bud,
fourteen year old, was riding through
the woods on t'other side of the
river, and didn't have no weapon with
him, which was blame' foolishness,
and in a lonesome place he hears a
horse a-coming behind him, and sees
old Baldy Shepherdson a-linkin' after
him with his gun in his hand and
his white hair a-flying in the wind;
and 'stead of jumping off and taking
to the brush, Bud 'lowed he could
out-run him; so they had it, nip and
tuck, for five mile or more, the old
man a-gaining all the time; so at
last Bud seen it warn't any use, so he
stopped and faced around so as to
have the bullet holes in front, you
know, and the old man he rode up and
shot him down. But he didn't git much
chance to enjoy his luck, for
inside of a week our folks laid HIM
out."
"I reckon that old man was a
coward, Buck."
"I reckon he WARN'T a coward. Not
by a blame' sight. There ain't a
coward amongst them Shepherdsons—not
a one. And there ain't no cowards
amongst the Grangerfords either. Why,
that old man kep' up his end in a
fight one day for half an hour against
three Grangerfords, and come out
winner. They was all a-horseback; he
lit off of his horse and got behind
a little woodpile, and kep' his horse
before him to stop the bullets; but
the Grangerfords stayed on their horses
and capered around the old man,
and peppered away at him, and he
peppered away at them. Him and his
horse both went home pretty leaky and
crippled, but the Grangerfords had
to be FETCHED home—and one of 'em
was dead, and another died the next
day. No, sir; if a body's out hunting
for cowards he don't want to fool
away any time amongst them
Shepherdsons, becuz they don't breed any of
that KIND."
Next Sunday we all went to church,
about three mile, everybody
a-horseback. The men took their guns
along, so did Buck, and kept them
between their knees or stood them handy
against the wall. The
Shepherdsons done the same. It was
pretty ornery preaching—all about
brotherly love, and such-like
tiresomeness; but everybody said it was a
good sermon, and they all talked it
over going home, and had such a
powerful lot to say about faith and
good works and free grace and
preforeordestination, and I don't know
what all, that it did seem to me
to be one of the roughest Sundays I had
run across yet.
About an hour after dinner everybody
was dozing around, some in their
chairs and some in their rooms, and it
got to be pretty dull. Buck and a
dog was stretched out on the grass in
the sun sound asleep. I went up to
our room, and judged I would take a nap
myself. I found that sweet Miss
Sophia standing in her door, which was
next to ours, and she took me in
her room and shut the door very soft,
and asked me if I liked her, and I
said I did; and she asked me if I would
do something for her and not tell
anybody, and I said I would. Then she
said she'd forgot her Testament,
and left it in the seat at church
between two other books, and would I
slip out quiet and go there and fetch
it to her, and not say nothing to
nobody. I said I would. So I slid out
and slipped off up the road, and
there warn't anybody at the church,
except maybe a hog or two, for there
warn't any lock on the door, and hogs
likes a puncheon floor in
summer-time because it's cool. If you
notice, most folks don't go
to church only when they've got to; but
a hog is different.
Says I to myself, something's up; it
ain't natural for a girl to be in
such a sweat about a Testament. So I
give it a shake, and out drops a
little piece of paper with "HALF-PAST
TWO" wrote on it with a pencil. I
ransacked it, but couldn't find
anything else. I couldn't make anything
out of that, so I put the paper in the
book again, and when I got home
and upstairs there was Miss Sophia in
her door waiting for me. She
pulled me in and shut the door; then
she looked in the Testament till she
found the paper, and as soon as she
read it she looked glad; and before a
body could think she grabbed me and
give me a squeeze, and said I was the
best boy in the world, and not to tell
anybody. She was mighty red in
the face for a minute, and her eyes
lighted up, and it made her powerful
pretty. I was a good deal astonished,
but when I got my breath I asked
her what the paper was about, and she
asked me if I had read it, and I
said no, and she asked me if I could
read writing, and I told her "no,
only coarse-hand," and then she
said the paper warn't anything but a
book-mark to keep her place, and I
might go and play now.
I went off down to the river, studying
over this thing, and pretty soon I
noticed that my nigger was following
along behind. When we was out of
sight of the house he looked back and
around a second, and then comes
a-running, and says:
"Mars Jawge, if you'll come down
into de swamp I'll show you a whole
stack o' water-moccasins."
Thinks I, that's mighty curious; he
said that yesterday. He oughter know
a body don't love water-moccasins
enough to go around hunting for them.
What is he up to, anyway? So I says:
"All right; trot ahead."
I followed a half a mile; then he
struck out over the swamp, and waded
ankle deep as much as another
half-mile. We come to a little flat piece
of land which was dry and very thick
with trees and bushes and vines, and
he says:
"You shove right in dah jist a few
steps, Mars Jawge; dah's whah dey is.
I's seed 'm befo'; I don't k'yer to see
'em no mo'."
Then he slopped right along and went
away, and pretty soon the trees hid
him. I poked into the place a-ways and
come to a little open patch as
big as a bedroom all hung around with
vines, and found a man laying there
asleep—and, by jings, it was my
old Jim!
I waked him up, and I reckoned it was
going to be a grand surprise to him
to see me again, but it warn't. He
nearly cried he was so glad, but he
warn't surprised. Said he swum along
behind me that night, and heard me
yell every time, but dasn't answer,
because he didn't want nobody to pick
HIM up and take him into slavery again.
Says he:
"I got hurt a little, en couldn't
swim fas', so I wuz a considable ways
behine you towards de las'; when you
landed I reck'ned I could ketch up
wid you on de lan' 'dout havin' to
shout at you, but when I see dat house
I begin to go slow. I 'uz off too fur
to hear what dey say to you—I wuz
'fraid o' de dogs; but when it 'uz all
quiet agin I knowed you's in de
house, so I struck out for de woods to
wait for day. Early in de mawnin'
some er de niggers come along, gwyne to
de fields, en dey tuk me en
showed me dis place, whah de dogs can't
track me on accounts o' de water,
en dey brings me truck to eat every
night, en tells me how you's a-gitt'n
along."
"Why didn't you tell my Jack to
fetch me here sooner, Jim?"
"Well, 'twarn't no use to 'sturb
you, Huck, tell we could do sumfn—but
we's all right now. I ben a-buyin'
pots en pans en vittles, as I got a
chanst, en a-patchin' up de raf' nights
when—"
"WHAT raft, Jim?"
"Our ole raf'."
"You mean to say our old raft
warn't smashed all to flinders?"
"No, she warn't. She was tore up
a good deal—one en' of her was; but
dey warn't no great harm done, on'y our
traps was mos' all los'. Ef we
hadn' dive' so deep en swum so fur
under water, en de night hadn' ben so
dark, en we warn't so sk'yerd, en ben
sich punkin-heads, as de sayin' is,
we'd a seed de raf'. But it's jis' as
well we didn't, 'kase now she's
all fixed up agin mos' as good as new,
en we's got a new lot o' stuff, in
de place o' what 'uz los'."
"Why, how did you get hold of the
raft again, Jim—did you catch her?"
"How I gwyne to ketch her en I out
in de woods? No; some er de niggers
foun' her ketched on a snag along heah
in de ben', en dey hid her in a
crick 'mongst de willows, en dey wuz so
much jawin' 'bout which un 'um
she b'long to de mos' dat I come to
heah 'bout it pooty soon, so I ups en
settles de trouble by tellin' 'um she
don't b'long to none uv um, but to
you en me; en I ast 'm if dey gwyne to
grab a young white genlman's
propaty, en git a hid'n for it? Den I
gin 'm ten cents apiece, en dey
'uz mighty well satisfied, en wisht
some mo' raf's 'ud come along en make
'm rich agin. Dey's mighty good to me,
dese niggers is, en whatever I
wants 'm to do fur me I doan' have to
ast 'm twice, honey. Dat Jack's a
good nigger, en pooty smart."
"Yes, he is. He ain't ever told
me you was here; told me to come, and
he'd show me a lot of water-moccasins.
If anything happens HE ain't
mixed up in it. He can say he never
seen us together, and it 'll be the
truth."
I don't want to talk much about the
next day. I reckon I'll cut it
pretty short. I waked up about dawn,
and was a-going to turn over and go
to sleep again when I noticed how still
it was—didn't seem to be anybody
stirring. That warn't usual. Next I
noticed that Buck was up and gone.
Well, I gets up, a-wondering, and goes
down stairs—nobody around;
everything as still as a mouse. Just
the same outside. Thinks I, what
does it mean? Down by the wood-pile I
comes across my Jack, and says:
"What's it all about?"
Says he:
"Don't you know, Mars Jawge?"
"No," says I, "I don't."
"Well, den, Miss Sophia's run off!
'deed she has. She run off in de
night some time—nobody don't know
jis' when; run off to get married to
dat young Harney Shepherdson, you
know—leastways, so dey 'spec. De
fambly foun' it out 'bout half an hour
ago—maybe a little mo'—en' I
TELL you dey warn't no time los'. Sich
another hurryin' up guns en
hosses YOU never see! De women folks
has gone for to stir up de
relations, en ole Mars Saul en de boys
tuck dey guns en rode up de river
road for to try to ketch dat young man
en kill him 'fo' he kin git acrost
de river wid Miss Sophia. I reck'n
dey's gwyne to be mighty rough
times."
"Buck went off 'thout waking me
up."
"Well, I reck'n he DID! Dey
warn't gwyne to mix you up in it. Mars Buck
he loaded up his gun en 'lowed he's
gwyne to fetch home a Shepherdson or
bust. Well, dey'll be plenty un 'm dah,
I reck'n, en you bet you he'll
fetch one ef he gits a chanst."
I took up the river road as hard as I
could put. By and by I begin to
hear guns a good ways off. When I cOme
in sight of the log store and the
woodpile where the steamboats lands I
worked along under the trees and
brush till I got to a good place, and
then I clumb up into the forks of a
cottonwood that was out of reach, and
watched. There was a wood-rank
four foot high a little ways in front
of the tree, and first I was going
to hide behind that; but maybe it was
luckier I didn't.
There was four or five men cavorting
around on their horses in the open
place before the log store, cussing and
yelling, and trying to get at a
couple of young chaps that was behind
the wood-rank alongside of the
steamboat landing; but they couldn't
come it. Every time one of them
showed himself on the river side of the
woodpile he got shot at. The two
boys was squatting back to back behind
the pile, so they could watch both
ways.
By and by the men stopped cavorting
around and yelling. They started
riding towards the store; then up gets
one of the boys, draws a steady
bead over the wood-rank, and drops one
of them out of his saddle. All
the men jumped off of their horses and
grabbed the hurt one and started
to carry him to the store; and that
minute the two boys started on the
run. They got half way to the tree I
was in before the men noticed.
Then the men see them, and jumped on
their horses and took out after
them. They gained on the boys, but it
didn't do no good, the boys had
too good a start; they got to the
woodpile that was in front of my tree,
and slipped in behind it, and so they
had the bulge on the men again.
One of the boys was Buck, and the other
was a slim young chap about
nineteen years old.
The men ripped around awhile, and then
rode away. As soon as they was
out of sight I sung out to Buck and
told him. He didn't know what to
make of my voice coming out of the tree
at first. He was awful
surprised. He told me to watch out
sharp and let him know when the men
come in sight again; said they was up
to some devilment or other
—wouldn't be gone long. I wished
I was out of that tree, but I dasn't
come down. Buck begun to cry and rip,
and 'lowed that him and his cousin
Joe (that was the other young chap)
would make up for this day yet. He
said his father and his two brothers
was killed, and two or three of the
enemy. Said the Shepherdsons laid for
them in ambush. Buck said his
father and brothers ought to waited for
their relations—the Shepherdsons
was too strong for them. I asked him
what was become of young Harney and
Miss Sophia. He said they'd got across
the river and was safe. I was
glad of that; but the way Buck did take
on because he didn't manage to
kill Harney that day he shot at him—I
hain't ever heard anything like
it.
All of a sudden, bang! bang! bang! goes
three or four guns—the men had
slipped around through the woods and
come in from behind without their
horses! The boys jumped for the
river—both of them hurt—and as they
swum down the current the men run along
the bank shooting at them and
singing out, "Kill them, kill
them!" It made me so sick I most fell out
of the tree. I ain't a-going to tell
ALL that happened—it would make me
sick again if I was to do that. I
wished I hadn't ever come ashore that
night to see such things. I ain't ever
going to get shut of them—lots
of times I dream about them.
I stayed in the tree till it begun to
get dark, afraid to come down.
Sometimes I heard guns away off in the
woods; and twice I seen little
gangs of men gallop past the log store
with guns; so I reckoned the
trouble was still a-going on. I was
mighty downhearted; so I made up my
mind I wouldn't ever go anear that
house again, because I reckoned I was
to blame, somehow. I judged that that
piece of paper meant that Miss
Sophia was to meet Harney somewheres at
half-past two and run off; and I
judged I ought to told her father about
that paper and the curious way
she acted, and then maybe he would a
locked her up, and this awful mess
wouldn't ever happened.
When I got down out of the tree I crept
along down the river bank a
piece, and found the two bodies laying
in the edge of the water, and
tugged at them till I got them ashore;
then I covered up their faces, and
got away as quick as I could. I cried
a little when I was covering up
Buck's face, for he was mighty good to
me.
It was just dark now. I never went
near the house, but struck through
the woods and made for the swamp. Jim
warn't on his island, so I tramped
off in a hurry for the crick, and
crowded through the willows, red-hot to
jump aboard and get out of that awful
country. The raft was gone! My
souls, but I was scared! I couldn't
get my breath for most a minute.
Then I raised a yell. A voice not
twenty-five foot from me says:
"Good lan'! is dat you, honey?
Doan' make no noise."
It was Jim's voice—nothing ever
sounded so good before. I run along the
bank a piece and got aboard, and Jim he
grabbed me and hugged me, he was
so glad to see me. He says:
"Laws bless you, chile, I 'uz
right down sho' you's dead agin. Jack's
been heah; he say he reck'n you's ben
shot, kase you didn' come home no
mo'; so I's jes' dis minute a startin'
de raf' down towards de mouf er de
crick, so's to be all ready for to
shove out en leave soon as Jack comes
agin en tells me for certain you IS
dead. Lawsy, I's mighty glad to git
you back again, honey."
I says:
"All right—that's mighty
good; they won't find me, and they'll think
I've been killed, and floated down the
river—there's something up there
that 'll help them think so—so
don't you lose no time, Jim, but just
shove off for the big water as fast as
ever you can."
I never felt easy till the raft was two
mile below there and out in the
middle of the Mississippi. Then we
hung up our signal lantern, and
judged that we was free and safe once
more. I hadn't had a bite to eat
since yesterday, so Jim he got out some
corn-dodgers and buttermilk, and
pork and cabbage and greens—there
ain't nothing in the world so good
when it's cooked right—and whilst
I eat my supper we talked and had a
good time. I was powerful glad to get
away from the feuds, and so was
Jim to get away from the swamp. We
said there warn't no home like a
raft, after all. Other places do seem
so cramped up and smothery, but a
raft don't. You feel mighty free and
easy and comfortable on a raft.
CHAPTER XIX.
TWO or three days and nights went by; I
reckon I might say they swum by,
they slid along so quiet and smooth and
lovely. Here is the way we put
in the time. It was a monstrous big
river down there—sometimes a mile
and a half wide; we run nights, and
laid up and hid daytimes; soon as
night was most gone we stopped
navigating and tied up—nearly always in
the dead water under a towhead; and
then cut young cottonwoods and
willows, and hid the raft with them.
Then we set out the lines. Next we
slid into the river and had a swim, so
as to freshen up and cool off;
then we set down on the sandy bottom
where the water was about knee deep,
and watched the daylight come. Not a
sound anywheres—perfectly still
—just like the whole world was
asleep, only sometimes the bullfrogs
a-cluttering, maybe. The first thing
to see, looking away over the water,
was a kind of dull line—that was
the woods on t'other side; you couldn't
make nothing else out; then a pale
place in the sky; then more paleness
spreading around; then the river
softened up away off, and warn't black
any more, but gray; you could see
little dark spots drifting along ever
so far away—trading scows, and
such things; and long black streaks
—rafts; sometimes you could hear
a sweep screaking; or jumbled up voices,
it was so still, and sounds come so
far; and by and by you could see a
streak on the water which you know by
the look of the streak that there's
a snag there in a swift current which
breaks on it and makes that streak
look that way; and you see the mist
curl up off of the water, and the
east reddens up, and the river, and you
make out a log-cabin in the edge
of the woods, away on the bank on
t'other side of the river, being a
woodyard, likely, and piled by them
cheats so you can throw a dog through
it anywheres; then the nice breeze
springs up, and comes fanning you from
over there, so cool and fresh and sweet
to smell on account of the woods
and the flowers; but sometimes not that
way, because they've left dead
fish laying around, gars and such, and
they do get pretty rank; and next
you've got the full day, and everything
smiling in the sun, and the
song-birds just going it!
A little smoke couldn't be noticed now,
so we would take some fish off of
the lines and cook up a hot breakfast.
And afterwards we would watch the
lonesomeness of the river, and kind of
lazy along, and by and by lazy off
to sleep. Wake up by and by, and look
to see what done it, and maybe see
a steamboat coughing along up-stream,
so far off towards the other side
you couldn't tell nothing about her
only whether she was a stern-wheel or
side-wheel; then for about an hour
there wouldn't be nothing to hear nor
nothing to see—just solid
lonesomeness. Next you'd see a raft sliding
by, away off yonder, and maybe a galoot
on it chopping, because they're
most always doing it on a raft; you'd
see the axe flash and come down
—you don't hear nothing; you see
that axe go up again, and by the time
it's above the man's head then you hear
the K'CHUNK!—it had took all
that time to come over the water. So
we would put in the day, lazying
around, listening to the stillness.
Once there was a thick fog, and the
rafts and things that went by was
beating tin pans so the steamboats
wouldn't run over them. A scow or a
raft went by so close we could hear
them talking and cussing and
laughing—heard them plain; but we couldn't
see no sign of them; it made you feel
crawly; it was like spirits
carrying on that way in the air. Jim
said he believed it was spirits;
but I says:
"No; spirits wouldn't say, 'Dern
the dern fog.'"
Soon as it was night out we shoved;
when we got her out to about the
middle we let her alone, and let her
float wherever the current wanted
her to; then we lit the pipes, and
dangled our legs in the water, and
talked about all kinds of things—we
was always naked, day and night,
whenever the mosquitoes would let
us—the new clothes Buck's folks made
for me was too good to be comfortable,
and besides I didn't go much on
clothes, nohow.
Sometimes we'd have that whole river
all to ourselves for the longest
time. Yonder was the banks and the
islands, across the water; and maybe a
spark—which was a candle in a
cabin window; and sometimes on the water
you could see a spark or two—on a
raft or a scow, you know; and maybe
you could hear a fiddle or a song
coming over from one of them crafts.
It's lovely to live on a raft. We had
the sky up there, all speckled
with stars, and we used to lay on our
backs and look up at them, and
discuss about whether they was made or
only just happened. Jim he
allowed they was made, but I allowed
they happened; I judged it would
have took too long to MAKE so many.
Jim said the moon could a LAID them;
well, that looked kind of reasonable,
so I didn't say nothing against it,
because I've seen a frog lay most as
many, so of course it could be done.
We used to watch the stars that fell,
too, and see them streak down. Jim
allowed they'd got spoiled and was hove
out of the nest.
Once or twice of a night we would see a
steamboat slipping along in the
dark, and now and then she would belch
a whole world of sparks up out of
her chimbleys, and they would rain down
in the river and look awful
pretty; then she would turn a corner
and her lights would wink out and
her powwow shut off and leave the river
still again; and by and by her
waves would get to us, a long time
after she was gone, and joggle the
raft a bit, and after that you wouldn't
hear nothing for you couldn't
tell how long, except maybe frogs or
something.
After midnight the people on shore went
to bed, and then for two or three
hours the shores was black—no
more sparks in the cabin windows. These
sparks was our clock—the first
one that showed again meant morning was
coming, so we hunted a place to hide
and tie up right away.
One morning about daybreak I found a
canoe and crossed over a chute to
the main shore—it was only two
hundred yards—and paddled about a mile
up a crick amongst the cypress woods,
to see if I couldn't get some
berries. Just as I was passing a place
where a kind of a cowpath crossed
the crick, here comes a couple of men
tearing up the path as tight as
they could foot it. I thought I was a
goner, for whenever anybody was
after anybody I judged it was ME—or
maybe Jim. I was about to dig out
from there in a hurry, but they was
pretty close to me then, and sung out
and begged me to save their lives—said
they hadn't been doing nothing,
and was being chased for it—said
there was men and dogs a-coming. They
wanted to jump right in, but I says:
"Don't you do it. I don't hear
the dogs and horses yet; you've got time
to crowd through the brush and get up
the crick a little ways; then you
take to the water and wade down to me
and get in—that'll throw the dogs
off the scent."
They done it, and soon as they was
aboard I lit out for our towhead, and
in about five or ten minutes we heard
the dogs and the men away off,
shouting. We heard them come along
towards the crick, but couldn't see
them; they seemed to stop and fool
around a while; then, as we got
further and further away all the time,
we couldn't hardly hear them at
all; by the time we had left a mile of
woods behind us and struck the
river, everything was quiet, and we
paddled over to the towhead and hid
in the cottonwoods and was safe.
One of these fellows was about seventy
or upwards, and had a bald head
and very gray whiskers. He had an old
battered-up slouch hat on, and a
greasy blue woollen shirt, and ragged
old blue jeans britches stuffed
into his boot-tops, and home-knit
galluses—no, he only had one. He had
an old long-tailed blue jeans coat with
slick brass buttons flung over
his arm, and both of them had big, fat,
ratty-looking carpet-bags.
The other fellow was about thirty, and
dressed about as ornery. After
breakfast we all laid off and talked,
and the first thing that come out
was that these chaps didn't know one
another.
"What got you into trouble?"
says the baldhead to t'other chap.
"Well, I'd been selling an article
to take the tartar off the teeth—and
it does take it off, too, and generly
the enamel along with it—but I
stayed about one night longer than I
ought to, and was just in the act of
sliding out when I ran across you on
the trail this side of town, and you
told me they were coming, and begged me
to help you to get off. So I
told you I was expecting trouble
myself, and would scatter out WITH you.
That's the whole yarn—what's
yourn?
"Well, I'd ben a-running' a little
temperance revival thar 'bout a week,
and was the pet of the women folks, big
and little, for I was makin' it
mighty warm for the rummies, I TELL
you, and takin' as much as five or
six dollars a night—ten cents a
head, children and niggers free—and
business a-growin' all the time, when
somehow or another a little report
got around last night that I had a way
of puttin' in my time with a
private jug on the sly. A nigger
rousted me out this mornin', and told
me the people was getherin' on the
quiet with their dogs and horses, and
they'd be along pretty soon and give me
'bout half an hour's start, and
then run me down if they could; and if
they got me they'd tar and feather
me and ride me on a rail, sure. I
didn't wait for no breakfast—I warn't
hungry."
"Old man," said the young
one, "I reckon we might double-team it
together; what do you think?"
"I ain't undisposed. What's your
line—mainly?"
"Jour printer by trade; do a
little in patent medicines; theater-actor
—tragedy, you know; take a turn
to mesmerism and phrenology when there's a
chance; teach singing-geography school
for a change; sling a lecture
sometimes—oh, I do lots of
things—most anything that comes handy, so it
ain't work. What's your lay?"
"I've done considerble in the
doctoring way in my time. Layin' on o'
hands is my best holt—for cancer
and paralysis, and sich things; and I
k'n tell a fortune pretty good when
I've got somebody along to find out
the facts for me. Preachin's my line,
too, and workin' camp-meetin's,
and missionaryin' around."
Nobody never said anything for a while;
then the young man hove a sigh
and says:
"Alas!"
"What 're you alassin' about?"
says the bald-head.
"To think I should have lived to
be leading such a life, and be degraded
down into such company." And he
begun to wipe the corner of his eye with
a rag.
"Dern your skin, ain't the company
good enough for you?" says the
baldhead, pretty pert and uppish.
"Yes, it IS good enough for me;
it's as good as I deserve; for who
fetched me so low when I was so high?
I did myself. I don't blame YOU,
gentlemen—far from it; I don't
blame anybody. I deserve it all. Let
the cold world do its worst; one thing
I know—there's a grave somewhere
for me. The world may go on just as
it's always done, and take everything
from me—loved ones, property,
everything; but it can't take that.
Some day I'll lie down in it and forget
it all, and my poor broken heart
will be at rest." He went on
a-wiping.
"Drot your pore broken heart,"
says the baldhead; "what are you heaving
your pore broken heart at US f'r? WE
hain't done nothing."
"No, I know you haven't. I ain't
blaming you, gentlemen. I brought
myself down—yes, I did it myself.
It's right I should suffer—perfectly
right—I don't make any moan."
"Brought you down from whar? Whar
was you brought down from?"
"Ah, you would not believe me; the
world never believes—let it pass
—'tis no matter. The secret of
my birth—"
"The secret of your birth! Do you
mean to say—"
"Gentlemen," says the young
man, very solemn, "I will reveal it to you,
for I feel I may have confidence in
you. By rights I am a duke!"
Jim's eyes bugged out when he heard
that; and I reckon mine did, too.
Then the baldhead says: "No! you
can't mean it?"
"Yes. My great-grandfather,
eldest son of the Duke of Bridgewater, fled
to this country about the end of the
last century, to breathe the pure
air of freedom; married here, and died,
leaving a son, his own father
dying about the same time. The second
son of the late duke seized the
titles and estates—the infant
real duke was ignored. I am the lineal
descendant of that infant—I am
the rightful Duke of Bridgewater; and
here am I, forlorn, torn from my high
estate, hunted of men, despised by
the cold world, ragged, worn,
heart-broken, and degraded to the
companionship of felons on a raft!"
Jim pitied him ever so much, and so did
I. We tried to comfort him, but
he said it warn't much use, he couldn't
be much comforted; said if we was
a mind to acknowledge him, that would
do him more good than most anything
else; so we said we would, if he would
tell us how. He said we ought to
bow when we spoke to him, and say "Your
Grace," or "My Lord," or "Your
Lordship"—and he wouldn't
mind it if we called him plain
"Bridgewater," which, he
said, was a title anyway, and not a name; and
one of us ought to wait on him at
dinner, and do any little thing for him
he wanted done.
Well, that was all easy, so we done it.
All through dinner Jim stood
around and waited on him, and says,
"Will yo' Grace have some o' dis or
some o' dat?" and so on, and a
body could see it was mighty pleasing to
him.
But the old man got pretty silent by
and by—didn't have much to say, and
didn't look pretty comfortable over all
that petting that was going on
around that duke. He seemed to have
something on his mind. So, along in
the afternoon, he says:
"Looky here, Bilgewater," he
says, "I'm nation sorry for you, but you
ain't the only person that's had
troubles like that."
"No?"
"No you ain't. You ain't the only
person that's ben snaked down
wrongfully out'n a high place."
"Alas!"
"No, you ain't the only person
that's had a secret of his birth." And,
by jings, HE begins to cry.
"Hold! What do you mean?"
"Bilgewater, kin I trust you?"
says the old man, still sort of sobbing.
"To the bitter death!" He
took the old man by the hand and squeezed it,
and says, "That secret of your
being: speak!"
"Bilgewater, I am the late
Dauphin!"
You bet you, Jim and me stared this
time. Then the duke says:
"You are what?"
"Yes, my friend, it is too
true—your eyes is lookin' at this very moment
on the pore disappeared Dauphin, Looy
the Seventeen, son of Looy the
Sixteen and Marry Antonette."
"You! At your age! No! You mean
you're the late Charlemagne; you must
be six or seven hundred years old, at
the very least."
"Trouble has done it, Bilgewater,
trouble has done it; trouble has brung
these gray hairs and this premature
balditude. Yes, gentlemen, you see
before you, in blue jeans and misery,
the wanderin', exiled, trampled-on,
and sufferin' rightful King of France."
Well, he cried and took on so that me
and Jim didn't know hardly what to
do, we was so sorry—and so glad
and proud we'd got him with us, too. So
we set in, like we done before with the
duke, and tried to comfort HIM.
But he said it warn't no use, nothing
but to be dead and done with it all
could do him any good; though he said
it often made him feel easier and
better for a while if people treated
him according to his rights, and got
down on one knee to speak to him, and
always called him "Your Majesty,"
and waited on him first at meals, and
didn't set down in his presence
till he asked them. So Jim and me set
to majestying him, and doing this
and that and t'other for him, and
standing up till he told us we might
set down. This done him heaps of good,
and so he got cheerful and
comfortable. But the duke kind of
soured on him, and didn't look a bit
satisfied with the way things was
going; still, the king acted real
friendly towards him, and said the
duke's great-grandfather and all the
other Dukes of Bilgewater was a good
deal thought of by HIS father, and
was allowed to come to the palace
considerable; but the duke stayed huffy
a good while, till by and by the king
says:
"Like as not we got to be together
a blamed long time on this h-yer raft,
Bilgewater, and so what's the use o'
your bein' sour? It 'll only make
things oncomfortable. It ain't my
fault I warn't born a duke, it ain't
your fault you warn't born a king—so
what's the use to worry? Make the
best o' things the way you find 'em,
says I—that's my motto. This ain't
no bad thing that we've struck
here—plenty grub and an easy life—come,
give us your hand, duke, and le's all
be friends."
The duke done it, and Jim and me was
pretty glad to see it. It took away
all the uncomfortableness and we felt
mighty good over it, because it
would a been a miserable business to
have any unfriendliness on the raft;
for what you want, above all things, on
a raft, is for everybody to be
satisfied, and feel right and kind
towards the others.
It didn't take me long to make up my
mind that these liars warn't no
kings nor dukes at all, but just
low-down humbugs and frauds. But I
never said nothing, never let on; kept
it to myself; it's the best way;
then you don't have no quarrels, and
don't get into no trouble. If they
wanted us to call them kings and dukes,
I hadn't no objections, 'long as
it would keep peace in the family; and
it warn't no use to tell Jim, so I
didn't tell him. If I never learnt
nothing else out of pap, I learnt
that the best way to get along with his
kind of people is to let them
have their own way.
CHAPTER XX.
THEY asked us considerable many
questions; wanted to know what we covered
up the raft that way for, and laid by
in the daytime instead of running
—was Jim a runaway nigger? Says
I:
"Goodness sakes! would a runaway
nigger run SOUTH?"
No, they allowed he wouldn't. I had to
account for things some way, so I
says:
"My folks was living in Pike
County, in Missouri, where I was born, and
they all died off but me and pa and my
brother Ike. Pa, he 'lowed he'd
break up and go down and live with
Uncle Ben, who's got a little
one-horse place on the river,
forty-four mile below Orleans. Pa was
pretty poor, and had some debts; so
when he'd squared up there warn't
nothing left but sixteen dollars and
our nigger, Jim. That warn't enough
to take us fourteen hundred mile, deck
passage nor no other way. Well,
when the river rose pa had a streak of
luck one day; he ketched this
piece of a raft; so we reckoned we'd go
down to Orleans on it. Pa's luck
didn't hold out; a steamboat run over
the forrard corner of the raft one
night, and we all went overboard and
dove under the wheel; Jim and me
come up all right, but pa was drunk,
and Ike was only four years old, so
they never come up no more. Well, for
the next day or two we had
considerable trouble, because people
was always coming out in skiffs and
trying to take Jim away from me, saying
they believed he was a runaway
nigger. We don't run daytimes no more
now; nights they don't bother us."
The duke says:
"Leave me alone to cipher out a
way so we can run in the daytime if we
want to. I'll think the thing
over—I'll invent a plan that'll fix it.
We'll let it alone for to-day, because
of course we don't want to go by
that town yonder in daylight—it
mightn't be healthy."
Towards night it begun to darken up and
look like rain; the heat
lightning was squirting around low down
in the sky, and the leaves was
beginning to shiver—it was going
to be pretty ugly, it was easy to see
that. So the duke and the king went to
overhauling our wigwam, to see
what the beds was like. My bed was a
straw tick better than Jim's, which
was a corn-shuck tick; there's always
cobs around about in a shuck tick,
and they poke into you and hurt; and
when you roll over the dry shucks
sound like you was rolling over in a
pile of dead leaves; it makes such a
rustling that you wake up. Well, the
duke allowed he would take my bed;
but the king allowed he wouldn't. He
says:
"I should a reckoned the
difference in rank would a sejested to you that
a corn-shuck bed warn't just fitten for
me to sleep on. Your Grace 'll
take the shuck bed yourself."
Jim and me was in a sweat again for a
minute, being afraid there was
going to be some more trouble amongst
them; so we was pretty glad when
the duke says:
"'Tis my fate to be always ground
into the mire under the iron heel of
oppression. Misfortune has broken my
once haughty spirit; I yield, I
submit; 'tis my fate. I am alone in
the world—let me suffer; can bear
it."
We got away as soon as it was good and
dark. The king told us to stand
well out towards the middle of the
river, and not show a light till we
got a long ways below the town. We
come in sight of the little bunch of
lights by and by—that was the
town, you know—and slid by, about a half
a mile out, all right. When we was
three-quarters of a mile below we
hoisted up our signal lantern; and
about ten o'clock it come on to rain
and blow and thunder and lighten like
everything; so the king told us to
both stay on watch till the weather got
better; then him and the duke
crawled into the wigwam and turned in
for the night. It was my watch
below till twelve, but I wouldn't a
turned in anyway if I'd had a bed,
because a body don't see such a storm
as that every day in the week, not
by a long sight. My souls, how the
wind did scream along! And every
second or two there'd come a glare that
lit up the white-caps for a half
a mile around, and you'd see the
islands looking dusty through the rain,
and the trees thrashing around in the
wind; then comes a H-WHACK!—bum!
bum!
bumble-umble-um-bum-bum-bum-bum—and the thunder would go
rumbling
and grumbling away, and quit—and
then RIP comes another flash and
another sockdolager. The waves most
washed me off the raft sometimes,
but I hadn't any clothes on, and didn't
mind. We didn't have no trouble
about snags; the lightning was glaring
and flittering around so constant
that we could see them plenty soon
enough to throw her head this way or
that and miss them.
I had the middle watch, you know, but I
was pretty sleepy by that time,
so Jim he said he would stand the first
half of it for me; he was always
mighty good that way, Jim was. I
crawled into the wigwam, but the king
and the duke had their legs sprawled
around so there warn't no show for
me; so I laid outside—I didn't
mind the rain, because it was warm, and
the waves warn't running so high now.
About two they come up again,
though, and Jim was going to call me;
but he changed his mind, because he
reckoned they warn't high enough yet to
do any harm; but he was mistaken
about that, for pretty soon all of a
sudden along comes a regular ripper
and washed me overboard. It most
killed Jim a-laughing. He was the
easiest nigger to laugh that ever was,
anyway.
I took the watch, and Jim he laid down
and snored away; and by and by the
storm let up for good and all; and the
first cabin-light that showed I
rousted him out, and we slid the raft
into hiding quarters for the day.
The king got out an old ratty deck of
cards after breakfast, and him and
the duke played seven-up a while, five
cents a game. Then they got tired
of it, and allowed they would "lay
out a campaign," as they called it.
The duke went down into his carpet-bag,
and fetched up a lot of little
printed bills and read them out loud.
One bill said, "The celebrated Dr.
Armand de Montalban, of Paris,"
would "lecture on the Science of
Phrenology" at such and such a
place, on the blank day of blank, at ten
cents admission, and "furnish
charts of character at twenty-five cents
apiece." The duke said that was
HIM. In another bill he was the
"world-renowned Shakespearian
tragedian, Garrick the Younger, of Drury
Lane, London." In other bills he
had a lot of other names and done other
wonderful things, like finding water
and gold with a "divining-rod,"
"dissipating witch spells,"
and so on. By and by he says:
"But the histrionic muse is the
darling. Have you ever trod the boards,
Royalty?"
"No," says the king.
"You shall, then, before you're
three days older, Fallen Grandeur," says
the duke. "The first good town we
come to we'll hire a hall and do the
sword fight in Richard III. and the
balcony scene in Romeo and Juliet.
How does that strike you?"
"I'm in, up to the hub, for
anything that will pay, Bilgewater; but, you
see, I don't know nothing about
play-actin', and hain't ever seen much of
it. I was too small when pap used to
have 'em at the palace. Do you
reckon you can learn me?"
"Easy!"
"All right. I'm jist a-freezn'
for something fresh, anyway. Le's
commence right away."
So the duke he told him all about who
Romeo was and who Juliet was, and
said he was used to being Romeo, so the
king could be Juliet.
"But if Juliet's such a young gal,
duke, my peeled head and my white
whiskers is goin' to look oncommon odd
on her, maybe."
"No, don't you worry; these
country jakes won't ever think of that.
Besides, you know, you'll be in
costume, and that makes all the
difference in the world; Juliet's in a
balcony, enjoying the moonlight
before she goes to bed, and she's got
on her night-gown and her ruffled
nightcap. Here are the costumes for
the parts."
He got out two or three curtain-calico
suits, which he said was meedyevil
armor for Richard III. and t'other
chap, and a long white cotton
nightshirt and a ruffled nightcap to
match. The king was satisfied; so
the duke got out his book and read the
parts over in the most splendid
spread-eagle way, prancing around and
acting at the same time, to show
how it had got to be done; then he give
the book to the king and told him
to get his part by heart.
There was a little one-horse town about
three mile down the bend, and
after dinner the duke said he had
ciphered out his idea about how to run
in daylight without it being dangersome
for Jim; so he allowed he would
go down to the town and fix that thing.
The king allowed he would go,
too, and see if he couldn't strike
something. We was out of coffee, so
Jim said I better go along with them in
the canoe and get some.
When we got there there warn't nobody
stirring; streets empty, and
perfectly dead and still, like Sunday.
We found a sick nigger sunning
himself in a back yard, and he said
everybody that warn't too young or
too sick or too old was gone to
camp-meeting, about two mile back in the
woods. The king got the directions,
and allowed he'd go and work that
camp-meeting for all it was worth, and
I might go, too.
The duke said what he was after was a
printing-office. We found it; a
little bit of a concern, up over a
carpenter shop—carpenters and
printers all gone to the meeting, and
no doors locked. It was a dirty,
littered-up place, and had ink marks,
and handbills with pictures of
horses and runaway niggers on them, all
over the walls. The duke shed
his coat and said he was all right now.
So me and the king lit out for
the camp-meeting.
We got there in about a half an hour
fairly dripping, for it was a most
awful hot day. There was as much as a
thousand people there from twenty
mile around. The woods was full of
teams and wagons, hitched
everywheres, feeding out of the
wagon-troughs and stomping to keep off
the flies. There was sheds made out of
poles and roofed over with
branches, where they had lemonade and
gingerbread to sell, and piles of
watermelons and green corn and
such-like truck.
The preaching was going on under the
same kinds of sheds, only they was
bigger and held crowds of people. The
benches was made out of outside
slabs of logs, with holes bored in the
round side to drive sticks into
for legs. They didn't have no backs.
The preachers had high platforms to
stand on at one end of the sheds. The
women had on sun-bonnets; and some
had linsey-woolsey frocks, some gingham
ones, and a few of the young ones
had on calico. Some of the young men
was barefooted, and some of the
children didn't have on any clothes but
just a tow-linen shirt. Some of
the old women was knitting, and some of
the young folks was courting on
the sly.
The first shed we come to the preacher
was lining out a hymn. He lined
out two lines, everybody sung it, and
it was kind of grand to hear it,
there was so many of them and they done
it in such a rousing way; then he
lined out two more for them to sing—and
so on. The people woke up more
and more, and sung louder and louder;
and towards the end some begun to
groan, and some begun to shout. Then
the preacher begun to preach, and
begun in earnest, too; and went weaving
first to one side of the platform
and then the other, and then a-leaning
down over the front of it, with
his arms and his body going all the
time, and shouting his words out with
all his might; and every now and then
he would hold up his Bible and
spread it open, and kind of pass it
around this way and that, shouting,
"It's the brazen serpent in the
wilderness! Look upon it and live!" And
people would shout out,
"Glory!—A-a-MEN!" And so he went on, and the
people groaning and crying and saying
amen:
"Oh, come to the mourners' bench!
come, black with sin! (AMEN!) come,
sick and sore! (AMEN!) come, lame and
halt and blind! (AMEN!) come, pore
and needy, sunk in shame! (A-A-MEN!)
come, all that's worn and soiled and
suffering!—come with a broken
spirit! come with a contrite heart! come
in your rags and sin and dirt! the
waters that cleanse is free, the door
of heaven stands open—oh, enter
in and be at rest!" (A-A-MEN! GLORY,
GLORY HALLELUJAH!)
And so on. You couldn't make out what
the preacher said any more, on
account of the shouting and crying.
Folks got up everywheres in the
crowd, and worked their way just by
main strength to the mourners' bench,
with the tears running down their
faces; and when all the mourners had
got up there to the front benches in a
crowd, they sung and shouted and
flung themselves down on the straw,
just crazy and wild.
Well, the first I knowed the king got
a-going, and you could hear him
over everybody; and next he went
a-charging up on to the platform, and
the preacher he begged him to speak to
the people, and he done it. He
told them he was a pirate—been a
pirate for thirty years out in the
Indian Ocean—and his crew was
thinned out considerable last spring in
a fight, and he was home now to take
out some fresh men, and thanks to
goodness he'd been robbed last night
and put ashore off of a steamboat
without a cent, and he was glad of it;
it was the blessedest thing that
ever happened to him, because he was a
changed man now, and happy for the
first time in his life; and, poor as he
was, he was going to start right
off and work his way back to the Indian
Ocean, and put in the rest of his
life trying to turn the pirates into
the true path; for he could do it
better than anybody else, being
acquainted with all pirate crews in that
ocean; and though it would take him a
long time to get there without
money, he would get there anyway, and
every time he convinced a pirate he
would say to him, "Don't you thank
me, don't you give me no credit; it
all belongs to them dear people in
Pokeville camp-meeting, natural
brothers and benefactors of the race,
and that dear preacher there, the
truest friend a pirate ever had!"
And then he busted into tears, and so
did everybody. Then somebody sings
out, "Take up a collection for
him, take up a collection!" Well, a half
a dozen made a jump to do it, but
somebody sings out, "Let HIM pass the
hat around!" Then everybody said
it, the preacher too.
So the king went all through the crowd
with his hat swabbing his eyes,
and blessing the people and praising
them and thanking them for being so
good to the poor pirates away off
there; and every little while the
prettiest kind of girls, with the tears
running down their cheeks, would
up and ask him would he let them kiss
him for to remember him by; and he
always done it; and some of them he
hugged and kissed as many as five or
six times—and he was invited to
stay a week; and everybody wanted him to
live in their houses, and said they'd
think it was an honor; but he said
as this was the last day of the
camp-meeting he couldn't do no good, and
besides he was in a sweat to get to the
Indian Ocean right off and go to
work on the pirates.
When we got back to the raft and he
come to count up he found he had
collected eighty-seven dollars and
seventy-five cents. And then he had
fetched away a three-gallon jug of
whisky, too, that he found under a
wagon when he was starting home through
the woods. The king said, take
it all around, it laid over any day
he'd ever put in in the missionarying
line. He said it warn't no use
talking, heathens don't amount to shucks
alongside of pirates to work a
camp-meeting with.
The duke was thinking HE'D been doing
pretty well till the king come to
show up, but after that he didn't think
so so much. He had set up and
printed off two little jobs for farmers
in that printing-office—horse
bills—and took the money, four
dollars. And he had got in ten
dollars' worth of advertisements for
the paper, which he said he would
put in for four dollars if they would
pay in advance—so they done it.
The price of the paper was two dollars
a year, but he took in three
subscriptions for half a dollar apiece
on condition of them paying him in
advance; they were going to pay in
cordwood and onions as usual, but he
said he had just bought the concern and
knocked down the price as low as
he could afford it, and was going to
run it for cash. He set up a little
piece of poetry, which he made,
himself, out of his own head—three
verses—kind of sweet and
saddish—the name of it was, "Yes, crush, cold
world, this breaking heart"—and
he left that all set up and ready to
print in the paper, and didn't charge
nothing for it. Well, he took in
nine dollars and a half, and said he'd
done a pretty square day's work
for it.
Then he showed us another little job
he'd printed and hadn't charged for,
because it was for us. It had a
picture of a runaway nigger with a
bundle on a stick over his shoulder,
and "$200 reward" under it. The
reading was all about Jim, and just
described him to a dot. It said he
run away from St. Jacques' plantation,
forty mile below New Orleans, last
winter, and likely went north, and
whoever would catch him and send him
back he could have the reward and
expenses.
"Now," says the duke, "after
to-night we can run in the daytime if we
want to. Whenever we see anybody
coming we can tie Jim hand and foot
with a rope, and lay him in the wigwam
and show this handbill and say we
captured him up the river, and were too
poor to travel on a steamboat, so
we got this little raft on credit from
our friends and are going down to
get the reward. Handcuffs and chains
would look still better on Jim, but
it wouldn't go well with the story of
us being so poor. Too much like
jewelry. Ropes are the correct
thing—we must preserve the unities, as
we say on the boards."
We all said the duke was pretty smart,
and there couldn't be no trouble
about running daytimes. We judged we
could make miles enough that night
to get out of the reach of the powwow
we reckoned the duke's work in the
printing office was going to make in
that little town; then we could boom
right along if we wanted to.
We laid low and kept still, and never
shoved out till nearly ten o'clock;
then we slid by, pretty wide away from
the town, and didn't hoist our
lantern till we was clear out of sight
of it.
When Jim called me to take the watch at
four in the morning, he says:
"Huck, does you reck'n we gwyne to
run acrost any mo' kings on dis trip?"
"No," I says, "I reckon
not."
"Well," says he, "dat's
all right, den. I doan' mine one er two kings,
but dat's enough. Dis one's powerful
drunk, en de duke ain' much
better."
I found Jim had been trying to get him
to talk French, so he could hear
what it was like; but he said he had
been in this country so long, and
had so much trouble, he'd forgot it.
CHAPTER XXI.
IT was after sun-up now, but we went
right on and didn't tie up. The
king and the duke turned out by and by
looking pretty rusty; but after
they'd jumped overboard and took a swim
it chippered them up a good deal.
After breakfast the king he took a seat
on the corner of the raft, and
pulled off his boots and rolled up his
britches, and let his legs dangle
in the water, so as to be comfortable,
and lit his pipe, and went to
getting his Romeo and Juliet by heart.
When he had got it pretty good
him and the duke begun to practice it
together. The duke had to learn
him over and over again how to say
every speech; and he made him sigh,
and put his hand on his heart, and
after a while he said he done it
pretty well; "only," he says,
"you mustn't bellow out ROMEO! that way,
like a bull—you must say it soft
and sick and languishy, so—R-o-o-meo!
that is the idea; for Juliet's a dear
sweet mere child of a girl, you
know, and she doesn't bray like a
jackass."
Well, next they got out a couple of
long swords that the duke made out of
oak laths, and begun to practice the
sword fight—the duke called himself
Richard III.; and the way they laid on
and pranced around the raft was
grand to see. But by and by the king
tripped and fell overboard, and
after that they took a rest, and had a
talk about all kinds of adventures
they'd had in other times along the
river.
After dinner the duke says:
"Well, Capet, we'll want to make
this a first-class show, you know, so I
guess we'll add a little more to it.
We want a little something to
answer encores with, anyway."
"What's onkores, Bilgewater?"
The duke told him, and then says:
"I'll answer by doing the Highland
fling or the sailor's hornpipe; and
you—well, let me see—oh,
I've got it—you can do Hamlet's soliloquy."
"Hamlet's which?"
"Hamlet's soliloquy, you know; the
most celebrated thing in Shakespeare.
Ah, it's sublime, sublime! Always
fetches the house. I haven't got it
in the book—I've only got one
volume—but I reckon I can piece it out
from memory. I'll just walk up and
down a minute, and see if I can call
it back from recollection's vaults."
So he went to marching up and down,
thinking, and frowning horrible every
now and then; then he would hoist up
his eyebrows; next he would squeeze
his hand on his forehead and stagger
back and kind of moan; next he would
sigh, and next he'd let on to drop a
tear. It was beautiful to see him.
By and by he got it. He told us to
give attention. Then he strikes a
most noble attitude, with one leg
shoved forwards, and his arms stretched
away up, and his head tilted back,
looking up at the sky; and then he
begins to rip and rave and grit his
teeth; and after that, all through
his speech, he howled, and spread
around, and swelled up his chest, and
just knocked the spots out of any
acting ever I see before. This is the
speech—I learned it, easy enough,
while he was learning it to the king:
To be, or not to be; that is the bare
bodkin That makes calamity of so
long life; For who would fardels bear,
till Birnam Wood do come to
Dunsinane, But that the fear of
something after death Murders the
innocent sleep, Great nature's second
course, And makes us rather sling
the arrows of outrageous fortune Than
fly to others that we know not of.
There's the respect must give us pause:
Wake Duncan with thy knocking! I
would thou couldst; For who would bear
the whips and scorns of time, The
oppressor's wrong, the proud man's
contumely, The law's delay, and the
quietus which his pangs might take, In
the dead waste and middle of the
night, when churchyards yawn In
customary suits of solemn black, But that
the undiscovered country from whose
bourne no traveler returns, Breathes
forth contagion on the world, And thus
the native hue of resolution, like
the poor cat i' the adage, Is sicklied
o'er with care, And all the clouds
that lowered o'er our housetops, With
this regard their currents turn
awry, And lose the name of action. 'Tis
a consummation devoutly to be
wished. But soft you, the fair
Ophelia: Ope not thy ponderous and marble
jaws, But get thee to a nunnery—go!
Well, the old man he liked that speech,
and he mighty soon got it so he
could do it first-rate. It seemed like
he was just born for it; and when
he had his hand in and was excited, it
was perfectly lovely the way he
would rip and tear and rair up behind
when he was getting it off.
The first chance we got the duke he had
some showbills printed; and after
that, for two or three days as we
floated along, the raft was a most
uncommon lively place, for there warn't
nothing but sword fighting and
rehearsing—as the duke called
it—going on all the time. One morning,
when we was pretty well down the State
of Arkansaw, we come in sight of a
little one-horse town in a big bend; so
we tied up about three-quarters
of a mile above it, in the mouth of a
crick which was shut in like a
tunnel by the cypress trees, and all of
us but Jim took the canoe and
went down there to see if there was any
chance in that place for our
show.
We struck it mighty lucky; there was
going to be a circus there that
afternoon, and the country people was
already beginning to come in, in
all kinds of old shackly wagons, and on
horses. The circus would leave
before night, so our show would have a
pretty good chance. The duke he
hired the courthouse, and we went
around and stuck up our bills. They
read like this:
Shaksperean Revival ! ! !
Wonderful Attraction!
For One Night Only!
The world renowned tragedians, David
Garrick the Younger, of Drury Lane
Theatre London, and Edmund Kean the
elder, of the Royal Haymarket
Theatre, Whitechapel, Pudding Lane,
Piccadilly, London, and the Royal
Continental Theatres, in their sublime
Shaksperean Spectacle entitled
The Balcony Scene in Romeo and Juliet !
! !
Romeo...................Mr. Garrick
Juliet..................Mr. Kean
Assisted by the whole strength of the
company!
New costumes, new scenery, new
appointments!
Also: The thrilling, masterly, and
blood-curdling
Broad-sword conflict In Richard III. !
! !
Richard III.............Mr. Garrick
Richmond................Mr. Kean
Also: (by special request) Hamlet's
Immortal Soliloquy ! !
By The Illustrious Kean! Done by him
300 consecutive nights in Paris!
For One Night Only, On account of
imperative European engagements!
Admission 25 cents; children and
servants, 10 cents.
Then we went loafing around town. The
stores and houses was most all
old, shackly, dried up frame concerns
that hadn't ever been painted; they
was set up three or four foot above
ground on stilts, so as to be out of
reach of the water when the river was
over-flowed. The houses had little
gardens around them, but they didn't
seem to raise hardly anything in
them but jimpson-weeds, and sunflowers,
and ash piles, and old curled-up
boots and shoes, and pieces of bottles,
and rags, and played-out tinware.
The fences was made of different kinds
of boards, nailed on at different
times; and they leaned every which way,
and had gates that didn't generly
have but one hinge—a leather one.
Some of the fences had been
white-washed some time or another, but
the duke said it was in Clumbus'
time, like enough. There was generly
hogs in the garden, and people
driving them out.
All the stores was along one street.
They had white domestic awnings in
front, and the country people hitched
their horses to the awning-posts.
There was empty drygoods boxes under
the awnings, and loafers roosting on
them all day long, whittling them with
their Barlow knives; and chawing
tobacco, and gaping and yawning and
stretching—a mighty ornery lot.
They generly had on yellow straw hats
most as wide as an umbrella, but
didn't wear no coats nor waistcoats,
they called one another Bill, and
Buck, and Hank, and Joe, and Andy, and
talked lazy and drawly, and used
considerable many cuss words. There
was as many as one loafer leaning up
against every awning-post, and he most
always had his hands in his
britches-pockets, except when he
fetched them out to lend a chaw of
tobacco or scratch. What a body was
hearing amongst them all the time
was:
"Gimme a chaw 'v tobacker, Hank."
"Cain't; I hain't got but one chaw
left. Ask Bill."
Maybe Bill he gives him a chaw; maybe
he lies and says he ain't got none.
Some of them kinds of loafers never has
a cent in the world, nor a chaw
of tobacco of their own. They get all
their chawing by borrowing; they
say to a fellow, "I wisht you'd
len' me a chaw, Jack, I jist this minute
give Ben Thompson the last chaw I
had"—which is a lie pretty much
everytime; it don't fool nobody but a
stranger; but Jack ain't no
stranger, so he says:
"YOU give him a chaw, did you? So
did your sister's cat's grandmother.
You pay me back the chaws you've
awready borry'd off'n me, Lafe Buckner,
then I'll loan you one or two ton of
it, and won't charge you no back
intrust, nuther."
"Well, I DID pay you back some of
it wunst."
"Yes, you did—'bout six
chaws. You borry'd store tobacker and paid back
nigger-head."
Store tobacco is flat black plug, but
these fellows mostly chaws the
natural leaf twisted. When they borrow
a chaw they don't generly cut it
off with a knife, but set the plug in
between their teeth, and gnaw with
their teeth and tug at the plug with
their hands till they get it in two;
then sometimes the one that owns the
tobacco looks mournful at it when
it's handed back, and says, sarcastic:
"Here, gimme the CHAW, and you
take the PLUG."
All the streets and lanes was just mud;
they warn't nothing else BUT mud
—mud as black as tar and nigh
about a foot deep in some places, and two
or three inches deep in ALL the places.
The hogs loafed and grunted
around everywheres. You'd see a muddy
sow and a litter of pigs come
lazying along the street and whollop
herself right down in the way, where
folks had to walk around her, and she'd
stretch out and shut her eyes and
wave her ears whilst the pigs was
milking her, and look as happy as if
she was on salary. And pretty soon
you'd hear a loafer sing out, "Hi! SO
boy! sick him, Tige!" and away the
sow would go, squealing most horrible,
with a dog or two swinging to each ear,
and three or four dozen more
a-coming; and then you would see all
the loafers get up and watch the thing
out of sight, and laugh at the fun and
look grateful for the noise. Then
they'd settle back again till there was
a dog fight. There couldn't
anything wake them up all over, and
make them happy all over, like a dog
fight—unless it might be putting
turpentine on a stray dog and setting
fire to him, or tying a tin pan to his
tail and see him run himself to
death.
On the river front some of the houses
was sticking out over the bank, and
they was bowed and bent, and about
ready to tumble in, The people had
moved out of them. The bank was caved
away under one corner of some
others, and that corner was hanging
over. People lived in them yet, but
it was dangersome, because sometimes a
strip of land as wide as a house
caves in at a time. Sometimes a belt
of land a quarter of a mile deep
will start in and cave along and cave
along till it all caves into the
river in one summer. Such a town as
that has to be always moving back,
and back, and back, because the river's
always gnawing at it.
The nearer it got to noon that day the
thicker and thicker was the wagons
and horses in the streets, and more
coming all the time. Families
fetched their dinners with them from
the country, and eat them in the
wagons. There was considerable whisky
drinking going on, and I seen
three fights. By and by somebody sings
out:
"Here comes old Boggs!—in
from the country for his little old monthly
drunk; here he comes, boys!"
All the loafers looked glad; I reckoned
they was used to having fun out
of Boggs. One of them says:
"Wonder who he's a-gwyne to chaw
up this time. If he'd a-chawed up all
the men he's ben a-gwyne to chaw up in
the last twenty year he'd have
considerable ruputation now."
Another one says, "I wisht old
Boggs 'd threaten me, 'cuz then I'd know I
warn't gwyne to die for a thousan'
year."
Boggs comes a-tearing along on his
horse, whooping and yelling like an
Injun, and singing out:
"Cler the track, thar. I'm on the
waw-path, and the price uv coffins is
a-gwyne to raise."
He was drunk, and weaving about in his
saddle; he was over fifty year
old, and had a very red face.
Everybody yelled at him and laughed at him
and sassed him, and he sassed back, and
said he'd attend to them and lay
them out in their regular turns, but he
couldn't wait now because he'd
come to town to kill old Colonel
Sherburn, and his motto was, "Meat
first, and spoon vittles to top off
on."
He see me, and rode up and says:
"Whar'd you come f'm, boy? You
prepared to die?"
Then he rode on. I was scared, but a
man says:
"He don't mean nothing; he's
always a-carryin' on like that when he's
drunk. He's the best naturedest old
fool in Arkansaw—never hurt nobody,
drunk nor sober."
Boggs rode up before the biggest store
in town, and bent his head down so
he could see under the curtain of the
awning and yells:
"Come out here, Sherburn! Come out
and meet the man you've swindled.
You're the houn' I'm after, and I'm
a-gwyne to have you, too!"
And so he went on, calling Sherburn
everything he could lay his tongue
to, and the whole street packed with
people listening and laughing and
going on. By and by a proud-looking
man about fifty-five—and he was a
heap the best dressed man in that town,
too—steps out of the store, and
the crowd drops back on each side to
let him come. He says to Boggs,
mighty ca'm and slow—he says:
"I'm tired of this, but I'll
endure it till one o'clock. Till one
o'clock, mind—no longer. If you
open your mouth against me only once
after that time you can't travel so far
but I will find you."
Then he turns and goes in. The crowd
looked mighty sober; nobody
stirred, and there warn't no more
laughing. Boggs rode off blackguarding
Sherburn as loud as he could yell, all
down the street; and pretty soon
back he comes and stops before the
store, still keeping it up. Some men
crowded around him and tried to get him
to shut up, but he wouldn't; they
told him it would be one o'clock in
about fifteen minutes, and so he MUST
go home—he must go right away.
But it didn't do no good. He cussed
away with all his might, and throwed
his hat down in the mud and rode
over it, and pretty soon away he went
a-raging down the street again,
with his gray hair a-flying. Everybody
that could get a chance at him
tried their best to coax him off of his
horse so they could lock him up
and get him sober; but it warn't no
use—up the street he would tear
again, and give Sherburn another
cussing. By and by somebody says:
"Go for his daughter!—quick,
go for his daughter; sometimes he'll listen
to her. If anybody can persuade him,
she can."
So somebody started on a run. I walked
down street a ways and stopped.
In about five or ten minutes here comes
Boggs again, but not on his
horse. He was a-reeling across the
street towards me, bare-headed, with
a friend on both sides of him a-holt of
his arms and hurrying him along.
He was quiet, and looked uneasy; and he
warn't hanging back any, but was
doing some of the hurrying himself.
Somebody sings out:
"Boggs!"
I looked over there to see who said it,
and it was that Colonel Sherburn.
He was standing perfectly still in the
street, and had a pistol raised in
his right hand—not aiming it, but
holding it out with the barrel tilted
up towards the sky. The same second I
see a young girl coming on the
run, and two men with her. Boggs and
the men turned round to see who
called him, and when they see the
pistol the men jumped to one side, and
the pistol-barrel come down slow and
steady to a level—both barrels
cocked. Boggs throws up both of his
hands and says, "O Lord, don't
shoot!" Bang! goes the first
shot, and he staggers back, clawing at the
air—bang! goes the second one,
and he tumbles backwards on to the
ground, heavy and solid, with his arms
spread out. That young girl
screamed out and comes rushing, and
down she throws herself on her
father, crying, and saying, "Oh,
he's killed him, he's killed him!" The
crowd closed up around them, and
shouldered and jammed one another, with
their necks stretched, trying to see,
and people on the inside trying to
shove them back and shouting, "Back,
back! give him air, give him air!"
Colonel Sherburn he tossed his pistol
on to the ground, and turned around
on his heels and walked off.
They took Boggs to a little drug store,
the crowd pressing around just
the same, and the whole town following,
and I rushed and got a good place
at the window, where I was close to him
and could see in. They laid him
on the floor and put one large Bible
under his head, and opened another
one and spread it on his breast; but
they tore open his shirt first, and
I seen where one of the bullets went
in. He made about a dozen long
gasps, his breast lifting the Bible up
when he drawed in his breath, and
letting it down again when he breathed
it out—and after that he laid
still; he was dead. Then they pulled
his daughter away from him,
screaming and crying, and took her off.
She was about sixteen, and very
sweet and gentle looking, but awful
pale and scared.
Well, pretty soon the whole town was
there, squirming and scrouging and
pushing and shoving to get at the
window and have a look, but people that
had the places wouldn't give them up,
and folks behind them was saying
all the time, "Say, now, you've
looked enough, you fellows; 'tain't right
and 'tain't fair for you to stay thar
all the time, and never give nobody
a chance; other folks has their rights
as well as you."
There was considerable jawing back, so
I slid out, thinking maybe there
was going to be trouble. The streets
was full, and everybody was
excited. Everybody that seen the
shooting was telling how it happened,
and there was a big crowd packed around
each one of these fellows,
stretching their necks and listening.
One long, lanky man, with long
hair and a big white fur stovepipe hat
on the back of his head, and a
crooked-handled cane, marked out the
places on the ground where Boggs
stood and where Sherburn stood, and the
people following him around from
one place to t'other and watching
everything he done, and bobbing their
heads to show they understood, and
stooping a little and resting their
hands on their thighs to watch him mark
the places on the ground with his
cane; and then he stood up straight and
stiff where Sherburn had stood,
frowning and having his hat-brim down
over his eyes, and sung out,
"Boggs!" and then fetched his
cane down slow to a level, and says "Bang!"
staggered backwards, says "Bang!"
again, and fell down flat on his back.
The people that had seen the thing said
he done it perfect; said it was
just exactly the way it all happened.
Then as much as a dozen people got
out their bottles and treated him.
Well, by and by somebody said Sherburn
ought to be lynched. In about a
minute everybody was saying it; so away
they went, mad and yelling, and
snatching down every clothes-line they
come to to do the hanging with.
CHAPTER XXII.
THEY swarmed up towards Sherburn's
house, a-whooping and raging like
Injuns, and everything had to clear the
way or get run over and tromped
to mush, and it was awful to see.
Children was heeling it ahead of the
mob, screaming and trying to get out of
the way; and every window along
the road was full of women's heads, and
there was nigger boys in every
tree, and bucks and wenches looking
over every fence; and as soon as the
mob would get nearly to them they would
break and skaddle back out of
reach. Lots of the women and girls was
crying and taking on, scared most
to death.
They swarmed up in front of Sherburn's
palings as thick as they could jam
together, and you couldn't hear
yourself think for the noise. It was a
little twenty-foot yard. Some sung out
"Tear down the fence! tear down
the fence!" Then there was a
racket of ripping and tearing and smashing,
and down she goes, and the front wall
of the crowd begins to roll in like
a wave.
Just then Sherburn steps out on to the
roof of his little front porch,
with a double-barrel gun in his hand,
and takes his stand, perfectly ca'm
and deliberate, not saying a word. The
racket stopped, and the wave
sucked back.
Sherburn never said a word—just
stood there, looking down. The
stillness was awful creepy and
uncomfortable. Sherburn run his eye slow
along the crowd; and wherever it struck
the people tried a little to
out-gaze him, but they couldn't; they
dropped their eyes and looked sneaky.
Then pretty soon Sherburn sort of
laughed; not the pleasant kind, but the
kind that makes you feel like when you
are eating bread that's got sand
in it.
Then he says, slow and scornful:
"The idea of YOU lynching anybody!
It's amusing. The idea of you
thinking you had pluck enough to lynch
a MAN! Because you're brave
enough to tar and feather poor
friendless cast-out women that come along
here, did that make you think you had
grit enough to lay your hands on a
MAN? Why, a MAN'S safe in the hands of
ten thousand of your kind—as
long as it's daytime and you're not
behind him.
"Do I know you? I know you clear
through was born and raised in the
South, and I've lived in the North; so
I know the average all around.
The average man's a coward. In the
North he lets anybody walk over him
that wants to, and goes home and prays
for a humble spirit to bear it.
In the South one man all by himself,
has stopped a stage full of men in
the daytime, and robbed the lot. Your
newspapers call you a brave people
so much that you think you are braver
than any other people—whereas
you're just AS brave, and no braver.
Why don't your juries hang
murderers? Because they're afraid the
man's friends will shoot them in
the back, in the dark—and it's
just what they WOULD do.
"So they always acquit; and then a
MAN goes in the night, with a hundred
masked cowards at his back and lynches
the rascal. Your mistake is, that
you didn't bring a man with you; that's
one mistake, and the other is
that you didn't come in the dark and
fetch your masks. You brought PART
of a man—Buck Harkness, there—and
if you hadn't had him to start you,
you'd a taken it out in blowing.
"You didn't want to come. The
average man don't like trouble and danger.
YOU don't like trouble and danger. But
if only HALF a man—like Buck
Harkness, there—shouts 'Lynch
him! lynch him!' you're afraid to back
down—afraid you'll be found out
to be what you are—COWARDS—and so
you raise a yell, and hang yourselves
on to that half-a-man's coat-tail,
and come raging up here, swearing what
big things you're going to do.
The pitifulest thing out is a mob;
that's what an army is—a mob; they
don't fight with courage that's born in
them, but with courage that's
borrowed from their mass, and from
their officers. But a mob without any
MAN at the head of it is BENEATH
pitifulness. Now the thing for YOU to
do is to droop your tails and go home
and crawl in a hole. If any real
lynching's going to be done it will be
done in the dark, Southern
fashion; and when they come they'll
bring their masks, and fetch a MAN
along. Now LEAVE—and take your
half-a-man with you"—tossing his gun up
across his left arm and cocking it when
he says this.
The crowd washed back sudden, and then
broke all apart, and went tearing
off every which way, and Buck Harkness
he heeled it after them, looking
tolerable cheap. I could a stayed if I
wanted to, but I didn't want to.
I went to the circus and loafed around
the back side till the watchman
went by, and then dived in under the
tent. I had my twenty-dollar gold
piece and some other money, but I
reckoned I better save it, because
there ain't no telling how soon you are
going to need it, away from home
and amongst strangers that way. You
can't be too careful. I ain't
opposed to spending money on circuses
when there ain't no other way, but
there ain't no use in WASTING it on
them.
It was a real bully circus. It was the
splendidest sight that ever was
when they all come riding in, two and
two, a gentleman and lady, side by
side, the men just in their drawers and
undershirts, and no shoes nor
stirrups, and resting their hands on
their thighs easy and comfortable
—there must a been twenty of
them—and every lady with a lovely
complexion, and perfectly beautiful,
and looking just like a gang of real
sure-enough queens, and dressed in
clothes that cost millions of dollars,
and just littered with diamonds. It
was a powerful fine sight; I never
see anything so lovely. And then one
by one they got up and stood, and
went a-weaving around the ring so
gentle and wavy and graceful, the men
looking ever so tall and airy and
straight, with their heads bobbing and
skimming along, away up there under the
tent-roof, and every lady's
rose-leafy dress flapping soft and
silky around her hips, and she looking
like the most loveliest parasol.
And then faster and faster they went,
all of them dancing, first one foot
out in the air and then the other, the
horses leaning more and more, and
the ringmaster going round and round
the center-pole, cracking his whip
and shouting "Hi!—hi!"
and the clown cracking jokes behind him; and by
and by all hands dropped the reins, and
every lady put her knuckles on
her hips and every gentleman folded his
arms, and then how the horses did
lean over and hump themselves! And so
one after the other they all
skipped off into the ring, and made the
sweetest bow I ever see, and then
scampered out, and everybody clapped
their hands and went just about
wild.
Well, all through the circus they done
the most astonishing things; and
all the time that clown carried on so
it most killed the people. The
ringmaster couldn't ever say a word to
him but he was back at him quick
as a wink with the funniest things a
body ever said; and how he ever
COULD think of so many of them, and so
sudden and so pat, was what I
couldn't noway understand. Why, I
couldn't a thought of them in a year.
And by and by a drunk man tried to get
into the ring—said he wanted to
ride; said he could ride as well as
anybody that ever was. They argued
and tried to keep him out, but he
wouldn't listen, and the whole show
come to a standstill. Then the people
begun to holler at him and make
fun of him, and that made him mad, and
he begun to rip and tear; so that
stirred up the people, and a lot of men
begun to pile down off of the
benches and swarm towards the ring,
saying, "Knock him down! throw him
out!" and one or two women begun
to scream. So, then, the ringmaster he
made a little speech, and said he hoped
there wouldn't be no disturbance,
and if the man would promise he
wouldn't make no more trouble he would
let him ride if he thought he could
stay on the horse. So everybody
laughed and said all right, and the man
got on. The minute he was on, the
horse begun to rip and tear and jump
and cavort around, with two circus
men hanging on to his bridle trying to
hold him, and the drunk man
hanging on to his neck, and his heels
flying in the air every jump, and
the whole crowd of people standing up
shouting and laughing till tears
rolled down. And at last, sure enough,
all the circus men could do, the
horse broke loose, and away he went
like the very nation, round and round
the ring, with that sot laying down on
him and hanging to his neck, with
first one leg hanging most to the
ground on one side, and then t'other
one on t'other side, and the people
just crazy. It warn't funny to me,
though; I was all of a tremble to see
his danger. But pretty soon he
struggled up astraddle and grabbed the
bridle, a-reeling this way and
that; and the next minute he sprung up
and dropped the bridle and stood!
and the horse a-going like a house
afire too. He just stood up there,
a-sailing around as easy and
comfortable as if he warn't ever drunk in his
life—and then he begun to pull
off his clothes and sling them. He shed
them so thick they kind of clogged up
the air, and altogether he shed
seventeen suits. And, then, there he
was, slim and handsome, and dressed
the gaudiest and prettiest you ever
saw, and he lit into that horse with
his whip and made him fairly hum—and
finally skipped off, and made his
bow and danced off to the
dressing-room, and everybody just a-howling
with pleasure and astonishment.
Then the ringmaster he see how he had
been fooled, and he WAS the sickest
ringmaster you ever see, I reckon.
Why, it was one of his own men! He
had got up that joke all out of his own
head, and never let on to nobody.
Well, I felt sheepish enough to be took
in so, but I wouldn't a been in
that ringmaster's place, not for a
thousand dollars. I don't know; there
may be bullier circuses than what that
one was, but I never struck them
yet. Anyways, it was plenty good enough
for ME; and wherever I run across
it, it can have all of MY custom every
time.
Well, that night we had OUR show; but
there warn't only about twelve
people there—just enough to pay
expenses. And they laughed all the
time, and that made the duke mad; and
everybody left, anyway, before the
show was over, but one boy which was
asleep. So the duke said these
Arkansaw lunkheads couldn't come up to
Shakespeare; what they wanted was
low comedy—and maybe something
ruther worse than low comedy, he
reckoned. He said he could size their
style. So next morning he got
some big sheets of wrapping paper and
some black paint, and drawed off
some handbills, and stuck them up all
over the village. The bills said:
AT THE COURT HOUSE! FOR 3 NIGHTS ONLY!
The World-Renowned Tragedians
DAVID GARRICK THE YOUNGER!
AND EDMUND KEAN THE ELDER!
Of the London and
Continental Theatres,
In their Thrilling Tragedy of
THE KING'S CAMELEOPARD,
OR THE ROYAL NONESUCH ! ! !
Admission 50 cents.
Then at the bottom was the biggest line
of all, which said:
LADIES AND CHILDREN NOT ADMITTED.
"There," says he, "if
that line don't fetch them, I don't know Arkansaw!"
CHAPTER XXIII.
WELL, all day him and the king was hard
at it, rigging up a stage and a
curtain and a row of candles for
footlights; and that night the house was
jam full of men in no time. When the
place couldn't hold no more, the
duke he quit tending door and went
around the back way and come on to the
stage and stood up before the curtain
and made a little speech, and
praised up this tragedy, and said it
was the most thrillingest one that
ever was; and so he went on a-bragging
about the tragedy, and about
Edmund Kean the Elder, which was to
play the main principal part in it;
and at last when he'd got everybody's
expectations up high enough, he
rolled up the curtain, and the next
minute the king come a-prancing out
on all fours, naked; and he was painted
all over, ring-streaked-and-
striped, all sorts of colors, as
splendid as a rainbow. And—but never
mind the rest of his outfit; it was
just wild, but it was awful funny.
The people most killed themselves
laughing; and when the king got done
capering and capered off behind the
scenes, they roared and clapped and
stormed and haw-hawed till he come back
and done it over again, and after
that they made him do it another time.
Well, it would make a cow laugh to
see the shines that old idiot cut.
Then the duke he lets the curtain down,
and bows to the people, and says
the great tragedy will be performed
only two nights more, on accounts of
pressing London engagements, where the
seats is all sold already for it
in Drury Lane; and then he makes them
another bow, and says if he has
succeeded in pleasing them and
instructing them, he will be deeply
obleeged if they will mention it to
their friends and get them to come
and see it.
Twenty people sings out:
"What, is it over? Is that ALL?"
The duke says yes. Then there was a
fine time. Everybody sings out,
"Sold!" and rose up mad, and
was a-going for that stage and them
tragedians. But a big, fine looking
man jumps up on a bench and shouts:
"Hold on! Just a word,
gentlemen." They stopped to listen. "We are
sold—mighty badly sold. But we
don't want to be the laughing stock of
this whole town, I reckon, and never
hear the last of this thing as long
as we live. NO. What we want is to go
out of here quiet, and talk this
show up, and sell the REST of the town!
Then we'll all be in the same
boat. Ain't that sensible?" ("You
bet it is!—the jedge is right!"
everybody sings out.) "All right,
then—not a word about any sell. Go
along home, and advise everybody to
come and see the tragedy."
Next day you couldn't hear nothing
around that town but how splendid that
show was. House was jammed again that
night, and we sold this crowd the
same way. When me and the king and the
duke got home to the raft we all
had a supper; and by and by, about
midnight, they made Jim and me back
her out and float her down the middle
of the river, and fetch her in and
hide her about two mile below town.
The third night the house was crammed
again—and they warn't new-comers
this time, but people that was at the
show the other two nights. I stood
by the duke at the door, and I see that
every man that went in had his
pockets bulging, or something muffled
up under his coat—and I see it
warn't no perfumery, neither, not by a
long sight. I smelt sickly eggs
by the barrel, and rotten cabbages, and
such things; and if I know the
signs of a dead cat being around, and I
bet I do, there was sixty-four of
them went in. I shoved in there for a
minute, but it was too various for
me; I couldn't stand it. Well, when
the place couldn't hold no more
people the duke he give a fellow a
quarter and told him to tend door for
him a minute, and then he started
around for the stage door, I after him;
but the minute we turned the corner and
was in the dark he says:
"Walk fast now till you get away
from the houses, and then shin for the
raft like the dickens was after you!"
I done it, and he done the same. We
struck the raft at the same time,
and in less than two seconds we was
gliding down stream, all dark and
still, and edging towards the middle of
the river, nobody saying a word.
I reckoned the poor king was in for a
gaudy time of it with the audience,
but nothing of the sort; pretty soon he
crawls out from under the wigwam,
and says:
"Well, how'd the old thing pan out
this time, duke?" He hadn't been
up-town at all.
We never showed a light till we was
about ten mile below the village.
Then we lit up and had a supper, and
the king and the duke fairly laughed
their bones loose over the way they'd
served them people. The duke says:
"Greenhorns, flatheads! I knew
the first house would keep mum and let
the rest of the town get roped in; and
I knew they'd lay for us the third
night, and consider it was THEIR turn
now. Well, it IS their turn, and
I'd give something to know how much
they'd take for it. I WOULD just
like to know how they're putting in
their opportunity. They can turn it
into a picnic if they want to—they
brought plenty provisions."
Them rapscallions took in four hundred
and sixty-five dollars in that
three nights. I never see money hauled
in by the wagon-load like that
before. By and by, when they was
asleep and snoring, Jim says:
"Don't it s'prise you de way dem
kings carries on, Huck?"
"No," I says, "it
don't."
"Why don't it, Huck?"
"Well, it don't, because it's in
the breed. I reckon they're all alike,"
"But, Huck, dese kings o' ourn is
reglar rapscallions; dat's jist what
dey is; dey's reglar rapscallions."
"Well, that's what I'm a-saying;
all kings is mostly rapscallions, as fur
as I can make out."
"Is dat so?"
"You read about them once—you'll
see. Look at Henry the Eight; this 'n
's a Sunday-school Superintendent to
HIM. And look at Charles Second,
and Louis Fourteen, and Louis Fifteen,
and James Second, and Edward
Second, and Richard Third, and forty
more; besides all them Saxon
heptarchies that used to rip around so
in old times and raise Cain. My,
you ought to seen old Henry the Eight
when he was in bloom. He WAS a
blossom. He used to marry a new wife
every day, and chop off her head
next morning. And he would do it just
as indifferent as if he was
ordering up eggs. 'Fetch up Nell
Gwynn,' he says. They fetch her up.
Next morning, 'Chop off her head!' And
they chop it off. 'Fetch up Jane
Shore,' he says; and up she comes, Next
morning, 'Chop off her head'—and
they chop it off. 'Ring up Fair
Rosamun.' Fair Rosamun answers the
bell. Next morning, 'Chop off her
head.' And he made every one of them
tell him a tale every night; and he
kept that up till he had hogged a
thousand and one tales that way, and
then he put them all in a book, and
called it Domesday Book—which was
a good name and stated the case. You
don't know kings, Jim, but I know them;
and this old rip of ourn is one
of the cleanest I've struck in history.
Well, Henry he takes a notion he
wants to get up some trouble with this
country. How does he go at it
—give notice?—give the
country a show? No. All of a sudden he heaves
all the tea in Boston Harbor overboard,
and whacks out a declaration of
independence, and dares them to come
on. That was HIS style—he never
give anybody a chance. He had
suspicions of his father, the Duke of
Wellington. Well, what did he do? Ask
him to show up? No—drownded
him in a butt of mamsey, like a cat.
S'pose people left money laying
around where he was—what did he
do? He collared it. S'pose he
contracted to do a thing, and you paid
him, and didn't set down there and
see that he done it—what did he
do? He always done the other thing.
S'pose he opened his mouth—what
then? If he didn't shut it up powerful
quick he'd lose a lie every time.
That's the kind of a bug Henry was;
and if we'd a had him along 'stead of
our kings he'd a fooled that town a
heap worse than ourn done. I don't say
that ourn is lambs, because they
ain't, when you come right down to the
cold facts; but they ain't nothing
to THAT old ram, anyway. All I say is,
kings is kings, and you got to
make allowances. Take them all around,
they're a mighty ornery lot.
It's the way they're raised."
"But dis one do SMELL so like de
nation, Huck."
"Well, they all do, Jim. We can't
help the way a king smells; history
don't tell no way."
"Now de duke, he's a tolerble
likely man in some ways."
"Yes, a duke's different. But not
very different. This one's a middling
hard lot for a duke. When he's drunk
there ain't no near-sighted man
could tell him from a king."
"Well, anyways, I doan' hanker for
no mo' un um, Huck. Dese is all I kin
stan'."
"It's the way I feel, too, Jim.
But we've got them on our hands, and we
got to remember what they are, and make
allowances. Sometimes I wish we
could hear of a country that's out of
kings."
What was the use to tell Jim these
warn't real kings and dukes? It
wouldn't a done no good; and, besides,
it was just as I said: you
couldn't tell them from the real kind.
I went to sleep, and Jim didn't call me
when it was my turn. He often
done that. When I waked up just at
daybreak he was sitting there with
his head down betwixt his knees,
moaning and mourning to himself. I
didn't take notice nor let on. I
knowed what it was about. He was
thinking about his wife and his
children, away up yonder, and he was low
and homesick; because he hadn't ever
been away from home before in his
life; and I do believe he cared just as
much for his people as white
folks does for their'n. It don't seem
natural, but I reckon it's so. He
was often moaning and mourning that way
nights, when he judged I was
asleep, and saying, "Po' little
'Lizabeth! po' little Johnny! it's mighty
hard; I spec' I ain't ever gwyne to see
you no mo', no mo'!" He was a
mighty good nigger, Jim was.
But this time I somehow got to talking
to him about his wife and young
ones; and by and by he says:
"What makes me feel so bad dis
time 'uz bekase I hear sumpn over yonder
on de bank like a whack, er a slam,
while ago, en it mine me er de time I
treat my little 'Lizabeth so ornery.
She warn't on'y 'bout fo' year ole,
en she tuck de sk'yarlet fever, en had
a powful rough spell; but she got
well, en one day she was a-stannin'
aroun', en I says to her, I says:
"'Shet de do'.'
"She never done it; jis' stood
dah, kiner smilin' up at me. It make me
mad; en I says agin, mighty loud, I
says:
"'Doan' you hear me? Shet de
do'!'
"She jis stood de same way, kiner
smilin' up. I was a-bilin'! I says:
"'I lay I MAKE you mine!'
"En wid dat I fetch' her a slap
side de head dat sont her a-sprawlin'.
Den I went into de yuther room, en 'uz
gone 'bout ten minutes; en when I
come back dah was dat do' a-stannin'
open YIT, en dat chile stannin' mos'
right in it, a-lookin' down and
mournin', en de tears runnin' down. My,
but I WUZ mad! I was a-gwyne for de
chile, but jis' den—it was a do'
dat open innerds—jis' den, 'long
come de wind en slam it to, behine de
chile, ker-BLAM!—en my lan', de
chile never move'! My breff mos' hop
outer me; en I feel so—so—I
doan' know HOW I feel. I crope out, all
a-tremblin', en crope aroun' en open de
do' easy en slow, en poke my head
in behine de chile, sof' en still, en
all uv a sudden I says POW! jis' as
loud as I could yell. SHE NEVER BUDGE!
Oh, Huck, I bust out a-cryin' en
grab her up in my arms, en say, 'Oh, de
po' little thing! De Lord God
Amighty fogive po' ole Jim, kaze he
never gwyne to fogive hisself as
long's he live!' Oh, she was plumb
deef en dumb, Huck, plumb deef en
dumb—en I'd ben a-treat'n her
so!"
CHAPTER XXIV.
NEXT day, towards night, we laid up
under a little willow towhead out in
the middle, where there was a village
on each side of the river, and the
duke and the king begun to lay out a
plan for working them towns. Jim he
spoke to the duke, and said he hoped it
wouldn't take but a few hours,
because it got mighty heavy and
tiresome to him when he had to lay all
day in the wigwam tied with the rope.
You see, when we left him all
alone we had to tie him, because if
anybody happened on to him all by
himself and not tied it wouldn't look
much like he was a runaway nigger,
you know. So the duke said it WAS kind
of hard to have to lay roped all
day, and he'd cipher out some way to
get around it.
He was uncommon bright, the duke was,
and he soon struck it. He dressed
Jim up in King Lear's outfit—it
was a long curtain-calico gown, and a
white horse-hair wig and whiskers; and
then he took his theater paint and
painted Jim's face and hands and ears
and neck all over a dead, dull,
solid blue, like a man that's been
drownded nine days. Blamed if he
warn't the horriblest looking outrage I
ever see. Then the duke took and
wrote out a sign on a shingle so:
Sick Arab—but harmless when not
out of his head.
And he nailed that shingle to a lath,
and stood the lath up four or five
foot in front of the wigwam. Jim was
satisfied. He said it was a sight
better than lying tied a couple of
years every day, and trembling all
over every time there was a sound. The
duke told him to make himself
free and easy, and if anybody ever come
meddling around, he must hop out
of the wigwam, and carry on a little,
and fetch a howl or two like a wild
beast, and he reckoned they would light
out and leave him alone. Which
was sound enough judgment; but you take
the average man, and he wouldn't
wait for him to howl. Why, he didn't
only look like he was dead, he
looked considerable more than that.
These rapscallions wanted to try the
Nonesuch again, because there was so
much money in it, but they judged it
wouldn't be safe, because maybe the
news might a worked along down by this
time. They couldn't hit no
project that suited exactly; so at last
the duke said he reckoned he'd
lay off and work his brains an hour or
two and see if he couldn't put up
something on the Arkansaw village; and
the king he allowed he would drop
over to t'other village without any
plan, but just trust in Providence to
lead him the profitable way—meaning
the devil, I reckon. We had all
bought store clothes where we stopped
last; and now the king put his'n
on, and he told me to put mine on. I
done it, of course. The king's
duds was all black, and he did look
real swell and starchy. I never
knowed how clothes could change a body
before. Why, before, he looked
like the orneriest old rip that ever
was; but now, when he'd take off his
new white beaver and make a bow and do
a smile, he looked that grand and
good and pious that you'd say he had
walked right out of the ark, and
maybe was old Leviticus himself. Jim
cleaned up the canoe, and I got my
paddle ready. There was a big
steamboat laying at the shore away up
under the point, about three mile above
the town—been there a couple
of hours, taking on freight. Says the
king:
"Seein' how I'm dressed, I reckon
maybe I better arrive down from St.
Louis or Cincinnati, or some other big
place. Go for the steamboat,
Huckleberry; we'll come down to the
village on her."
I didn't have to be ordered twice to go
and take a steamboat ride. I
fetched the shore a half a mile above
the village, and then went scooting
along the bluff bank in the easy water.
Pretty soon we come to a nice
innocent-looking young country jake
setting on a log swabbing the sweat
off of his face, for it was powerful
warm weather; and he had a couple of
big carpet-bags by him.
"Run her nose in shore," says
the king. I done it. "Wher' you bound
for, young man?"
"For the steamboat; going to
Orleans."
"Git aboard," says the king.
"Hold on a minute, my servant 'll he'p you
with them bags. Jump out and he'p the
gentleman, Adolphus"—meaning me,
I see.
I done so, and then we all three
started on again. The young chap was
mighty thankful; said it was tough work
toting his baggage such weather.
He asked the king where he was going,
and the king told him he'd come
down the river and landed at the other
village this morning, and now he
was going up a few mile to see an old
friend on a farm up there. The
young fellow says:
"When I first see you I says to
myself, 'It's Mr. Wilks, sure, and he
come mighty near getting here in time.'
But then I says again, 'No, I
reckon it ain't him, or else he
wouldn't be paddling up the river.' You
AIN'T him, are you?"
"No, my name's Blodgett—Elexander
Blodgett—REVEREND Elexander Blodgett,
I s'pose I must say, as I'm one o' the
Lord's poor servants. But still
I'm jist as able to be sorry for Mr.
Wilks for not arriving in time, all
the same, if he's missed anything by
it—which I hope he hasn't."
"Well, he don't miss any property
by it, because he'll get that all
right; but he's missed seeing his
brother Peter die—which he mayn't
mind, nobody can tell as to that—but
his brother would a give anything
in this world to see HIM before he
died; never talked about nothing else
all these three weeks; hadn't seen him
since they was boys together—and
hadn't ever seen his brother William at
all—that's the deef and dumb
one—William ain't more than
thirty or thirty-five. Peter and George
were the only ones that come out here;
George was the married brother;
him and his wife both died last year.
Harvey and William's the only ones
that's left now; and, as I was saying,
they haven't got here in time."
"Did anybody send 'em word?"
"Oh, yes; a month or two ago, when
Peter was first took; because Peter
said then that he sorter felt like he
warn't going to get well this time.
You see, he was pretty old, and
George's g'yirls was too young to be much
company for him, except Mary Jane, the
red-headed one; and so he was
kinder lonesome after George and his
wife died, and didn't seem to care
much to live. He most desperately
wanted to see Harvey—and William,
too, for that matter—because he
was one of them kind that can't bear to
make a will. He left a letter behind
for Harvey, and said he'd told in
it where his money was hid, and how he
wanted the rest of the property
divided up so George's g'yirls would be
all right—for George didn't
leave nothing. And that letter was all
they could get him to put a pen
to."
"Why do you reckon Harvey don't
come? Wher' does he live?"
"Oh, he lives in
England—Sheffield—preaches there—hasn't ever been
in
this country. He hasn't had any too
much time—and besides he mightn't a
got the letter at all, you know."
"Too bad, too bad he couldn't a
lived to see his brothers, poor soul.
You going to Orleans, you say?"
"Yes, but that ain't only a part
of it. I'm going in a ship, next
Wednesday, for Ryo Janeero, where my
uncle lives."
"It's a pretty long journey. But
it'll be lovely; wisht I was a-going.
Is Mary Jane the oldest? How old is
the others?"
"Mary Jane's nineteen, Susan's
fifteen, and Joanna's about fourteen
—that's the one that gives
herself to good works and has a hare-lip."
"Poor things! to be left alone in
the cold world so."
"Well, they could be worse off.
Old Peter had friends, and they ain't
going to let them come to no harm.
There's Hobson, the Babtis' preacher;
and Deacon Lot Hovey, and Ben Rucker,
and Abner Shackleford, and Levi
Bell, the lawyer; and Dr. Robinson, and
their wives, and the widow
Bartley, and—well, there's a lot
of them; but these are the ones that
Peter was thickest with, and used to
write about sometimes, when he wrote
home; so Harvey 'll know where to look
for friends when he gets here."
Well, the old man went on asking
questions till he just fairly emptied
that young fellow. Blamed if he didn't
inquire about everybody and
everything in that blessed town, and
all about the Wilkses; and about
Peter's business—which was a
tanner; and about George's—which was a
carpenter; and about Harvey's—which
was a dissentering minister; and so
on, and so on. Then he says:
"What did you want to walk all the
way up to the steamboat for?"
"Because she's a big Orleans boat,
and I was afeard she mightn't stop
there. When they're deep they won't
stop for a hail. A Cincinnati boat
will, but this is a St. Louis one."
"Was Peter Wilks well off?"
"Oh, yes, pretty well off. He had
houses and land, and it's reckoned he
left three or four thousand in cash hid
up som'ers."
"When did you say he died?"
"I didn't say, but it was last
night."
"Funeral to-morrow, likely?"
"Yes, 'bout the middle of the
day."
"Well, it's all terrible sad; but
we've all got to go, one time or
another. So what we want to do is to be
prepared; then we're all right."
"Yes, sir, it's the best way. Ma
used to always say that."
When we struck the boat she was about
done loading, and pretty soon she
got off. The king never said nothing
about going aboard, so I lost my
ride, after all. When the boat was
gone the king made me paddle up
another mile to a lonesome place, and
then he got ashore and says:
"Now hustle back, right off, and
fetch the duke up here, and the new
carpet-bags. And if he's gone over to
t'other side, go over there and
git him. And tell him to git himself
up regardless. Shove along, now."
I see what HE was up to; but I never
said nothing, of course. When I got
back with the duke we hid the canoe,
and then they set down on a log, and
the king told him everything, just like
the young fellow had said it
—every last word of it. And all
the time he was a-doing it he tried to
talk like an Englishman; and he done it
pretty well, too, for a slouch.
I can't imitate him, and so I ain't
a-going to try to; but he really done
it pretty good. Then he says:
"How are you on the deef and dumb,
Bilgewater?"
The duke said, leave him alone for
that; said he had played a deef and
dumb person on the histronic boards.
So then they waited for a
steamboat.
About the middle of the afternoon a
couple of little boats come along,
but they didn't come from high enough
up the river; but at last there was
a big one, and they hailed her. She
sent out her yawl, and we went
aboard, and she was from Cincinnati;
and when they found we only wanted
to go four or five mile they was
booming mad, and gave us a cussing, and
said they wouldn't land us. But the
king was ca'm. He says:
"If gentlemen kin afford to pay a
dollar a mile apiece to be took on and
put off in a yawl, a steamboat kin
afford to carry 'em, can't it?"
So they softened down and said it was
all right; and when we got to the
village they yawled us ashore. About
two dozen men flocked down when
they see the yawl a-coming, and when
the king says:
"Kin any of you gentlemen tell me
wher' Mr. Peter Wilks lives?" they give
a glance at one another, and nodded
their heads, as much as to say, "What
d' I tell you?" Then one of them
says, kind of soft and gentle:
"I'm sorry sir, but the best we
can do is to tell you where he DID live
yesterday evening."
Sudden as winking the ornery old cretur
went an to smash, and fell up
against the man, and put his chin on
his shoulder, and cried down his
back, and says:
"Alas, alas, our poor
brother—gone, and we never got to see him; oh,
it's too, too hard!"
Then he turns around, blubbering, and
makes a lot of idiotic signs to the
duke on his hands, and blamed if he
didn't drop a carpet-bag and bust out
a-crying. If they warn't the beatenest
lot, them two frauds, that ever I
struck.
Well, the men gathered around and
sympathized with them, and said all
sorts of kind things to them, and
carried their carpet-bags up the hill
for them, and let them lean on them and
cry, and told the king all about
his brother's last moments, and the
king he told it all over again on his
hands to the duke, and both of them
took on about that dead tanner like
they'd lost the twelve disciples.
Well, if ever I struck anything like
it, I'm a nigger. It was enough to make
a body ashamed of the human race.
CHAPTER XXV.
THE news was all over town in two
minutes, and you could see the people
tearing down on the run from every
which way, some of them putting on
their coats as they come. Pretty soon
we was in the middle of a crowd,
and the noise of the tramping was like
a soldier march. The windows and
dooryards was full; and every minute
somebody would say, over a fence:
"Is it THEM?"
And somebody trotting along with the
gang would answer back and say:
"You bet it is."
When we got to the house the street in
front of it was packed, and the
three girls was standing in the door.
Mary Jane WAS red-headed, but that
don't make no difference, she was most
awful beautiful, and her face and
her eyes was all lit up like glory, she
was so glad her uncles was come.
The king he spread his arms, and Mary
Jane she jumped for them, and the
hare-lip jumped for the duke, and there
they HAD it! Everybody most,
leastways women, cried for joy to see
them meet again at last and have
such good times.
Then the king he hunched the duke
private—I see him do it—and then he
looked around and see the coffin, over
in the corner on two chairs; so
then him and the duke, with a hand
across each other's shoulder, and
t'other hand to their eyes, walked slow
and solemn over there, everybody
dropping back to give them room, and
all the talk and noise stopping,
people saying "Sh!" and all
the men taking their hats off and drooping
their heads, so you could a heard a pin
fall. And when they got there
they bent over and looked in the
coffin, and took one sight, and then
they bust out a-crying so you could a
heard them to Orleans, most; and
then they put their arms around each
other's necks, and hung their chins
over each other's shoulders; and then
for three minutes, or maybe four, I
never see two men leak the way they
done. And, mind you, everybody was
doing the same; and the place was that
damp I never see anything like it.
Then one of them got on one side of the
coffin, and t'other on t'other
side, and they kneeled down and rested
their foreheads on the coffin, and
let on to pray all to themselves.
Well, when it come to that it worked
the crowd like you never see anything
like it, and everybody broke down
and went to sobbing right out loud—the
poor girls, too; and every woman,
nearly, went up to the girls, without
saying a word, and kissed them,
solemn, on the forehead, and then put
their hand on their head, and
looked up towards the sky, with the
tears running down, and then busted
out and went off sobbing and swabbing,
and give the next woman a show. I
never see anything so disgusting.
Well, by and by the king he gets up and
comes forward a little, and works
himself up and slobbers out a speech,
all full of tears and flapdoodle
about its being a sore trial for him
and his poor brother to lose the
diseased, and to miss seeing diseased
alive after the long journey of
four thousand mile, but it's a trial
that's sweetened and sanctified to
us by this dear sympathy and these holy
tears, and so he thanks them out
of his heart and out of his brother's
heart, because out of their mouths
they can't, words being too weak and
cold, and all that kind of rot and
slush, till it was just sickening; and
then he blubbers out a pious
goody-goody Amen, and turns himself
loose and goes to crying fit to bust.
And the minute the words were out of
his mouth somebody over in the crowd
struck up the doxolojer, and everybody
joined in with all their might,
and it just warmed you up and made you
feel as good as church letting
out. Music is a good thing; and after
all that soul-butter and hogwash I
never see it freshen up things so, and
sound so honest and bully.
Then the king begins to work his jaw
again, and says how him and his
nieces would be glad if a few of the
main principal friends of the family
would take supper here with them this
evening, and help set up with the
ashes of the diseased; and says if his
poor brother laying yonder could
speak he knows who he would name, for
they was names that was very dear
to him, and mentioned often in his
letters; and so he will name the same,
to wit, as follows, vizz.:—Rev.
Mr. Hobson, and Deacon Lot Hovey, and
Mr. Ben Rucker, and Abner Shackleford,
and Levi Bell, and Dr. Robinson,
and their wives, and the widow Bartley.
Rev. Hobson and Dr. Robinson was down
to the end of the town a-hunting
together—that is, I mean the
doctor was shipping a sick man to t'other
world, and the preacher was pinting him
right. Lawyer Bell was away up
to Louisville on business. But the
rest was on hand, and so they all
come and shook hands with the king and
thanked him and talked to him; and
then they shook hands with the duke and
didn't say nothing, but just kept
a-smiling and bobbing their heads like
a passel of sapheads whilst he
made all sorts of signs with his hands
and said "Goo-goo—goo-goo-goo"
all the time, like a baby that can't
talk.
So the king he blattered along, and
managed to inquire about pretty much
everybody and dog in town, by his name,
and mentioned all sorts of little
things that happened one time or
another in the town, or to George's
family, or to Peter. And he always let
on that Peter wrote him the
things; but that was a lie: he got
every blessed one of them out of that
young flathead that we canoed up to the
steamboat.
Then Mary Jane she fetched the letter
her father left behind, and the
king he read it out loud and cried over
it. It give the dwelling-house
and three thousand dollars, gold, to
the girls; and it give the tanyard
(which was doing a good business),
along with some other houses and land
(worth about seven thousand), and three
thousand dollars in gold to
Harvey and William, and told where the
six thousand cash was hid down
cellar. So these two frauds said
they'd go and fetch it up, and have
everything square and above-board; and
told me to come with a candle. We
shut the cellar door behind us, and
when they found the bag they spilt it
out on the floor, and it was a lovely
sight, all them yaller-boys. My,
the way the king's eyes did shine! He
slaps the duke on the shoulder and
says:
"Oh, THIS ain't bully nor noth'n!
Oh, no, I reckon not! Why, Biljy, it
beats the Nonesuch, DON'T it?"
The duke allowed it did. They pawed
the yaller-boys, and sifted them
through their fingers and let them
jingle down on the floor; and the king
says:
"It ain't no use talkin'; bein'
brothers to a rich dead man and
representatives of furrin heirs that's
got left is the line for you and
me, Bilge. Thish yer comes of trust'n
to Providence. It's the best way,
in the long run. I've tried 'em all,
and ther' ain't no better way."
Most everybody would a been satisfied
with the pile, and took it on
trust; but no, they must count it. So
they counts it, and it comes out
four hundred and fifteen dollars short.
Says the king:
"Dern him, I wonder what he done
with that four hundred and fifteen
dollars?"
They worried over that awhile, and
ransacked all around for it. Then the
duke says:
"Well, he was a pretty sick man,
and likely he made a mistake—I reckon
that's the way of it. The best way's
to let it go, and keep still about
it. We can spare it."
"Oh, shucks, yes, we can SPARE it.
I don't k'yer noth'n 'bout that—it's
the COUNT I'm thinkin' about. We want
to be awful square and open and
above-board here, you know. We want to
lug this h-yer money up stairs
and count it before everybody—then
ther' ain't noth'n suspicious. But
when the dead man says ther's six
thous'n dollars, you know, we don't
want to—"
"Hold on," says the duke.
"Le's make up the deffisit," and he begun to
haul out yaller-boys out of his pocket.
"It's a most amaz'n' good idea,
duke—you HAVE got a rattlin' clever head
on you," says the king. "Blest
if the old Nonesuch ain't a heppin' us
out agin," and HE begun to haul
out yaller-jackets and stack them up.
It most busted them, but they made up
the six thousand clean and clear.
"Say," says the duke, "I
got another idea. Le's go up stairs and count
this money, and then take and GIVE IT
TO THE GIRLS."
"Good land, duke, lemme hug you!
It's the most dazzling idea 'at ever a
man struck. You have cert'nly got the
most astonishin' head I ever see.
Oh, this is the boss dodge, ther' ain't
no mistake 'bout it. Let 'em
fetch along their suspicions now if
they want to—this 'll lay 'em out."
When we got up-stairs everybody
gethered around the table, and the king
he counted it and stacked it up, three
hundred dollars in a pile—twenty
elegant little piles. Everybody looked
hungry at it, and licked their
chops. Then they raked it into the bag
again, and I see the king begin
to swell himself up for another speech.
He says:
"Friends all, my poor brother that
lays yonder has done generous by them
that's left behind in the vale of
sorrers. He has done generous by these
yer poor little lambs that he loved and
sheltered, and that's left
fatherless and motherless. Yes, and we
that knowed him knows that he
would a done MORE generous by 'em if he
hadn't ben afeard o' woundin' his
dear William and me. Now, WOULDN'T he?
Ther' ain't no question 'bout it
in MY mind. Well, then, what kind o'
brothers would it be that 'd stand
in his way at sech a time? And what
kind o' uncles would it be that 'd
rob—yes, ROB—sech poor
sweet lambs as these 'at he loved so at sech a
time? If I know William—and I
THINK I do—he—well, I'll jest ask him."
He turns around and begins to make a
lot of signs to the duke with his
hands, and the duke he looks at him
stupid and leather-headed a while;
then all of a sudden he seems to catch
his meaning, and jumps for the
king, goo-gooing with all his might for
joy, and hugs him about fifteen
times before he lets up. Then the king
says, "I knowed it; I reckon THAT
'll convince anybody the way HE feels
about it. Here, Mary Jane, Susan,
Joanner, take the money—take it
ALL. It's the gift of him that lays
yonder, cold but joyful."
Mary Jane she went for him, Susan and
the hare-lip went for the duke, and
then such another hugging and kissing I
never see yet. And everybody
crowded up with the tears in their
eyes, and most shook the hands off of
them frauds, saying all the time:
"You DEAR good souls!—how
LOVELY!—how COULD you!"
Well, then, pretty soon all hands got
to talking about the diseased
again, and how good he was, and what a
loss he was, and all that; and
before long a big iron-jawed man worked
himself in there from outside,
and stood a-listening and looking, and
not saying anything; and nobody
saying anything to him either, because
the king was talking and they was
all busy listening. The king was
saying—in the middle of something he'd
started in on—
"—they bein' partickler
friends o' the diseased. That's why they're
invited here this evenin'; but tomorrow
we want ALL to come—everybody;
for he respected everybody, he liked
everybody, and so it's fitten that
his funeral orgies sh'd be public."
And so he went a-mooning on and on,
liking to hear himself talk, and
every little while he fetched in his
funeral orgies again, till the duke
he couldn't stand it no more; so he
writes on a little scrap of paper,
"OBSEQUIES, you old fool,"
and folds it up, and goes to goo-gooing and
reaching it over people's heads to him.
The king he reads it and puts it
in his pocket, and says:
"Poor William, afflicted as he is,
his HEART'S aluz right. Asks me to
invite everybody to come to the
funeral—wants me to make 'em all
welcome. But he needn't a worried—it
was jest what I was at."
Then he weaves along again, perfectly
ca'm, and goes to dropping in his
funeral orgies again every now and
then, just like he done before. And
when he done it the third time he says:
"I say orgies, not because it's
the common term, because it ain't
—obsequies bein' the common
term—but because orgies is the right term.
Obsequies ain't used in England no more
now—it's gone out. We say
orgies now in England. Orgies is
better, because it means the thing
you're after more exact. It's a word
that's made up out'n the Greek
ORGO, outside, open, abroad; and the
Hebrew JEESUM, to plant, cover up;
hence inTER. So, you see, funeral
orgies is an open er public funeral."
He was the WORST I ever struck. Well,
the iron-jawed man he laughed
right in his face. Everybody was
shocked. Everybody says, "Why,
DOCTOR!" and Abner Shackleford
says:
"Why, Robinson, hain't you heard
the news? This is Harvey Wilks."
The king he smiled eager, and shoved
out his flapper, and says:
"Is it my poor brother's dear good
friend and physician? I—"
"Keep your hands off of me!"
says the doctor. "YOU talk like an
Englishman, DON'T you? It's the worst
imitation I ever heard. YOU Peter
Wilks's brother! You're a fraud,
that's what you are!"
Well, how they all took on! They
crowded around the doctor and tried to
quiet him down, and tried to explain to
him and tell him how Harvey 'd
showed in forty ways that he WAS
Harvey, and knowed everybody by name,
and the names of the very dogs, and
begged and BEGGED him not to hurt
Harvey's feelings and the poor girl's
feelings, and all that. But it
warn't no use; he stormed right along,
and said any man that pretended to
be an Englishman and couldn't imitate
the lingo no better than what he
did was a fraud and a liar. The poor
girls was hanging to the king and
crying; and all of a sudden the doctor
ups and turns on THEM. He says:
"I was your father's friend, and
I'm your friend; and I warn you as a
friend, and an honest one that wants to
protect you and keep you out of
harm and trouble, to turn your backs on
that scoundrel and have nothing
to do with him, the ignorant tramp,
with his idiotic Greek and Hebrew, as
he calls it. He is the thinnest kind
of an impostor—has come here with
a lot of empty names and facts which he
picked up somewheres, and you
take them for PROOFS, and are helped to
fool yourselves by these foolish
friends here, who ought to know better.
Mary Jane Wilks, you know me for
your friend, and for your unselfish
friend, too. Now listen to me; turn
this pitiful rascal out—I BEG you
to do it. Will you?"
Mary Jane straightened herself up, and
my, but she was handsome! She
says:
"HERE is my answer." She
hove up the bag of money and put it in the
king's hands, and says, "Take this
six thousand dollars, and invest for
me and my sisters any way you want to,
and don't give us no receipt for
it."
Then she put her arm around the king on
one side, and Susan and the
hare-lip done the same on the other.
Everybody clapped their hands and
stomped on the floor like a perfect
storm, whilst the king held up his
head and smiled proud. The doctor
says:
"All right; I wash MY hands of the
matter. But I warn you all that a
time 's coming when you're going to
feel sick whenever you think of this
day." And away he went.
"All right, doctor," says the
king, kinder mocking him; "we'll try and
get 'em to send for you;" which
made them all laugh, and they said it was
a prime good hit.
CHAPTER XXVI.
WELL, when they was all gone the king
he asks Mary Jane how they was off
for spare rooms, and she said she had
one spare room, which would do for
Uncle William, and she'd give her own
room to Uncle Harvey, which was a
little bigger, and she would turn into
the room with her sisters and
sleep on a cot; and up garret was a
little cubby, with a pallet in it.
The king said the cubby would do for
his valley—meaning me.
So Mary Jane took us up, and she showed
them their rooms, which was plain
but nice. She said she'd have her
frocks and a lot of other traps took
out of her room if they was in Uncle
Harvey's way, but he said they
warn't. The frocks was hung along the
wall, and before them was a
curtain made out of calico that hung
down to the floor. There was an old
hair trunk in one corner, and a
guitar-box in another, and all sorts of
little knickknacks and jimcracks
around, like girls brisken up a room
with. The king said it was all the
more homely and more pleasanter for
these fixings, and so don't disturb
them. The duke's room was pretty
small, but plenty good enough, and so
was my cubby.
That night they had a big supper, and
all them men and women was there,
and I stood behind the king and the
duke's chairs and waited on them, and
the niggers waited on the rest. Mary
Jane she set at the head of the
table, with Susan alongside of her, and
said how bad the biscuits was,
and how mean the preserves was, and how
ornery and tough the fried
chickens was—and all that kind of
rot, the way women always do for to
force out compliments; and the people
all knowed everything was tiptop,
and said so—said "How DO you
get biscuits to brown so nice?" and "Where,
for the land's sake, DID you get these
amaz'n pickles?" and all that kind
of humbug talky-talk, just the way
people always does at a supper, you
know.
And when it was all done me and the
hare-lip had supper in the kitchen
off of the leavings, whilst the others
was helping the niggers clean up
the things. The hare-lip she got to
pumping me about England, and blest
if I didn't think the ice was getting
mighty thin sometimes. She says:
"Did you ever see the king?"
"Who? William Fourth? Well, I
bet I have—he goes to our church." I
knowed he was dead years ago, but I
never let on. So when I says he goes
to our church, she says:
"What—regular?"
"Yes—regular. His pew's
right over opposite ourn—on t'other side the
pulpit."
"I thought he lived in London?"
"Well, he does. Where WOULD he
live?"
"But I thought YOU lived in
Sheffield?"
I see I was up a stump. I had to let
on to get choked with a chicken
bone, so as to get time to think how to
get down again. Then I says:
"I mean he goes to our church
regular when he's in Sheffield. That's
only in the summer time, when he comes
there to take the sea baths."
"Why, how you talk—Sheffield
ain't on the sea."
"Well, who said it was?"
"Why, you did."
"I DIDN'T nuther."
"You did!"
"I didn't."
"You did."
"I never said nothing of the
kind."
"Well, what DID you say, then?"
"Said he come to take the sea
BATHS—that's what I said."
"Well, then, how's he going to
take the sea baths if it ain't on the
sea?"
"Looky here," I says; "did
you ever see any Congress-water?"
"Yes."
"Well, did you have to go to
Congress to get it?"
"Why, no."
"Well, neither does William Fourth
have to go to the sea to get a sea
bath."
"How does he get it, then?"
"Gets it the way people down here
gets Congress-water—in barrels. There
in the palace at Sheffield they've got
furnaces, and he wants his water
hot. They can't bile that amount of
water away off there at the sea.
They haven't got no conveniences for
it."
"Oh, I see, now. You might a said
that in the first place and saved
time."
When she said that I see I was out of
the woods again, and so I was
comfortable and glad. Next, she says:
"Do you go to church, too?"
"Yes—regular."
"Where do you set?"
"Why, in our pew."
"WHOSE pew?"
"Why, OURN—your Uncle
Harvey's."
"His'n? What does HE want with a
pew?"
"Wants it to set in. What did you
RECKON he wanted with it?"
"Why, I thought he'd be in the
pulpit."
Rot him, I forgot he was a preacher. I
see I was up a stump again, so I
played another chicken bone and got
another think. Then I says:
"Blame it, do you suppose there
ain't but one preacher to a church?"
"Why, what do they want with
more?"
"What!—to preach before a
king? I never did see such a girl as you.
They don't have no less than
seventeen."
"Seventeen! My land! Why, I
wouldn't set out such a string as that, not
if I NEVER got to glory. It must take
'em a week."
"Shucks, they don't ALL of 'em
preach the same day—only ONE of 'em."
"Well, then, what does the rest of
'em do?"
"Oh, nothing much. Loll around,
pass the plate—and one thing or
another. But mainly they don't do
nothing."
"Well, then, what are they FOR?"
"Why, they're for STYLE. Don't
you know nothing?"
"Well, I don't WANT to know no
such foolishness as that. How is servants
treated in England? Do they treat 'em
better 'n we treat our niggers?"
"NO! A servant ain't nobody
there. They treat them worse than dogs."
"Don't they give 'em holidays, the
way we do, Christmas and New Year's
week, and Fourth of July?"
"Oh, just listen! A body could
tell YOU hain't ever been to England by
that. Why, Hare-l—why, Joanna,
they never see a holiday from year's end
to year's end; never go to the circus,
nor theater, nor nigger shows, nor
nowheres."
"Nor church?"
"Nor church."
"But YOU always went to church."
Well, I was gone up again. I forgot I
was the old man's servant. But
next minute I whirled in on a kind of
an explanation how a valley was
different from a common servant and HAD
to go to church whether he wanted
to or not, and set with the family, on
account of its being the law. But
I didn't do it pretty good, and when I
got done I see she warn't
satisfied. She says:
"Honest injun, now, hain't you
been telling me a lot of lies?"
"Honest injun," says I.
"None of it at all?"
"None of it at all. Not a lie in
it," says I.
"Lay your hand on this book and
say it."
I see it warn't nothing but a
dictionary, so I laid my hand on it and
said it. So then she looked a little
better satisfied, and says:
"Well, then, I'll believe some of
it; but I hope to gracious if I'll
believe the rest."
"What is it you won't believe,
Joe?" says Mary Jane, stepping in with
Susan behind her. "It ain't right
nor kind for you to talk so to him,
and him a stranger and so far from his
people. How would you like to be
treated so?"
"That's always your way,
Maim—always sailing in to help somebody before
they're hurt. I hain't done nothing to
him. He's told some stretchers,
I reckon, and I said I wouldn't swallow
it all; and that's every bit and
grain I DID say. I reckon he can stand
a little thing like that, can't
he?"
"I don't care whether 'twas little
or whether 'twas big; he's here in our
house and a stranger, and it wasn't
good of you to say it. If you was in
his place it would make you feel
ashamed; and so you oughtn't to say a
thing to another person that will make
THEM feel ashamed."
"Why, Maim, he said—"
"It don't make no difference what
he SAID—that ain't the thing. The
thing is for you to treat him KIND, and
not be saying things to make him
remember he ain't in his own country
and amongst his own folks."
I says to myself, THIS is a girl that
I'm letting that old reptle rob her
of her money!
Then Susan SHE waltzed in; and if
you'll believe me, she did give
Hare-lip hark from the tomb!
Says I to myself, and this is ANOTHER
one that I'm letting him rob her of
her money!
Then Mary Jane she took another inning,
and went in sweet and lovely
again—which was her way; but when
she got done there warn't hardly
anything left o' poor Hare-lip. So she
hollered.
"All right, then," says the
other girls; "you just ask his pardon."
She done it, too; and she done it
beautiful. She done it so beautiful it
was good to hear; and I wished I could
tell her a thousand lies, so she
could do it again.
I says to myself, this is ANOTHER one
that I'm letting him rob her of her
money. And when she got through they
all jest laid theirselves out to
make me feel at home and know I was
amongst friends. I felt so ornery
and low down and mean that I says to
myself, my mind's made up; I'll hive
that money for them or bust.
So then I lit out—for bed, I
said, meaning some time or another. When I
got by myself I went to thinking the
thing over. I says to myself, shall
I go to that doctor, private, and blow
on these frauds? No—that won't
do. He might tell who told him; then
the king and the duke would make it
warm for me. Shall I go, private, and
tell Mary Jane? No—I dasn't do
it. Her face would give them a hint,
sure; they've got the money, and
they'd slide right out and get away
with it. If she was to fetch in help
I'd get mixed up in the business before
it was done with, I judge. No;
there ain't no good way but one. I got
to steal that money, somehow; and
I got to steal it some way that they
won't suspicion that I done it.
They've got a good thing here, and they
ain't a-going to leave till
they've played this family and this
town for all they're worth, so I'll
find a chance time enough. I'll steal
it and hide it; and by and by, when
I'm away down the river, I'll write a
letter and tell Mary Jane where
it's hid. But I better hive it tonight
if I can, because the doctor
maybe hasn't let up as much as he lets
on he has; he might scare them out
of here yet.
So, thinks I, I'll go and search them
rooms. Upstairs the hall was dark,
but I found the duke's room, and
started to paw around it with my hands;
but I recollected it wouldn't be much
like the king to let anybody else
take care of that money but his own
self; so then I went to his room and
begun to paw around there. But I see I
couldn't do nothing without a
candle, and I dasn't light one, of
course. So I judged I'd got to do the
other thing—lay for them and
eavesdrop. About that time I hears their
footsteps coming, and was going to skip
under the bed; I reached for it,
but it wasn't where I thought it would
be; but I touched the curtain that
hid Mary Jane's frocks, so I jumped in
behind that and snuggled in
amongst the gowns, and stood there
perfectly still.
They come in and shut the door; and the
first thing the duke done was to
get down and look under the bed. Then
I was glad I hadn't found the bed
when I wanted it. And yet, you know,
it's kind of natural to hide under
the bed when you are up to anything
private. They sets down then, and
the king says:
"Well, what is it? And cut it
middlin' short, because it's better for us
to be down there a-whoopin' up the
mournin' than up here givin' 'em a
chance to talk us over."
"Well, this is it, Capet. I ain't
easy; I ain't comfortable. That
doctor lays on my mind. I wanted to
know your plans. I've got a notion,
and I think it's a sound one."
"What is it, duke?"
"That we better glide out of this
before three in the morning, and clip
it down the river with what we've got.
Specially, seeing we got it so
easy—GIVEN back to us, flung at
our heads, as you may say, when of
course we allowed to have to steal it
back. I'm for knocking off and
lighting out."
That made me feel pretty bad. About an
hour or two ago it would a been a
little different, but now it made me
feel bad and disappointed, The king
rips out and says:
"What! And not sell out the rest
o' the property? March off like a
passel of fools and leave eight or nine
thous'n' dollars' worth o'
property layin' around jest sufferin'
to be scooped in?—and all good,
salable stuff, too."
The duke he grumbled; said the bag of
gold was enough, and he didn't want
to go no deeper—didn't want to
rob a lot of orphans of EVERYTHING they
had.
"Why, how you talk!" says the
king. "We sha'n't rob 'em of nothing at
all but jest this money. The people
that BUYS the property is the
suff'rers; because as soon 's it's
found out 'at we didn't own it—which
won't be long after we've slid—the
sale won't be valid, and it 'll all
go back to the estate. These yer
orphans 'll git their house back agin,
and that's enough for THEM; they're
young and spry, and k'n easy earn a
livin'. THEY ain't a-goin to suffer.
Why, jest think—there's thous'n's
and thous'n's that ain't nigh so well
off. Bless you, THEY ain't got
noth'n' to complain of."
Well, the king he talked him blind; so
at last he give in, and said all
right, but said he believed it was
blamed foolishness to stay, and that
doctor hanging over them. But the king
says:
"Cuss the doctor! What do we
k'yer for HIM? Hain't we got all the fools
in town on our side? And ain't that a
big enough majority in any town?"
So they got ready to go down stairs
again. The duke says:
"I don't think we put that money
in a good place."
That cheered me up. I'd begun to think
I warn't going to get a hint of
no kind to help me. The king says:
"Why?"
"Because Mary Jane 'll be in
mourning from this out; and first you know
the nigger that does up the rooms will
get an order to box these duds up
and put 'em away; and do you reckon a
nigger can run across money and not
borrow some of it?"
"Your head's level agin, duke,"
says the king; and he comes a-fumbling
under the curtain two or three foot
from where I was. I stuck tight to
the wall and kept mighty still, though
quivery; and I wondered what them
fellows would say to me if they catched
me; and I tried to think what I'd
better do if they did catch me. But
the king he got the bag before I
could think more than about a half a
thought, and he never suspicioned I
was around. They took and shoved the
bag through a rip in the straw tick
that was under the feather-bed, and
crammed it in a foot or two amongst
the straw and said it was all right
now, because a nigger only makes up
the feather-bed, and don't turn over
the straw tick only about twice a
year, and so it warn't in no danger of
getting stole now.
But I knowed better. I had it out of
there before they was half-way down
stairs. I groped along up to my cubby,
and hid it there till I could get
a chance to do better. I judged I
better hide it outside of the house
somewheres, because if they missed it
they would give the house a good
ransacking: I knowed that very well.
Then I turned in, with my clothes
all on; but I couldn't a gone to sleep
if I'd a wanted to, I was in such
a sweat to get through with the
business. By and by I heard the king and
the duke come up; so I rolled off my
pallet and laid with my chin at the
top of my ladder, and waited to see if
anything was going to happen. But
nothing did.
So I held on till all the late sounds
had quit and the early ones hadn't
begun yet; and then I slipped down the
ladder.
CHAPTER XXVII.
I CREPT to their doors and listened;
they was snoring. So I tiptoed
along, and got down stairs all right.
There warn't a sound anywheres. I
peeped through a crack of the
dining-room door, and see the men that was
watching the corpse all sound asleep on
their chairs. The door was open
into the parlor, where the corpse was
laying, and there was a candle in
both rooms. I passed along, and the
parlor door was open; but I see there
warn't nobody in there but the
remainders of Peter; so I shoved on by;
but the front door was locked, and the
key wasn't there. Just then I
heard somebody coming down the stairs,
back behind me. I run in the
parlor and took a swift look around,
and the only place I see to hide the
bag was in the coffin. The lid was
shoved along about a foot, showing
the dead man's face down in there, with
a wet cloth over it, and his
shroud on. I tucked the money-bag in
under the lid, just down beyond
where his hands was crossed, which made
me creep, they was so cold, and
then I run back across the room and in
behind the door.
The person coming was Mary Jane. She
went to the coffin, very soft, and
kneeled down and looked in; then she
put up her handkerchief, and I see
she begun to cry, though I couldn't
hear her, and her back was to me. I
slid out, and as I passed the
dining-room I thought I'd make sure them
watchers hadn't seen me; so I looked
through the crack, and everything
was all right. They hadn't stirred.
I slipped up to bed, feeling ruther
blue, on accounts of the thing
playing out that way after I had took
so much trouble and run so much
resk about it. Says I, if it could
stay where it is, all right; because
when we get down the river a hundred
mile or two I could write back to
Mary Jane, and she could dig him up
again and get it; but that ain't the
thing that's going to happen; the thing
that's going to happen is, the
money 'll be found when they come to
screw on the lid. Then the king 'll
get it again, and it 'll be a long day
before he gives anybody another
chance to smouch it from him. Of course
I WANTED to slide down and get it
out of there, but I dasn't try it.
Every minute it was getting earlier
now, and pretty soon some of them
watchers would begin to stir, and I
might get catched—catched with
six thousand dollars in my hands that
nobody hadn't hired me to take care of.
I don't wish to be mixed up in
no such business as that, I says to
myself.
When I got down stairs in the morning
the parlor was shut up, and the
watchers was gone. There warn't nobody
around but the family and the
widow Bartley and our tribe. I watched
their faces to see if anything
had been happening, but I couldn't
tell.
Towards the middle of the day the
undertaker come with his man, and they
set the coffin in the middle of the
room on a couple of chairs, and then
set all our chairs in rows, and
borrowed more from the neighbors till the
hall and the parlor and the dining-room
was full. I see the coffin lid
was the way it was before, but I dasn't
go to look in under it, with
folks around.
Then the people begun to flock in, and
the beats and the girls took seats
in the front row at the head of the
coffin, and for a half an hour the
people filed around slow, in single
rank, and looked down at the dead
man's face a minute, and some dropped
in a tear, and it was all very
still and solemn, only the girls and
the beats holding handkerchiefs to
their eyes and keeping their heads
bent, and sobbing a little. There
warn't no other sound but the scraping
of the feet on the floor and
blowing noses—because people
always blows them more at a funeral than
they do at other places except church.
When the place was packed full the
undertaker he slid around in his black
gloves with his softy soothering ways,
putting on the last touches, and
getting people and things all
ship-shape and comfortable, and making no
more sound than a cat. He never spoke;
he moved people around, he
squeezed in late ones, he opened up
passageways, and done it with nods,
and signs with his hands. Then he took
his place over against the wall.
He was the softest, glidingest,
stealthiest man I ever see; and there
warn't no more smile to him than there
is to a ham.
They had borrowed a melodeum—a
sick one; and when everything was ready a
young woman set down and worked it, and
it was pretty skreeky and
colicky, and everybody joined in and
sung, and Peter was the only one
that had a good thing, according to my
notion. Then the Reverend Hobson
opened up, slow and solemn, and begun
to talk; and straight off the most
outrageous row busted out in the cellar
a body ever heard; it was only
one dog, but he made a most powerful
racket, and he kept it up right
along; the parson he had to stand
there, over the coffin, and wait—you
couldn't hear yourself think. It was
right down awkward, and nobody
didn't seem to know what to do. But
pretty soon they see that
long-legged undertaker make a sign to
the preacher as much as to say,
"Don't you worry—just depend
on me." Then he stooped down and begun to
glide along the wall, just his
shoulders showing over the people's heads.
So he glided along, and the powwow and
racket getting more and more
outrageous all the time; and at last,
when he had gone around two sides
of the room, he disappears down cellar.
Then in about two seconds we
heard a whack, and the dog he finished
up with a most amazing howl or
two, and then everything was dead
still, and the parson begun his solemn
talk where he left off. In a minute or
two here comes this undertaker's
back and shoulders gliding along the
wall again; and so he glided and
glided around three sides of the room,
and then rose up, and shaded his
mouth with his hands, and stretched his
neck out towards the preacher,
over the people's heads, and says, in a
kind of a coarse whisper, "HE HAD
A RAT!" Then he drooped down and
glided along the wall again to his
place. You could see it was a great
satisfaction to the people, because
naturally they wanted to know. A
little thing like that don't cost
nothing, and it's just the little
things that makes a man to be looked up
to and liked. There warn't no more
popular man in town than what that
undertaker was.
Well, the funeral sermon was very good,
but pison long and tiresome; and
then the king he shoved in and got off
some of his usual rubbage, and at
last the job was through, and the
undertaker begun to sneak up on the
coffin with his screw-driver. I was in
a sweat then, and watched him
pretty keen. But he never meddled at
all; just slid the lid along as soft
as mush, and screwed it down tight and
fast. So there I was! I didn't
know whether the money was in there or
not. So, says I, s'pose somebody
has hogged that bag on the sly?—now
how do I know whether to write to
Mary Jane or not? S'pose she dug him up
and didn't find nothing, what
would she think of me? Blame it, I
says, I might get hunted up and
jailed; I'd better lay low and keep
dark, and not write at all; the
thing's awful mixed now; trying to
better it, I've worsened it a hundred
times, and I wish to goodness I'd just
let it alone, dad fetch the whole
business!
They buried him, and we come back home,
and I went to watching faces
again—I couldn't help it, and I
couldn't rest easy. But nothing come
of it; the faces didn't tell me
nothing.
The king he visited around in the
evening, and sweetened everybody up,
and made himself ever so friendly; and
he give out the idea that his
congregation over in England would be
in a sweat about him, so he must
hurry and settle up the estate right
away and leave for home. He was
very sorry he was so pushed, and so was
everybody; they wished he could
stay longer, but they said they could
see it couldn't be done. And he
said of course him and William would
take the girls home with them; and
that pleased everybody too, because
then the girls would be well fixed
and amongst their own relations; and it
pleased the girls, too—tickled
them so they clean forgot they ever had
a trouble in the world; and told
him to sell out as quick as he wanted
to, they would be ready. Them poor
things was that glad and happy it made
my heart ache to see them getting
fooled and lied to so, but I didn't see
no safe way for me to chip in and
change the general tune.
Well, blamed if the king didn't bill
the house and the niggers and all
the property for auction straight
off—sale two days after the funeral;
but anybody could buy private
beforehand if they wanted to.
So the next day after the funeral,
along about noon-time, the girls' joy
got the first jolt. A couple of nigger
traders come along, and the king
sold them the niggers reasonable, for
three-day drafts as they called it,
and away they went, the two sons up the
river to Memphis, and their
mother down the river to Orleans. I
thought them poor girls and them
niggers would break their hearts for
grief; they cried around each other,
and took on so it most made me down
sick to see it. The girls said they
hadn't ever dreamed of seeing the
family separated or sold away from the
town. I can't ever get it out of my
memory, the sight of them poor
miserable girls and niggers hanging
around each other's necks and crying;
and I reckon I couldn't a stood it all,
but would a had to bust out and
tell on our gang if I hadn't knowed the
sale warn't no account and the
niggers would be back home in a week or
two.
The thing made a big stir in the town,
too, and a good many come out
flatfooted and said it was scandalous
to separate the mother and the
children that way. It injured the
frauds some; but the old fool he
bulled right along, spite of all the
duke could say or do, and I tell you
the duke was powerful uneasy.
Next day was auction day. About broad
day in the morning the king and
the duke come up in the garret and woke
me up, and I see by their look
that there was trouble. The king says:
"Was you in my room night before
last?"
"No, your majesty"—which
was the way I always called him when nobody but
our gang warn't around.
"Was you in there yisterday er
last night?"
"No, your majesty."
"Honor bright, now—no lies."
"Honor bright, your majesty, I'm
telling you the truth. I hain't been
a-near your room since Miss Mary Jane
took you and the duke and showed it
to you."
The duke says:
"Have you seen anybody else go in
there?"
"No, your grace, not as I
remember, I believe."
"Stop and think."
I studied awhile and see my chance;
then I says:
"Well, I see the niggers go in
there several times."
Both of them gave a little jump, and
looked like they hadn't ever
expected it, and then like they HAD.
Then the duke says:
"What, all of them?"
"No—leastways, not all at
once—that is, I don't think I ever see them
all come OUT at once but just one
time."
"Hello! When was that?"
"It was the day we had the
funeral. In the morning. It warn't early,
because I overslept. I was just
starting down the ladder, and I see
them."
"Well, go on, GO on! What did
they do? How'd they act?"
"They didn't do nothing. And they
didn't act anyway much, as fur as I
see. They tiptoed away; so I seen, easy
enough, that they'd shoved in
there to do up your majesty's room, or
something, s'posing you was up;
and found you WARN'T up, and so they
was hoping to slide out of the way
of trouble without waking you up, if
they hadn't already waked you up."
"Great guns, THIS is a go!"
says the king; and both of them looked pretty
sick and tolerable silly. They stood
there a-thinking and scratching
their heads a minute, and the duke he
bust into a kind of a little raspy
chuckle, and says:
"It does beat all how neat the
niggers played their hand. They let on to
be SORRY they was going out of this
region! And I believed they WAS
sorry, and so did you, and so did
everybody. Don't ever tell ME any more
that a nigger ain't got any histrionic
talent. Why, the way they played
that thing it would fool ANYBODY. In
my opinion, there's a fortune in
'em. If I had capital and a theater, I
wouldn't want a better lay-out
than that—and here we've gone and
sold 'em for a song. Yes, and ain't
privileged to sing the song yet. Say,
where IS that song—that draft?"
"In the bank for to be collected.
Where WOULD it be?"
"Well, THAT'S all right then,
thank goodness."
Says I, kind of timid-like:
"Is something gone wrong?"
The king whirls on me and rips out:
"None o' your business! You keep
your head shet, and mind y'r own
affairs—if you got any. Long as
you're in this town don't you forgit
THAT—you hear?" Then he
says to the duke, "We got to jest swaller it
and say noth'n': mum's the word for
US."
As they was starting down the ladder
the duke he chuckles again, and
says:
"Quick sales AND small profits!
It's a good business—yes."
The king snarls around on him and says:
"I was trying to do for the best
in sellin' 'em out so quick. If the
profits has turned out to be none,
lackin' considable, and none to carry,
is it my fault any more'n it's yourn?"
"Well, THEY'D be in this house yet
and we WOULDN'T if I could a got my
advice listened to."
The king sassed back as much as was
safe for him, and then swapped around
and lit into ME again. He give me down
the banks for not coming and
TELLING him I see the niggers come out
of his room acting that way—said
any fool would a KNOWED something was
up. And then waltzed in and cussed
HIMSELF awhile, and said it all come of
him not laying late and taking
his natural rest that morning, and he'd
be blamed if he'd ever do it
again. So they went off a-jawing; and
I felt dreadful glad I'd worked it
all off on to the niggers, and yet
hadn't done the niggers no harm by it.
CHAPTER XXVIII.
BY and by it was getting-up time. So I
come down the ladder and started
for down-stairs; but as I come to the
girls' room the door was open, and
I see Mary Jane setting by her old hair
trunk, which was open and she'd
been packing things in it—getting
ready to go to England. But she had
stopped now with a folded gown in her
lap, and had her face in her hands,
crying. I felt awful bad to see it; of
course anybody would. I went in
there and says:
"Miss Mary Jane, you can't a-bear
to see people in trouble, and I can't
—most always. Tell me about it."
So she done it. And it was the
niggers—I just expected it. She said
the beautiful trip to England was most
about spoiled for her; she didn't
know HOW she was ever going to be happy
there, knowing the mother and the
children warn't ever going to see each
other no more—and then busted out
bitterer than ever, and flung up her
hands, and says:
"Oh, dear, dear, to think they
ain't EVER going to see each other any
more!"
"But they WILL—and inside of
two weeks—and I KNOW it!" says I.
Laws, it was out before I could think!
And before I could budge she
throws her arms around my neck and told
me to say it AGAIN, say it AGAIN,
say it AGAIN!
I see I had spoke too sudden and said
too much, and was in a close place.
I asked her to let me think a minute;
and she set there, very impatient
and excited and handsome, but looking
kind of happy and eased-up, like a
person that's had a tooth pulled out.
So I went to studying it out. I
says to myself, I reckon a body that
ups and tells the truth when he is
in a tight place is taking considerable
many resks, though I ain't had no
experience, and can't say for certain;
but it looks so to me, anyway; and
yet here's a case where I'm blest if it
don't look to me like the truth
is better and actuly SAFER than a lie.
I must lay it by in my mind, and
think it over some time or other, it's
so kind of strange and unregular.
I never see nothing like it. Well, I
says to myself at last, I'm a-going
to chance it; I'll up and tell the
truth this time, though it does seem
most like setting down on a kag of
powder and touching it off just to see
where you'll go to. Then I says:
"Miss Mary Jane, is there any
place out of town a little ways where you
could go and stay three or four days?"
"Yes; Mr. Lothrop's. Why?"
"Never mind why yet. If I'll tell
you how I know the niggers will see
each other again inside of two
weeks—here in this house—and PROVE how I
know it—will you go to Mr.
Lothrop's and stay four days?"
"Four days!" she says; "I'll
stay a year!"
"All right," I says, "I
don't want nothing more out of YOU than just your
word—I druther have it than
another man's kiss-the-Bible." She smiled
and reddened up very sweet, and I says,
"If you don't mind it, I'll shut
the door—and bolt it."
Then I come back and set down again,
and says:
"Don't you holler. Just set still
and take it like a man. I got to tell
the truth, and you want to brace up,
Miss Mary, because it's a bad kind,
and going to be hard to take, but there
ain't no help for it. These
uncles of yourn ain't no uncles at all;
they're a couple of frauds
—regular dead-beats. There, now
we're over the worst of it, you can stand
the rest middling easy."
It jolted her up like everything, of
course; but I was over the shoal
water now, so I went right along, her
eyes a-blazing higher and higher
all the time, and told her every blame
thing, from where we first struck
that young fool going up to the
steamboat, clear through to where she
flung herself on to the king's breast
at the front door and he kissed her
sixteen or seventeen times—and
then up she jumps, with her face afire
like sunset, and says:
"The brute! Come, don't waste a
minute—not a SECOND—we'll have them
tarred and feathered, and flung in the
river!"
Says I:
"Cert'nly. But do you mean BEFORE
you go to Mr. Lothrop's, or—"
"Oh," she says, "what am
I THINKING about!" she says, and set right down
again. "Don't mind what I
said—please don't—you WON'T, now, WILL you?"
Laying her silky hand on mine in that
kind of a way that I said I would
die first. "I never thought, I
was so stirred up," she says; "now go on,
and I won't do so any more. You tell
me what to do, and whatever you say
I'll do it."
"Well," I says, "it's a
rough gang, them two frauds, and I'm fixed so I
got to travel with them a while longer,
whether I want to or not—I
druther not tell you why; and if you
was to blow on them this town would
get me out of their claws, and I'd be
all right; but there'd be another
person that you don't know about who'd
be in big trouble. Well, we got
to save HIM, hain't we? Of course.
Well, then, we won't blow on them."
Saying them words put a good idea in my
head. I see how maybe I could
get me and Jim rid of the frauds; get
them jailed here, and then leave.
But I didn't want to run the raft in
the daytime without anybody aboard
to answer questions but me; so I didn't
want the plan to begin working
till pretty late to-night. I says:
"Miss Mary Jane, I'll tell you
what we'll do, and you won't have to stay
at Mr. Lothrop's so long, nuther. How
fur is it?"
"A little short of four
miles—right out in the country, back here."
"Well, that 'll answer. Now you
go along out there, and lay low till
nine or half-past to-night, and then
get them to fetch you home again
—tell them you've thought of
something. If you get here before eleven put
a candle in this window, and if I don't
turn up wait TILL eleven, and
THEN if I don't turn up it means I'm
gone, and out of the way, and safe.
Then you come out and spread the news
around, and get these beats
jailed."
"Good," she says, "I'll
do it."
"And if it just happens so that I
don't get away, but get took up along
with them, you must up and say I told
you the whole thing beforehand, and
you must stand by me all you can."
"Stand by you! indeed I will.
They sha'n't touch a hair of your head!"
she says, and I see her nostrils spread
and her eyes snap when she said
it, too.
"If I get away I sha'n't be here,"
I says, "to prove these rapscallions
ain't your uncles, and I couldn't do it
if I WAS here. I could swear
they was beats and bummers, that's all,
though that's worth something.
Well, there's others can do that better
than what I can, and they're
people that ain't going to be doubted
as quick as I'd be. I'll tell you
how to find them. Gimme a pencil and a
piece of paper. There—'Royal
Nonesuch, Bricksville.' Put it away,
and don't lose it. When the court
wants to find out something about these
two, let them send up to
Bricksville and say they've got the men
that played the Royal Nonesuch,
and ask for some witnesses—why,
you'll have that entire town down here
before you can hardly wink, Miss Mary.
And they'll come a-biling, too."
I judged we had got everything fixed
about right now. So I says:
"Just let the auction go right
along, and don't worry. Nobody don't have
to pay for the things they buy till a
whole day after the auction on
accounts of the short notice, and they
ain't going out of this till they
get that money; and the way we've fixed
it the sale ain't going to count,
and they ain't going to get no money.
It's just like the way it was with
the niggers—it warn't no sale,
and the niggers will be back before
long. Why, they can't collect the
money for the NIGGERS yet—they're in
the worst kind of a fix, Miss Mary."
"Well," she says, "I'll
run down to breakfast now, and then I'll start
straight for Mr. Lothrop's."
"'Deed, THAT ain't the ticket,
Miss Mary Jane," I says, "by no manner of
means; go BEFORE breakfast."
"Why?"
"What did you reckon I wanted you
to go at all for, Miss Mary?"
"Well, I never thought—and
come to think, I don't know. What was it?"
"Why, it's because you ain't one
of these leather-face people. I don't
want no better book than what your face
is. A body can set down and read
it off like coarse print. Do you
reckon you can go and face your uncles
when they come to kiss you
good-morning, and never—"
"There, there, don't! Yes, I'll
go before breakfast—I'll be glad to.
And leave my sisters with them?"
"Yes; never mind about them.
They've got to stand it yet a while. They
might suspicion something if all of you
was to go. I don't want you to
see them, nor your sisters, nor nobody
in this town; if a neighbor was to
ask how is your uncles this morning
your face would tell something. No,
you go right along, Miss Mary Jane, and
I'll fix it with all of them.
I'll tell Miss Susan to give your love
to your uncles and say you've went
away for a few hours for to get a
little rest and change, or to see a
friend, and you'll be back to-night or
early in the morning."
"Gone to see a friend is all
right, but I won't have my love given to
them."
"Well, then, it sha'n't be."
It was well enough to tell HER so—no harm
in it. It was only a little thing to
do, and no trouble; and it's the
little things that smooths people's
roads the most, down here below; it
would make Mary Jane comfortable, and
it wouldn't cost nothing. Then I
says: "There's one more
thing—that bag of money."
"Well, they've got that; and it
makes me feel pretty silly to think HOW
they got it."
"No, you're out, there. They
hain't got it."
"Why, who's got it?"
"I wish I knowed, but I don't. I
HAD it, because I stole it from them;
and I stole it to give to you; and I
know where I hid it, but I'm afraid
it ain't there no more. I'm awful
sorry, Miss Mary Jane, I'm just as
sorry as I can be; but I done the best
I could; I did honest. I come
nigh getting caught, and I had to shove
it into the first place I come
to, and run—and it warn't a good
place."
"Oh, stop blaming yourself—it's
too bad to do it, and I won't allow it
—you couldn't help it; it wasn't
your fault. Where did you hide it?"
I didn't want to set her to thinking
about her troubles again; and I
couldn't seem to get my mouth to tell
her what would make her see that
corpse laying in the coffin with that
bag of money on his stomach. So
for a minute I didn't say nothing; then
I says:
"I'd ruther not TELL you where I
put it, Miss Mary Jane, if you don't
mind letting me off; but I'll write it
for you on a piece of paper, and
you can read it along the road to Mr.
Lothrop's, if you want to. Do you
reckon that 'll do?"
"Oh, yes."
So I wrote: "I put it in the
coffin. It was in there when you was
crying there, away in the night. I was
behind the door, and I was mighty
sorry for you, Miss Mary Jane."
It made my eyes water a little to
remember her crying there all by
herself in the night, and them devils
laying there right under her own
roof, shaming her and robbing her; and
when I folded it up and give it to
her I see the water come into her eyes,
too; and she shook me by the
hand, hard, and says:
"GOOD-bye. I'm going to do
everything just as you've told me; and if I
don't ever see you again, I sha'n't
ever forget you and I'll think of
you a many and a many a time, and I'll
PRAY for you, too!"—and she was
gone.
Pray for me! I reckoned if she knowed
me she'd take a job that was more
nearer her size. But I bet she done
it, just the same—she was just that
kind. She had the grit to pray for
Judus if she took the notion—there
warn't no back-down to her, I judge.
You may say what you want to, but
in my opinion she had more sand in her
than any girl I ever see; in my
opinion she was just full of sand. It
sounds like flattery, but it ain't
no flattery. And when it comes to
beauty—and goodness, too—she lays
over them all. I hain't ever seen her
since that time that I see her go
out of that door; no, I hain't ever
seen her since, but I reckon I've
thought of her a many and a many a
million times, and of her saying she
would pray for me; and if ever I'd a
thought it would do any good for me
to pray for HER, blamed if I wouldn't a
done it or bust.
Well, Mary Jane she lit out the back
way, I reckon; because nobody see
her go. When I struck Susan and the
hare-lip, I says:
"What's the name of them people
over on t'other side of the river that
you all goes to see sometimes?"
They says:
"There's several; but it's the
Proctors, mainly."
"That's the name," I says; "I
most forgot it. Well, Miss Mary Jane she
told me to tell you she's gone over
there in a dreadful hurry—one of
them's sick."
"Which one?"
"I don't know; leastways, I kinder
forget; but I thinks it's—"
"Sakes alive, I hope it ain't
HANNER?"
"I'm sorry to say it," I
says, "but Hanner's the very one."
"My goodness, and she so well only
last week! Is she took bad?"
"It ain't no name for it. They
set up with her all night, Miss Mary Jane
said, and they don't think she'll last
many hours."
"Only think of that, now! What's
the matter with her?"
I couldn't think of anything
reasonable, right off that way, so I says:
"Mumps."
"Mumps your granny! They don't
set up with people that's got the mumps."
"They don't, don't they? You
better bet they do with THESE mumps. These
mumps is different. It's a new kind,
Miss Mary Jane said."
"How's it a new kind?"
"Because it's mixed up with other
things."
"What other things?"
"Well, measles, and
whooping-cough, and erysiplas, and consumption, and
yaller janders, and brain-fever, and I
don't know what all."
"My land! And they call it the
MUMPS?"
"That's what Miss Mary Jane said."
"Well, what in the nation do they
call it the MUMPS for?"
"Why, because it IS the mumps.
That's what it starts with."
"Well, ther' ain't no sense in it.
A body might stump his toe, and take
pison, and fall down the well, and
break his neck, and bust his brains
out, and somebody come along and ask
what killed him, and some numskull
up and say, 'Why, he stumped his TOE.'
Would ther' be any sense in that?
NO. And ther' ain't no sense in THIS,
nuther. Is it ketching?"
"Is it KETCHING? Why, how you
talk. Is a HARROW catching—in the dark?
If you don't hitch on to one tooth,
you're bound to on another, ain't
you? And you can't get away with that
tooth without fetching the whole
harrow along, can you? Well, these
kind of mumps is a kind of a harrow,
as you may say—and it ain't no
slouch of a harrow, nuther, you come to
get it hitched on good."
"Well, it's awful, I think,"
says the hare-lip. "I'll go to Uncle Harvey
and—"
"Oh, yes," I says, "I
WOULD. Of COURSE I would. I wouldn't lose no
time."
"Well, why wouldn't you?"
"Just look at it a minute, and
maybe you can see. Hain't your uncles
obleegd to get along home to England as
fast as they can? And do you
reckon they'd be mean enough to go off
and leave you to go all that
journey by yourselves? YOU know
they'll wait for you. So fur, so good.
Your uncle Harvey's a preacher, ain't
he? Very well, then; is a PREACHER
going to deceive a steamboat clerk? is
he going to deceive a SHIP CLERK?
—so as to get them to let Miss
Mary Jane go aboard? Now YOU know he
ain't. What WILL he do, then? Why,
he'll say, 'It's a great pity, but
my church matters has got to get along
the best way they can; for my
niece has been exposed to the dreadful
pluribus-unum mumps, and so it's
my bounden duty to set down here and
wait the three months it takes to
show on her if she's got it.' But
never mind, if you think it's best to
tell your uncle Harvey—"
"Shucks, and stay fooling around
here when we could all be having good
times in England whilst we was waiting
to find out whether Mary Jane's
got it or not? Why, you talk like a
muggins."
"Well, anyway, maybe you'd better
tell some of the neighbors."
"Listen at that, now. You do beat
all for natural stupidness. Can't you
SEE that THEY'D go and tell? Ther'
ain't no way but just to not tell
anybody at ALL."
"Well, maybe you're right—yes,
I judge you ARE right."
"But I reckon we ought to tell
Uncle Harvey she's gone out a while,
anyway, so he won't be uneasy about
her?"
"Yes, Miss Mary Jane she wanted
you to do that. She says, 'Tell them to
give Uncle Harvey and William my love
and a kiss, and say I've run over
the river to see Mr.'—Mr.—what
IS the name of that rich family your
uncle Peter used to think so much of?—I
mean the one that—"
"Why, you must mean the Apthorps,
ain't it?"
"Of course; bother them kind of
names, a body can't ever seem to remember
them, half the time, somehow. Yes, she
said, say she has run over for to
ask the Apthorps to be sure and come to
the auction and buy this house,
because she allowed her uncle Peter
would ruther they had it than anybody
else; and she's going to stick to them
till they say they'll come, and
then, if she ain't too tired, she's
coming home; and if she is, she'll be
home in the morning anyway. She said,
don't say nothing about the
Proctors, but only about the
Apthorps—which 'll be perfectly true,
because she is going there to speak
about their buying the house; I know
it, because she told me so herself."
"All right," they said, and
cleared out to lay for their uncles, and give
them the love and the kisses, and tell
them the message.
Everything was all right now. The
girls wouldn't say nothing because
they wanted to go to England; and the
king and the duke would ruther Mary
Jane was off working for the auction
than around in reach of Doctor
Robinson. I felt very good; I judged I
had done it pretty neat—I
reckoned Tom Sawyer couldn't a done it
no neater himself. Of course he
would a throwed more style into it, but
I can't do that very handy, not
being brung up to it.
Well, they held the auction in the
public square, along towards the end
of the afternoon, and it strung along,
and strung along, and the old man
he was on hand and looking his level
pisonest, up there longside of the
auctioneer, and chipping in a little
Scripture now and then, or a little
goody-goody saying of some kind, and
the duke he was around goo-gooing
for sympathy all he knowed how, and
just spreading himself generly.
But by and by the thing dragged
through, and everything was sold
—everything but a little old
trifling lot in the graveyard. So they'd got
to work that off—I never see such
a girafft as the king was for wanting
to swallow EVERYTHING. Well, whilst
they was at it a steamboat landed,
and in about two minutes up comes a
crowd a-whooping and yelling and
laughing and carrying on, and singing
out:
"HERE'S your opposition line!
here's your two sets o' heirs to old Peter
Wilks—and you pays your money and
you takes your choice!"
CHAPTER XXIX.
THEY was fetching a very nice-looking
old gentleman along, and a
nice-looking younger one, with his
right arm in a sling. And, my souls,
how the people yelled and laughed, and
kept it up. But I didn't see no
joke about it, and I judged it would
strain the duke and the king some to
see any. I reckoned they'd turn pale.
But no, nary a pale did THEY
turn. The duke he never let on he
suspicioned what was up, but just went
a goo-gooing around, happy and
satisfied, like a jug that's googling out
buttermilk; and as for the king, he
just gazed and gazed down sorrowful
on them new-comers like it give him the
stomach-ache in his very heart to
think there could be such frauds and
rascals in the world. Oh, he done
it admirable. Lots of the principal
people gethered around the king, to
let him see they was on his side. That
old gentleman that had just come
looked all puzzled to death. Pretty
soon he begun to speak, and I see
straight off he pronounced LIKE an
Englishman—not the king's way, though
the king's WAS pretty good for an
imitation. I can't give the old gent's
words, nor I can't imitate him; but he
turned around to the crowd, and
says, about like this:
"This is a surprise to me which I
wasn't looking for; and I'll
acknowledge, candid and frank, I ain't
very well fixed to meet it and
answer it; for my brother and me has
had misfortunes; he's broke his arm,
and our baggage got put off at a town
above here last night in the night
by a mistake. I am Peter Wilks'
brother Harvey, and this is his brother
William, which can't hear nor speak—and
can't even make signs to amount
to much, now't he's only got one hand
to work them with. We are who we
say we are; and in a day or two, when I
get the baggage, I can prove it.
But up till then I won't say nothing
more, but go to the hotel and wait."
So him and the new dummy started off;
and the king he laughs, and
blethers out:
"Broke his arm—VERY likely,
AIN'T it?—and very convenient, too, for a
fraud that's got to make signs, and
ain't learnt how. Lost their
baggage! That's MIGHTY good!—and
mighty ingenious—under the
CIRCUMSTANCES!"
So he laughed again; and so did
everybody else, except three or four, or
maybe half a dozen. One of these was
that doctor; another one was a
sharp-looking gentleman, with a
carpet-bag of the old-fashioned kind made
out of carpet-stuff, that had just come
off of the steamboat and was
talking to him in a low voice, and
glancing towards the king now and then
and nodding their heads—it was
Levi Bell, the lawyer that was gone up to
Louisville; and another one was a big
rough husky that come along and
listened to all the old gentleman said,
and was listening to the king
now. And when the king got done this
husky up and says:
"Say, looky here; if you are
Harvey Wilks, when'd you come to this town?"
"The day before the funeral,
friend," says the king.
"But what time o' day?"
"In the evenin'—'bout an
hour er two before sundown."
"HOW'D you come?"
"I come down on the Susan Powell
from Cincinnati."
"Well, then, how'd you come to be
up at the Pint in the MORNIN'—in a
canoe?"
"I warn't up at the Pint in the
mornin'."
"It's a lie."
Several of them jumped for him and
begged him not to talk that way to an
old man and a preacher.
"Preacher be hanged, he's a fraud
and a liar. He was up at the Pint that
mornin'. I live up there, don't I?
Well, I was up there, and he was up
there. I see him there. He come in a
canoe, along with Tim Collins and
a boy."
The doctor he up and says:
"Would you know the boy again if
you was to see him, Hines?"
"I reckon I would, but I don't
know. Why, yonder he is, now. I know him
perfectly easy."
It was me he pointed at. The doctor
says:
"Neighbors, I don't know whether
the new couple is frauds or not; but if
THESE two ain't frauds, I am an idiot,
that's all. I think it's our duty
to see that they don't get away from
here till we've looked into this
thing. Come along, Hines; come along,
the rest of you. We'll take these
fellows to the tavern and affront them
with t'other couple, and I reckon
we'll find out SOMETHING before we get
through."
It was nuts for the crowd, though maybe
not for the king's friends; so we
all started. It was about sundown.
The doctor he led me along by the
hand, and was plenty kind enough, but
he never let go my hand.
We all got in a big room in the hotel,
and lit up some candles, and
fetched in the new couple. First, the
doctor says:
"I don't wish to be too hard on
these two men, but I think they're
frauds, and they may have complices
that we don't know nothing about. If
they have, won't the complices get away
with that bag of gold Peter Wilks
left? It ain't unlikely. If these men
ain't frauds, they won't object
to sending for that money and letting
us keep it till they prove they're
all right—ain't that so?"
Everybody agreed to that. So I judged
they had our gang in a pretty
tight place right at the outstart. But
the king he only looked
sorrowful, and says:
"Gentlemen, I wish the money was
there, for I ain't got no disposition to
throw anything in the way of a fair,
open, out-and-out investigation o'
this misable business; but, alas, the
money ain't there; you k'n send and
see, if you want to."
"Where is it, then?"
"Well, when my niece give it to me
to keep for her I took and hid it
inside o' the straw tick o' my bed, not
wishin' to bank it for the few
days we'd be here, and considerin' the
bed a safe place, we not bein'
used to niggers, and suppos'n' 'em
honest, like servants in England. The
niggers stole it the very next mornin'
after I had went down stairs; and
when I sold 'em I hadn't missed the
money yit, so they got clean away
with it. My servant here k'n tell you
'bout it, gentlemen."
The doctor and several said "Shucks!"
and I see nobody didn't altogether
believe him. One man asked me if I see
the niggers steal it. I said no,
but I see them sneaking out of the room
and hustling away, and I never
thought nothing, only I reckoned they
was afraid they had waked up my
master and was trying to get away
before he made trouble with them. That
was all they asked me. Then the doctor
whirls on me and says:
"Are YOU English, too?"
I says yes; and him and some others
laughed, and said, "Stuff!"
Well, then they sailed in on the
general investigation, and there we had
it, up and down, hour in, hour out, and
nobody never said a word about
supper, nor ever seemed to think about
it—and so they kept it up, and
kept it up; and it WAS the worst
mixed-up thing you ever see. They made
the king tell his yarn, and they made
the old gentleman tell his'n; and
anybody but a lot of prejudiced
chuckleheads would a SEEN that the old
gentleman was spinning truth and
t'other one lies. And by and by they
had me up to tell what I knowed. The
king he give me a left-handed look
out of the corner of his eye, and so I
knowed enough to talk on the right
side. I begun to tell about Sheffield,
and how we lived there, and all
about the English Wilkses, and so on;
but I didn't get pretty fur till
the doctor begun to laugh; and Levi
Bell, the lawyer, says:
"Set down, my boy; I wouldn't
strain myself if I was you. I reckon you
ain't used to lying, it don't seem to
come handy; what you want is
practice. You do it pretty awkward."
I didn't care nothing for the
compliment, but I was glad to be let off,
anyway.
The doctor he started to say something,
and turns and says:
"If you'd been in town at first,
Levi Bell—" The king broke in and
reached out his hand, and says:
"Why, is this my poor dead
brother's old friend that he's wrote so often
about?"
The lawyer and him shook hands, and the
lawyer smiled and looked pleased,
and they talked right along awhile, and
then got to one side and talked
low; and at last the lawyer speaks up
and says:
"That 'll fix it. I'll take the
order and send it, along with your
brother's, and then they'll know it's
all right."
So they got some paper and a pen, and
the king he set down and twisted
his head to one side, and chawed his
tongue, and scrawled off something;
and then they give the pen to the
duke—and then for the first time the
duke looked sick. But he took the pen
and wrote. So then the lawyer
turns to the new old gentleman and
says:
"You and your brother please write
a line or two and sign your names."
The old gentleman wrote, but nobody
couldn't read it. The lawyer looked
powerful astonished, and says:
"Well, it beats ME"—and
snaked a lot of old letters out of his pocket,
and examined them, and then examined
the old man's writing, and then THEM
again; and then says: "These old
letters is from Harvey Wilks; and
here's THESE two handwritings, and
anybody can see they didn't write
them" (the king and the duke
looked sold and foolish, I tell you, to see
how the lawyer had took them in), "and
here's THIS old gentleman's hand
writing, and anybody can tell, easy
enough, HE didn't write them—fact
is, the scratches he makes ain't
properly WRITING at all. Now, here's
some letters from—"
The new old gentleman says:
"If you please, let me explain.
Nobody can read my hand but my brother
there—so he copies for me. It's
HIS hand you've got there, not mine."
"WELL!" says the lawyer,
"this IS a state of things. I've got some of
William's letters, too; so if you'll
get him to write a line or so we can
com—"
"He CAN'T write with his left
hand," says the old gentleman. "If he
could use his right hand, you would see
that he wrote his own letters and
mine too. Look at both, please—they're
by the same hand."
The lawyer done it, and says:
"I believe it's so—and if it
ain't so, there's a heap stronger
resemblance than I'd noticed before,
anyway. Well, well, well! I
thought we was right on the track of a
solution, but it's gone to grass,
partly. But anyway, one thing is
proved—THESE two ain't either of 'em
Wilkses"—and he wagged his
head towards the king and the duke.
Well, what do you think? That
muleheaded old fool wouldn't give in THEN!
Indeed he wouldn't. Said it warn't no
fair test. Said his brother
William was the cussedest joker in the
world, and hadn't tried to write
—HE see William was going to play
one of his jokes the minute he put the
pen to paper. And so he warmed up and
went warbling and warbling right
along till he was actuly beginning to
believe what he was saying
HIMSELF; but pretty soon the new
gentleman broke in, and says:
"I've thought of something. Is
there anybody here that helped to lay out
my br—helped to lay out the late
Peter Wilks for burying?"
"Yes," says somebody, "me
and Ab Turner done it. We're both here."
Then the old man turns towards the
king, and says:
"Perhaps this gentleman can tell
me what was tattooed on his breast?"
Blamed if the king didn't have to brace
up mighty quick, or he'd a
squshed down like a bluff bank that the
river has cut under, it took him
so sudden; and, mind you, it was a
thing that was calculated to make most
ANYBODY sqush to get fetched such a
solid one as that without any notice,
because how was HE going to know what
was tattooed on the man? He
whitened a little; he couldn't help it;
and it was mighty still in there,
and everybody bending a little forwards
and gazing at him. Says I to
myself, NOW he'll throw up the
sponge—there ain't no more use. Well,
did he? A body can't hardly believe
it, but he didn't. I reckon he
thought he'd keep the thing up till he
tired them people out, so they'd
thin out, and him and the duke could
break loose and get away. Anyway,
he set there, and pretty soon he begun
to smile, and says:
"Mf! It's a VERY tough question,
AIN'T it! YES, sir, I k'n tell you
what's tattooed on his breast. It's
jest a small, thin, blue arrow
—that's what it is; and if you
don't look clost, you can't see it. NOW
what do you say—hey?"
Well, I never see anything like that
old blister for clean out-and-out
cheek.
The new old gentleman turns brisk
towards Ab Turner and his pard, and his
eye lights up like he judged he'd got
the king THIS time, and says:
"There—you've heard what he
said! Was there any such mark on Peter
Wilks' breast?"
Both of them spoke up and says:
"We didn't see no such mark."
"Good!" says the old
gentleman. "Now, what you DID see on his breast was
a small dim P, and a B (which is an
initial he dropped when he was
young), and a W, with dashes between
them, so: P—B—W"—and he marked
them that way on a piece of paper.
"Come, ain't that what you saw?"
Both of them spoke up again, and says:
"No, we DIDN'T. We never seen any
marks at all."
Well, everybody WAS in a state of mind
now, and they sings out:
"The whole BILIN' of 'm 's frauds!
Le's duck 'em! le's drown 'em! le's
ride 'em on a rail!" and everybody
was whooping at once, and there was a
rattling powwow. But the lawyer he
jumps on the table and yells, and
says:
"Gentlemen—gentleMEN! Hear
me just a word—just a SINGLE word—if you
PLEASE! There's one way yet—let's
go and dig up the corpse and look."
That took them.
"Hooray!" they all shouted,
and was starting right off; but the lawyer
and the doctor sung out:
"Hold on, hold on! Collar all
these four men and the boy, and fetch THEM
along, too!"
"We'll do it!" they all
shouted; "and if we don't find them marks we'll
lynch the whole gang!"
I WAS scared, now, I tell you. But
there warn't no getting away, you
know. They gripped us all, and marched
us right along, straight for the
graveyard, which was a mile and a half
down the river, and the whole town
at our heels, for we made noise enough,
and it was only nine in the
evening.
As we went by our house I wished I
hadn't sent Mary Jane out of town;
because now if I could tip her the wink
she'd light out and save me, and
blow on our dead-beats.
Well, we swarmed along down the river
road, just carrying on like
wildcats; and to make it more scary the
sky was darking up, and the
lightning beginning to wink and
flitter, and the wind to shiver amongst
the leaves. This was the most awful
trouble and most dangersome I ever
was in; and I was kinder stunned;
everything was going so different from
what I had allowed for; stead of being
fixed so I could take my own time
if I wanted to, and see all the fun,
and have Mary Jane at my back to
save me and set me free when the
close-fit come, here was nothing in the
world betwixt me and sudden death but
just them tattoo-marks. If they
didn't find them—
I couldn't bear to think about it; and
yet, somehow, I couldn't think
about nothing else. It got darker and
darker, and it was a beautiful
time to give the crowd the slip; but
that big husky had me by the wrist
—Hines—and a body might as
well try to give Goliar the slip. He dragged
me right along, he was so excited, and
I had to run to keep up.
When they got there they swarmed into
the graveyard and washed over it
like an overflow. And when they got to
the grave they found they had
about a hundred times as many shovels
as they wanted, but nobody hadn't
thought to fetch a lantern. But they
sailed into digging anyway by the
flicker of the lightning, and sent a
man to the nearest house, a half a
mile off, to borrow one.
So they dug and dug like everything;
and it got awful dark, and the rain
started, and the wind swished and
swushed along, and the lightning come
brisker and brisker, and the thunder
boomed; but them people never took
no notice of it, they was so full of
this business; and one minute you
could see everything and every face in
that big crowd, and the shovelfuls
of dirt sailing up out of the grave,
and the next second the dark wiped
it all out, and you couldn't see
nothing at all.
At last they got out the coffin and
begun to unscrew the lid, and then
such another crowding and shouldering
and shoving as there was, to
scrouge in and get a sight, you never
see; and in the dark, that way, it
was awful. Hines he hurt my wrist
dreadful pulling and tugging so, and I
reckon he clean forgot I was in the
world, he was so excited and panting.
All of a sudden the lightning let go a
perfect sluice of white glare, and
somebody sings out:
"By the living jingo, here's the
bag of gold on his breast!"
Hines let out a whoop, like everybody
else, and dropped my wrist and give
a big surge to bust his way in and get
a look, and the way I lit out and
shinned for the road in the dark there
ain't nobody can tell.
I had the road all to myself, and I
fairly flew—leastways, I had it all
to myself except the solid dark, and
the now-and-then glares, and the
buzzing of the rain, and the thrashing
of the wind, and the splitting of
the thunder; and sure as you are born I
did clip it along!
When I struck the town I see there
warn't nobody out in the storm, so I
never hunted for no back streets, but
humped it straight through the main
one; and when I begun to get towards
our house I aimed my eye and set it.
No light there; the house all
dark—which made me feel sorry and
disappointed, I didn't know why. But
at last, just as I was sailing by,
FLASH comes the light in Mary Jane's
window! and my heart swelled up
sudden, like to bust; and the same
second the house and all was behind me
in the dark, and wasn't ever going to
be before me no more in this world.
She WAS the best girl I ever see, and
had the most sand.
The minute I was far enough above the
town to see I could make the
towhead, I begun to look sharp for a
boat to borrow, and the first time
the lightning showed me one that wasn't
chained I snatched it and shoved.
It was a canoe, and warn't fastened
with nothing but a rope. The towhead
was a rattling big distance off, away
out there in the middle of the
river, but I didn't lose no time; and
when I struck the raft at last I
was so fagged I would a just laid down
to blow and gasp if I could
afforded it. But I didn't. As I
sprung aboard I sung out:
"Out with you, Jim, and set her
loose! Glory be to goodness, we're shut
of them!"
Jim lit out, and was a-coming for me
with both arms spread, he was so
full of joy; but when I glimpsed him in
the lightning my heart shot up in
my mouth and I went overboard
backwards; for I forgot he was old King
Lear and a drownded A-rab all in one,
and it most scared the livers and
lights out of me. But Jim fished me
out, and was going to hug me and
bless me, and so on, he was so glad I
was back and we was shut of the
king and the duke, but I says:
"Not now; have it for breakfast,
have it for breakfast! Cut loose and
let her slide!"
So in two seconds away we went
a-sliding down the river, and it DID seem
so good to be free again and all by
ourselves on the big river, and
nobody to bother us. I had to skip
around a bit, and jump up and crack
my heels a few times—I couldn't
help it; but about the third crack I
noticed a sound that I knowed mighty
well, and held my breath and
listened and waited; and sure enough,
when the next flash busted out over
the water, here they come!—and
just a-laying to their oars and making
their skiff hum! It was the king and
the duke.
So I wilted right down on to the planks
then, and give up; and it was all
I could do to keep from crying.
CHAPTER XXX.
WHEN they got aboard the king went for
me, and shook me by the collar,
and says:
"Tryin' to give us the slip, was
ye, you pup! Tired of our company,
hey?"
I says:
"No, your majesty, we
warn't—PLEASE don't, your majesty!"
"Quick, then, and tell us what WAS
your idea, or I'll shake the insides
out o' you!"
"Honest, I'll tell you everything
just as it happened, your majesty. The
man that had a-holt of me was very good
to me, and kept saying he had a
boy about as big as me that died last
year, and he was sorry to see a boy
in such a dangerous fix; and when they
was all took by surprise by
finding the gold, and made a rush for
the coffin, he lets go of me and
whispers, 'Heel it now, or they'll hang
ye, sure!' and I lit out. It
didn't seem no good for ME to stay—I
couldn't do nothing, and I didn't
want to be hung if I could get away.
So I never stopped running till I
found the canoe; and when I got here I
told Jim to hurry, or they'd catch
me and hang me yet, and said I was
afeard you and the duke wasn't alive
now, and I was awful sorry, and so was
Jim, and was awful glad when we
see you coming; you may ask Jim if I
didn't."
Jim said it was so; and the king told
him to shut up, and said, "Oh, yes,
it's MIGHTY likely!" and shook me
up again, and said he reckoned he'd
drownd me. But the duke says:
"Leggo the boy, you old idiot!
Would YOU a done any different? Did you
inquire around for HIM when you got
loose? I don't remember it."
So the king let go of me, and begun to
cuss that town and everybody in
it. But the duke says:
"You better a blame' sight give
YOURSELF a good cussing, for you're the
one that's entitled to it most. You
hain't done a thing from the start
that had any sense in it, except coming
out so cool and cheeky with that
imaginary blue-arrow mark. That WAS
bright—it was right down bully; and
it was the thing that saved us. For if
it hadn't been for that they'd a
jailed us till them Englishmen's
baggage come—and then—the
penitentiary, you bet! But that trick
took 'em to the graveyard, and the
gold done us a still bigger kindness;
for if the excited fools hadn't let
go all holts and made that rush to get
a look we'd a slept in our cravats
to-night—cravats warranted to
WEAR, too—longer than WE'D need 'em."
They was still a minute—thinking;
then the king says, kind of
absent-minded like:
"Mf! And we reckoned the NIGGERS
stole it!"
That made me squirm!
"Yes," says the duke, kinder
slow and deliberate and sarcastic, "WE did."
After about a half a minute the king
drawls out:
"Leastways, I did."
The duke says, the same way:
"On the contrary, I did."
The king kind of ruffles up, and says:
"Looky here, Bilgewater, what'r
you referrin' to?"
The duke says, pretty brisk:
"When it comes to that, maybe
you'll let me ask, what was YOU referring
to?"
"Shucks!" says the king, very
sarcastic; "but I don't know—maybe you was
asleep, and didn't know what you was
about."
The duke bristles up now, and says:
"Oh, let UP on this cussed
nonsense; do you take me for a blame' fool?
Don't you reckon I know who hid that
money in that coffin?"
"YES, sir! I know you DO know,
because you done it yourself!"
"It's a lie!"—and the
duke went for him. The king sings out:
"Take y'r hands off!—leggo
my throat!—I take it all back!"
The duke says:
"Well, you just own up, first,
that you DID hide that money there,
intending to give me the slip one of
these days, and come back and dig it
up, and have it all to yourself."
"Wait jest a minute, duke—answer
me this one question, honest and fair;
if you didn't put the money there, say
it, and I'll b'lieve you, and take
back everything I said."
"You old scoundrel, I didn't, and
you know I didn't. There, now!"
"Well, then, I b'lieve you. But
answer me only jest this one more—now
DON'T git mad; didn't you have it in
your mind to hook the money and hide
it?"
The duke never said nothing for a
little bit; then he says:
"Well, I don't care if I DID, I
didn't DO it, anyway. But you not only
had it in mind to do it, but you DONE
it."
"I wisht I never die if I done it,
duke, and that's honest. I won't say
I warn't goin' to do it, because I WAS;
but you—I mean somebody—got in
ahead o' me."
"It's a lie! You done it, and you
got to SAY you done it, or—"
The king began to gurgle, and then he
gasps out:
"'Nough!—I OWN UP!"
I was very glad to hear him say that;
it made me feel much more easier
than what I was feeling before. So the
duke took his hands off and says:
"If you ever deny it again I'll
drown you. It's WELL for you to set
there and blubber like a baby—it's
fitten for you, after the way you've
acted. I never see such an old ostrich
for wanting to gobble everything
—and I a-trusting you all the
time, like you was my own father. You ought
to been ashamed of yourself to stand by
and hear it saddled on to a lot
of poor niggers, and you never say a
word for 'em. It makes me feel
ridiculous to think I was soft enough
to BELIEVE that rubbage. Cuss you,
I can see now why you was so anxious to
make up the deffisit—you wanted
to get what money I'd got out of the
Nonesuch and one thing or another,
and scoop it ALL!"
The king says, timid, and still
a-snuffling:
"Why, duke, it was you that said
make up the deffisit; it warn't me."
"Dry up! I don't want to hear no
more out of you!" says the duke. "And
NOW you see what you GOT by it.
They've got all their own money back,
and all of OURN but a shekel or two
BESIDES. G'long to bed, and don't
you deffersit ME no more deffersits,
long 's YOU live!"
So the king sneaked into the wigwam and
took to his bottle for comfort,
and before long the duke tackled HIS
bottle; and so in about a half an
hour they was as thick as thieves
again, and the tighter they got the
lovinger they got, and went off
a-snoring in each other's arms. They
both got powerful mellow, but I noticed
the king didn't get mellow enough
to forget to remember to not deny about
hiding the money-bag again. That
made me feel easy and satisfied. Of
course when they got to snoring we
had a long gabble, and I told Jim
everything.
CHAPTER XXXI.
WE dasn't stop again at any town for
days and days; kept right along down
the river. We was down south in the
warm weather now, and a mighty long
ways from home. We begun to come to
trees with Spanish moss on them,
hanging down from the limbs like long,
gray beards. It was the first I
ever see it growing, and it made the
woods look solemn and dismal. So
now the frauds reckoned they was out of
danger, and they begun to work
the villages again.
First they done a lecture on
temperance; but they didn't make enough for
them both to get drunk on. Then in
another village they started a
dancing-school; but they didn't know no
more how to dance than a kangaroo
does; so the first prance they made the
general public jumped in and
pranced them out of town. Another time
they tried to go at yellocution;
but they didn't yellocute long till the
audience got up and give them a
solid good cussing, and made them skip
out. They tackled missionarying,
and mesmerizing, and doctoring, and
telling fortunes, and a little of
everything; but they couldn't seem to
have no luck. So at last they got
just about dead broke, and laid around
the raft as she floated along,
thinking and thinking, and never saying
nothing, by the half a day at a
time, and dreadful blue and desperate.
And at last they took a change and
begun to lay their heads together in
the wigwam and talk low and
confidential two or three hours at a time.
Jim and me got uneasy. We didn't like
the look of it. We judged they
was studying up some kind of worse
deviltry than ever. We turned it over
and over, and at last we made up our
minds they was going to break into
somebody's house or store, or was going
into the counterfeit-money
business, or something. So then we was
pretty scared, and made up an
agreement that we wouldn't have nothing
in the world to do with such
actions, and if we ever got the least
show we would give them the cold
shake and clear out and leave them
behind. Well, early one morning we hid
the raft in a good, safe place about
two mile below a little bit of a
shabby village named Pikesville, and
the king he went ashore and told us
all to stay hid whilst he went up to
town and smelt around to see if
anybody had got any wind of the Royal
Nonesuch there yet. ("House to rob,
you MEAN," says I to myself; "and
when you get through robbing it you'll
come back here and wonder what has
become of me and Jim and the raft—and
you'll have to take it out in
wondering.") And he said if he warn't back
by midday the duke and me would know it
was all right, and we was to come
along.
So we stayed where we was. The duke he
fretted and sweated around, and
was in a mighty sour way. He scolded
us for everything, and we couldn't
seem to do nothing right; he found
fault with every little thing.
Something was a-brewing, sure. I was
good and glad when midday come and
no king; we could have a change,
anyway—and maybe a chance for THE
change on top of it. So me and the
duke went up to the village, and
hunted around there for the king, and
by and by we found him in the back
room of a little low doggery, very
tight, and a lot of loafers
bullyragging him for sport, and he
a-cussing and a-threatening with all
his might, and so tight he couldn't
walk, and couldn't do nothing to
them. The duke he begun to abuse him
for an old fool, and the king begun
to sass back, and the minute they was
fairly at it I lit out and shook
the reefs out of my hind legs, and spun
down the river road like a deer,
for I see our chance; and I made up my
mind that it would be a long day
before they ever see me and Jim again.
I got down there all out of
breath but loaded up with joy, and sung
out:
"Set her loose, Jim! we're all
right now!"
But there warn't no answer, and nobody
come out of the wigwam. Jim was
gone! I set up a shout—and then
another—and then another one; and run
this way and that in the woods,
whooping and screeching; but it warn't no
use—old Jim was gone. Then I set
down and cried; I couldn't help it.
But I couldn't set still long. Pretty
soon I went out on the road,
trying to think what I better do, and I
run across a boy walking, and
asked him if he'd seen a strange nigger
dressed so and so, and he says:
"Yes."
"Whereabouts?" says I.
"Down to Silas Phelps' place, two
mile below here. He's a runaway
nigger, and they've got him. Was you
looking for him?"
"You bet I ain't! I run across
him in the woods about an hour or two
ago, and he said if I hollered he'd cut
my livers out—and told me to lay
down and stay where I was; and I done
it. Been there ever since; afeard
to come out."
"Well," he says, "you
needn't be afeard no more, becuz they've got him.
He run off f'm down South, som'ers."
"It's a good job they got him."
"Well, I RECKON! There's two
hunderd dollars reward on him. It's like
picking up money out'n the road."
"Yes, it is—and I could a
had it if I'd been big enough; I see him
FIRST. Who nailed him?"
"It was an old fellow—a
stranger—and he sold out his chance in him for
forty dollars, becuz he's got to go up
the river and can't wait. Think
o' that, now! You bet I'D wait, if it
was seven year."
"That's me, every time," says
I. "But maybe his chance ain't worth no
more than that, if he'll sell it so
cheap. Maybe there's something ain't
straight about it."
"But it IS, though—straight
as a string. I see the handbill myself. It
tells all about him, to a dot—paints
him like a picture, and tells the
plantation he's frum, below NewrLEANS.
No-sirree-BOB, they ain't no
trouble 'bout THAT speculation, you bet
you. Say, gimme a chaw tobacker,
won't ye?"
I didn't have none, so he left. I went
to the raft, and set down in the
wigwam to think. But I couldn't come
to nothing. I thought till I wore
my head sore, but I couldn't see no way
out of the trouble. After all
this long journey, and after all we'd
done for them scoundrels, here it
was all come to nothing, everything all
busted up and ruined, because
they could have the heart to serve Jim
such a trick as that, and make him
a slave again all his life, and amongst
strangers, too, for forty dirty
dollars.
Once I said to myself it would be a
thousand times better for Jim to be a
slave at home where his family was, as
long as he'd GOT to be a slave,
and so I'd better write a letter to Tom
Sawyer and tell him to tell Miss
Watson where he was. But I soon give
up that notion for two things:
she'd be mad and disgusted at his
rascality and ungratefulness for
leaving her, and so she'd sell him
straight down the river again; and if
she didn't, everybody naturally
despises an ungrateful nigger, and they'd
make Jim feel it all the time, and so
he'd feel ornery and disgraced.
And then think of ME! It would get all
around that Huck Finn helped a
nigger to get his freedom; and if I was
ever to see anybody from that
town again I'd be ready to get down and
lick his boots for shame. That's
just the way: a person does a low-down
thing, and then he don't want to
take no consequences of it. Thinks as
long as he can hide it, it ain't no
disgrace. That was my fix exactly.
The more I studied about this the
more my conscience went to grinding me,
and the more wicked and low-down
and ornery I got to feeling. And at
last, when it hit me all of a sudden
that here was the plain hand of
Providence slapping me in the face and
letting me know my wickedness was being
watched all the time from up
there in heaven, whilst I was stealing
a poor old woman's nigger that
hadn't ever done me no harm, and now
was showing me there's One that's
always on the lookout, and ain't
a-going to allow no such miserable
doings to go only just so fur and no
further, I most dropped in my tracks
I was so scared. Well, I tried the
best I could to kinder soften it up
somehow for myself by saying I was
brung up wicked, and so I warn't so
much to blame; but something inside of
me kept saying, "There was the
Sunday-school, you could a gone to it;
and if you'd a done it they'd a
learnt you there that people that acts
as I'd been acting about that
nigger goes to everlasting fire."
It made me shiver. And I about made up
my mind to pray, and see if I
couldn't try to quit being the kind of
a boy I was and be better. So I
kneeled down. But the words wouldn't
come. Why wouldn't they? It
warn't no use to try and hide it from
Him. Nor from ME, neither. I
knowed very well why they wouldn't
come. It was because my heart warn't
right; it was because I warn't square;
it was because I was playing
double. I was letting ON to give up
sin, but away inside of me I was
holding on to the biggest one of all.
I was trying to make my mouth SAY
I would do the right thing and the
clean thing, and go and write to that
nigger's owner and tell where he was;
but deep down in me I knowed it was
a lie, and He knowed it. You can't
pray a lie—I found that out.
So I was full of trouble, full as I
could be; and didn't know what to do.
At last I had an idea; and I says, I'll
go and write the letter—and then
see if I can pray. Why, it was
astonishing, the way I felt as light as a
feather right straight off, and my
troubles all gone. So I got a piece
of paper and a pencil, all glad and
excited, and set down and wrote:
Miss Watson, your runaway nigger Jim is
down here two mile below
Pikesville, and Mr. Phelps has got him
and he will give him up for the
reward if you send.
HUCK FINN.
I felt good and all washed clean of sin
for the first time I had ever
felt so in my life, and I knowed I
could pray now. But I didn't do it
straight off, but laid the paper down
and set there thinking—thinking
how good it was all this happened so,
and how near I come to being lost
and going to hell. And went on
thinking. And got to thinking over our
trip down the river; and I see Jim
before me all the time: in the day
and in the night-time, sometimes
moonlight, sometimes storms, and we
a-floating along, talking and singing
and laughing. But somehow I
couldn't seem to strike no places to
harden me against him, but only the
other kind. I'd see him standing my
watch on top of his'n, 'stead of
calling me, so I could go on sleeping;
and see him how glad he was when I
come back out of the fog; and when I
come to him again in the swamp, up
there where the feud was; and such-like
times; and would always call me
honey, and pet me and do everything he
could think of for me, and how
good he always was; and at last I
struck the time I saved him by telling
the men we had small-pox aboard, and he
was so grateful, and said I was
the best friend old Jim ever had in the
world, and the ONLY one he's got
now; and then I happened to look around
and see that paper.
It was a close place. I took it up,
and held it in my hand. I was
a-trembling, because I'd got to decide,
forever, betwixt two things, and
I knowed it. I studied a minute, sort
of holding my breath, and then
says to myself:
"All right, then, I'll GO to
hell"—and tore it up.
It was awful thoughts and awful words,
but they was said. And I let them
stay said; and never thought no more
about reforming. I shoved the whole
thing out of my head, and said I would
take up wickedness again, which
was in my line, being brung up to it,
and the other warn't. And for a
starter I would go to work and steal
Jim out of slavery again; and if I
could think up anything worse, I would
do that, too; because as long as I
was in, and in for good, I might as
well go the whole hog.
Then I set to thinking over how to get
at it, and turned over some
considerable many ways in my mind; and
at last fixed up a plan that
suited me. So then I took the bearings
of a woody island that was down
the river a piece, and as soon as it
was fairly dark I crept out with my
raft and went for it, and hid it there,
and then turned in. I slept the
night through, and got up before it was
light, and had my breakfast, and
put on my store clothes, and tied up
some others and one thing or another
in a bundle, and took the canoe and
cleared for shore. I landed below
where I judged was Phelps's place, and
hid my bundle in the woods, and
then filled up the canoe with water,
and loaded rocks into her and sunk
her where I could find her again when I
wanted her, about a quarter of a
mile below a little steam sawmill that
was on the bank.
Then I struck up the road, and when I
passed the mill I see a sign on it,
"Phelps's Sawmill," and when
I come to the farm-houses, two or three
hundred yards further along, I kept my
eyes peeled, but didn't see nobody
around, though it was good daylight
now. But I didn't mind, because I
didn't want to see nobody just yet—I
only wanted to get the lay of the
land. According to my plan, I was going
to turn up there from the
village, not from below. So I just
took a look, and shoved along,
straight for town. Well, the very first
man I see when I got there was
the duke. He was sticking up a bill
for the Royal Nonesuch—three-night
performance—like that other time.
They had the cheek, them frauds! I
was right on him before I could shirk.
He looked astonished, and says:
"Hel-LO! Where'd YOU come from?"
Then he says, kind of glad and eager,
"Where's the raft?—got her
in a good place?"
I says:
"Why, that's just what I was going
to ask your grace."
Then he didn't look so joyful, and
says:
"What was your idea for asking
ME?" he says.
"Well," I says, "when I
see the king in that doggery yesterday I says to
myself, we can't get him home for
hours, till he's soberer; so I went
a-loafing around town to put in the
time and wait. A man up and offered
me ten cents to help him pull a skiff
over the river and back to fetch a
sheep, and so I went along; but when we
was dragging him to the boat, and
the man left me a-holt of the rope and
went behind him to shove him
along, he was too strong for me and
jerked loose and run, and we after
him. We didn't have no dog, and so we
had to chase him all over the
country till we tired him out. We
never got him till dark; then we
fetched him over, and I started down
for the raft. When I got there and
see it was gone, I says to myself,
'They've got into trouble and had to
leave; and they've took my nigger,
which is the only nigger I've got in
the world, and now I'm in a strange
country, and ain't got no property no
more, nor nothing, and no way to make
my living;' so I set down and
cried. I slept in the woods all night.
But what DID become of the raft,
then?—and Jim—poor Jim!"
"Blamed if I know—that is,
what's become of the raft. That old fool had
made a trade and got forty dollars, and
when we found him in the doggery
the loafers had matched half-dollars
with him and got every cent but what
he'd spent for whisky; and when I got
him home late last night and found
the raft gone, we said, 'That little
rascal has stole our raft and shook
us, and run off down the river.'"
"I wouldn't shake my NIGGER, would
I?—the only nigger I had in the
world, and the only property."
"We never thought of that. Fact
is, I reckon we'd come to consider him
OUR nigger; yes, we did consider him
so—goodness knows we had trouble
enough for him. So when we see the
raft was gone and we flat broke,
there warn't anything for it but to try
the Royal Nonesuch another shake.
And I've pegged along ever since, dry
as a powder-horn. Where's that ten
cents? Give it here."
I had considerable money, so I give him
ten cents, but begged him to
spend it for something to eat, and give
me some, because it was all the
money I had, and I hadn't had nothing
to eat since yesterday. He never
said nothing. The next minute he
whirls on me and says:
"Do you reckon that nigger would
blow on us? We'd skin him if he done
that!"
"How can he blow? Hain't he run
off?"
"No! That old fool sold him, and
never divided with me, and the money's
gone."
"SOLD him?" I says, and
begun to cry; "why, he was MY nigger, and that
was my money. Where is he?—I
want my nigger."
"Well, you can't GET your nigger,
that's all—so dry up your blubbering.
Looky here—do you think YOU'D
venture to blow on us? Blamed if I think
I'd trust you. Why, if you WAS to blow
on us—"
He stopped, but I never see the duke
look so ugly out of his eyes before.
I went on a-whimpering, and says:
"I don't want to blow on nobody;
and I ain't got no time to blow, nohow.
I got to turn out and find my nigger."
He looked kinder bothered, and stood
there with his bills fluttering on
his arm, thinking, and wrinkling up his
forehead. At last he says:
"I'll tell you something. We got
to be here three days. If you'll
promise you won't blow, and won't let
the nigger blow, I'll tell you
where to find him."
So I promised, and he says:
"A farmer by the name of Silas
Ph—" and then he stopped. You see, he
started to tell me the truth; but when
he stopped that way, and begun to
study and think again, I reckoned he
was changing his mind. And so he
was. He wouldn't trust me; he wanted to
make sure of having me out of the
way the whole three days. So pretty
soon he says:
"The man that bought him is named
Abram Foster—Abram G. Foster—and he
lives forty mile back here in the
country, on the road to Lafayette."
"All right," I says, "I
can walk it in three days. And I'll start this
very afternoon."
"No you wont, you'll start NOW;
and don't you lose any time about it,
neither, nor do any gabbling by the
way. Just keep a tight tongue in
your head and move right along, and
then you won't get into trouble with
US, d'ye hear?"
That was the order I wanted, and that
was the one I played for. I wanted
to be left free to work my plans.
"So clear out," he says; "and
you can tell Mr. Foster whatever you want
to. Maybe you can get him to believe
that Jim IS your nigger—some idiots
don't require documents—leastways
I've heard there's such down South
here. And when you tell him the
handbill and the reward's bogus, maybe
he'll believe you when you explain to
him what the idea was for getting
'em out. Go 'long now, and tell him
anything you want to; but mind you
don't work your jaw any BETWEEN here
and there."
So I left, and struck for the back
country. I didn't look around, but I
kinder felt like he was watching me.
But I knowed I could tire him out
at that. I went straight out in the
country as much as a mile before I
stopped; then I doubled back through
the woods towards Phelps'. I
reckoned I better start in on my plan
straight off without fooling
around, because I wanted to stop Jim's
mouth till these fellows could get
away. I didn't want no trouble with
their kind. I'd seen all I wanted
to of them, and wanted to get entirely
shut of them.
CHAPTER XXXII.
WHEN I got there it was all still and
Sunday-like, and hot and sunshiny;
the hands was gone to the fields; and
there was them kind of faint
dronings of bugs and flies in the air
that makes it seem so lonesome and
like everybody's dead and gone; and if
a breeze fans along and quivers
the leaves it makes you feel mournful,
because you feel like it's spirits
whispering—spirits that's been
dead ever so many years—and you always
think they're talking about YOU. As a
general thing it makes a body wish
HE was dead, too, and done with it all.
Phelps' was one of these little
one-horse cotton plantations, and they
all look alike. A rail fence round a
two-acre yard; a stile made out of
logs sawed off and up-ended in steps,
like barrels of a different length,
to climb over the fence with, and for
the women to stand on when they are
going to jump on to a horse; some
sickly grass-patches in the big yard,
but mostly it was bare and smooth, like
an old hat with the nap rubbed
off; big double log-house for the white
folks—hewed logs, with the
chinks stopped up with mud or mortar,
and these mud-stripes been
whitewashed some time or another;
round-log kitchen, with a big broad,
open but roofed passage joining it to
the house; log smoke-house back of
the kitchen; three little log
nigger-cabins in a row t'other side the
smoke-house; one little hut all by
itself away down against the back
fence, and some outbuildings down a
piece the other side; ash-hopper and
big kettle to bile soap in by the
little hut; bench by the kitchen door,
with bucket of water and a gourd; hound
asleep there in the sun; more
hounds asleep round about; about three
shade trees away off in a corner;
some currant bushes and gooseberry
bushes in one place by the fence;
outside of the fence a garden and a
watermelon patch; then the cotton
fields begins, and after the fields the
woods.
I went around and clumb over the back
stile by the ash-hopper, and
started for the kitchen. When I got a
little ways I heard the dim hum of
a spinning-wheel wailing along up and
sinking along down again; and then
I knowed for certain I wished I was
dead—for that IS the lonesomest
sound in the whole world.
I went right along, not fixing up any
particular plan, but just trusting
to Providence to put the right words in
my mouth when the time come; for
I'd noticed that Providence always did
put the right words in my mouth if
I left it alone.
When I got half-way, first one hound
and then another got up and went for
me, and of course I stopped and faced
them, and kept still. And such
another powwow as they made! In a
quarter of a minute I was a kind of a
hub of a wheel, as you may say—spokes
made out of dogs—circle of
fifteen of them packed together around
me, with their necks and noses
stretched up towards me, a-barking and
howling; and more a-coming; you
could see them sailing over fences and
around corners from everywheres.
A nigger woman come tearing out of the
kitchen with a rolling-pin in her
hand, singing out, "Begone YOU
Tige! you Spot! begone sah!" and she
fetched first one and then another of
them a clip and sent them howling,
and then the rest followed; and the
next second half of them come back,
wagging their tails around me, and
making friends with me. There ain't
no harm in a hound, nohow.
And behind the woman comes a little
nigger girl and two little nigger
boys without anything on but tow-linen
shirts, and they hung on to their
mother's gown, and peeped out from
behind her at me, bashful, the way
they always do. And here comes the
white woman running from the house,
about forty-five or fifty year old,
bareheaded, and her spinning-stick in
her hand; and behind her comes her
little white children, acting the same
way the little niggers was doing. She
was smiling all over so she could
hardly stand—and says:
"It's YOU, at last!—AIN'T
it?"
I out with a "Yes'm" before I
thought.
She grabbed me and hugged me tight; and
then gripped me by both hands and
shook and shook; and the tears come in
her eyes, and run down over; and
she couldn't seem to hug and shake
enough, and kept saying, "You don't
look as much like your mother as I
reckoned you would; but law sakes, I
don't care for that, I'm so glad to see
you! Dear, dear, it does seem
like I could eat you up! Children,
it's your cousin Tom!—tell him
howdy."
But they ducked their heads, and put
their fingers in their mouths, and
hid behind her. So she run on:
"Lize, hurry up and get him a hot
breakfast right away—or did you get
your breakfast on the boat?"
I said I had got it on the boat. So
then she started for the house,
leading me by the hand, and the
children tagging after. When we got
there she set me down in a
split-bottomed chair, and set herself down on
a little low stool in front of me,
holding both of my hands, and says:
"Now I can have a GOOD look at
you; and, laws-a-me, I've been hungry for
it a many and a many a time, all these
long years, and it's come at last!
We been expecting you a couple of days
and more. What kep' you?—boat
get aground?"
"Yes'm—she—"
"Don't say yes'm—say Aunt
Sally. Where'd she get aground?"
I didn't rightly know what to say,
because I didn't know whether the boat
would be coming up the river or down.
But I go a good deal on instinct;
and my instinct said she would be
coming up—from down towards Orleans.
That didn't help me much, though; for I
didn't know the names of bars
down that way. I see I'd got to invent
a bar, or forget the name of the
one we got aground on—or—Now
I struck an idea, and fetched it out:
"It warn't the grounding—that
didn't keep us back but a little. We
blowed out a cylinder-head."
"Good gracious! anybody hurt?"
"No'm. Killed a nigger."
"Well, it's lucky; because
sometimes people do get hurt. Two years ago
last Christmas your uncle Silas was
coming up from Newrleans on the old
Lally Rook, and she blowed out a
cylinder-head and crippled a man. And I
think he died afterwards. He was a
Baptist. Your uncle Silas knowed a
family in Baton Rouge that knowed his
people very well. Yes, I remember
now, he DID die. Mortification set in,
and they had to amputate him.
But it didn't save him. Yes, it was
mortification—that was it. He
turned blue all over, and died in the
hope of a glorious resurrection.
They say he was a sight to look at.
Your uncle's been up to the town
every day to fetch you. And he's gone
again, not more'n an hour ago;
he'll be back any minute now. You must
a met him on the road, didn't
you?—oldish man, with a—"
"No, I didn't see nobody, Aunt
Sally. The boat landed just at daylight,
and I left my baggage on the wharf-boat
and went looking around the town
and out a piece in the country, to put
in the time and not get here too
soon; and so I come down the back way."
"Who'd you give the baggage to?"
"Nobody."
"Why, child, it 'll be stole!"
"Not where I hid it I reckon it
won't," I says.
"How'd you get your breakfast so
early on the boat?"
It was kinder thin ice, but I says:
"The captain see me standing
around, and told me I better have something
to eat before I went ashore; so he took
me in the texas to the officers'
lunch, and give me all I wanted."
I was getting so uneasy I couldn't
listen good. I had my mind on the
children all the time; I wanted to get
them out to one side and pump them
a little, and find out who I was. But
I couldn't get no show, Mrs.
Phelps kept it up and run on so.
Pretty soon she made the cold chills
streak all down my back, because she
says:
"But here we're a-running on this
way, and you hain't told me a word
about Sis, nor any of them. Now I'll
rest my works a little, and you
start up yourn; just tell me
EVERYTHING—tell me all about 'm all every
one of 'm; and how they are, and what
they're doing, and what they told
you to tell me; and every last thing
you can think of."
Well, I see I was up a stump—and
up it good. Providence had stood by me
this fur all right, but I was hard and
tight aground now. I see it
warn't a bit of use to try to go
ahead—I'd got to throw up my hand. So
I says to myself, here's another place
where I got to resk the truth. I
opened my mouth to begin; but she
grabbed me and hustled me in behind the
bed, and says:
"Here he comes! Stick your head
down lower—there, that'll do; you can't
be seen now. Don't you let on you're
here. I'll play a joke on him.
Children, don't you say a word."
I see I was in a fix now. But it
warn't no use to worry; there warn't
nothing to do but just hold still, and
try and be ready to stand from
under when the lightning struck.
I had just one little glimpse of the
old gentleman when he come in; then
the bed hid him. Mrs. Phelps she jumps
for him, and says:
"Has he come?"
"No," says her husband.
"Good-NESS gracious!" she
says, "what in the warld can have become of
him?"
"I can't imagine," says the
old gentleman; "and I must say it makes me
dreadful uneasy."
"Uneasy!" she says; "I'm
ready to go distracted! He MUST a come; and
you've missed him along the road. I
KNOW it's so—something tells me
so."
"Why, Sally, I COULDN'T miss him
along the road—YOU know that."
"But oh, dear, dear, what WILL Sis
say! He must a come! You must a
missed him. He—"
"Oh, don't distress me any more'n
I'm already distressed. I don't know
what in the world to make of it. I'm
at my wit's end, and I don't mind
acknowledging 't I'm right down scared.
But there's no hope that he's
come; for he COULDN'T come and me miss
him. Sally, it's terrible—just
terrible—something's happened to
the boat, sure!"
"Why, Silas! Look yonder!—up
the road!—ain't that somebody coming?"
He sprung to the window at the head of
the bed, and that give Mrs. Phelps
the chance she wanted. She stooped
down quick at the foot of the bed and
give me a pull, and out I come; and
when he turned back from the window
there she stood, a-beaming and
a-smiling like a house afire, and I
standing pretty meek and sweaty
alongside. The old gentleman stared, and
says:
"Why, who's that?"
"Who do you reckon 't is?"
"I hain't no idea. Who IS it?"
"It's TOM SAWYER!"
By jings, I most slumped through the
floor! But there warn't no time to
swap knives; the old man grabbed me by
the hand and shook, and kept on
shaking; and all the time how the woman
did dance around and laugh and
cry; and then how they both did fire
off questions about Sid, and Mary,
and the rest of the tribe.
But if they was joyful, it warn't
nothing to what I was; for it was like
being born again, I was so glad to find
out who I was. Well, they froze
to me for two hours; and at last, when
my chin was so tired it couldn't
hardly go any more, I had told them
more about my family—I mean the
Sawyer family—than ever happened
to any six Sawyer families. And I
explained all about how we blowed out a
cylinder-head at the mouth of
White River, and it took us three days
to fix it. Which was all right,
and worked first-rate; because THEY
didn't know but what it would take
three days to fix it. If I'd a called
it a bolthead it would a done just
as well.
Now I was feeling pretty comfortable
all down one side, and pretty
uncomfortable all up the other. Being
Tom Sawyer was easy and
comfortable, and it stayed easy and
comfortable till by and by I hear a
steamboat coughing along down the
river. Then I says to myself, s'pose
Tom Sawyer comes down on that boat?
And s'pose he steps in here any
minute, and sings out my name before I
can throw him a wink to keep
quiet?
Well, I couldn't HAVE it that way; it
wouldn't do at all. I must go up
the road and waylay him. So I told the
folks I reckoned I would go up to
the town and fetch down my baggage.
The old gentleman was for going
along with me, but I said no, I could
drive the horse myself, and I
druther he wouldn't take no trouble
about me.
CHAPTER XXXIII.
SO I started for town in the wagon, and
when I was half-way I see a wagon
coming, and sure enough it was Tom
Sawyer, and I stopped and waited till
he come along. I says "Hold on!"
and it stopped alongside, and his mouth
opened up like a trunk, and stayed so;
and he swallowed two or three
times like a person that's got a dry
throat, and then says:
"I hain't ever done you no harm.
You know that. So, then, what you want
to come back and ha'nt ME for?"
I says:
"I hain't come back—I hain't
been GONE."
When he heard my voice it righted him
up some, but he warn't quite
satisfied yet. He says:
"Don't you play nothing on me,
because I wouldn't on you. Honest injun
now, you ain't a ghost?"
"Honest injun, I ain't," I
says.
"Well—I—I—well,
that ought to settle it, of course; but I can't
somehow seem to understand it no way.
Looky here, warn't you ever
murdered AT ALL?"
"No. I warn't ever murdered at
all—I played it on them. You come in
here and feel of me if you don't
believe me."
So he done it; and it satisfied him;
and he was that glad to see me again
he didn't know what to do. And he
wanted to know all about it right off,
because it was a grand adventure, and
mysterious, and so it hit him where
he lived. But I said, leave it alone
till by and by; and told his driver
to wait, and we drove off a little
piece, and I told him the kind of a
fix I was in, and what did he reckon we
better do? He said, let him
alone a minute, and don't disturb him.
So he thought and thought, and
pretty soon he says:
"It's all right; I've got it.
Take my trunk in your wagon, and let on
it's your'n; and you turn back and fool
along slow, so as to get to the
house about the time you ought to; and
I'll go towards town a piece, and
take a fresh start, and get there a
quarter or a half an hour after you;
and you needn't let on to know me at
first."
I says:
"All right; but wait a minute.
There's one more thing—a thing that
NOBODY don't know but me. And that is,
there's a nigger here that I'm
a-trying to steal out of slavery, and
his name is JIM—old Miss Watson's
Jim."
He says:
"What! Why, Jim is—"
He stopped and went to studying. I
says:
"I know what you'll say. You'll
say it's dirty, low-down business; but
what if it is? I'm low down; and I'm
a-going to steal him, and I want
you keep mum and not let on. Will
you?"
His eye lit up, and he says:
"I'll HELP you steal him!"
Well, I let go all holts then, like I
was shot. It was the most
astonishing speech I ever heard—and
I'm bound to say Tom Sawyer fell
considerable in my estimation. Only I
couldn't believe it. Tom Sawyer a
NIGGER-STEALER!
"Oh, shucks!" I says;
"you're joking."
"I ain't joking, either."
"Well, then," I says, "joking
or no joking, if you hear anything said
about a runaway nigger, don't forget to
remember that YOU don't know
nothing about him, and I don't know
nothing about him."
Then we took the trunk and put it in my
wagon, and he drove off his way
and I drove mine. But of course I
forgot all about driving slow on
accounts of being glad and full of
thinking; so I got home a heap too
quick for that length of a trip. The
old gentleman was at the door, and
he says:
"Why, this is wonderful! Whoever
would a thought it was in that mare to
do it? I wish we'd a timed her. And
she hain't sweated a hair—not a
hair. It's wonderful. Why, I wouldn't
take a hundred dollars for that
horse now—I wouldn't, honest; and
yet I'd a sold her for fifteen
before, and thought 'twas all she was
worth."
That's all he said. He was the
innocentest, best old soul I ever see.
But it warn't surprising; because he
warn't only just a farmer, he was a
preacher, too, and had a little
one-horse log church down back of the
plantation, which he built it himself
at his own expense, for a church
and schoolhouse, and never charged
nothing for his preaching, and it was
worth it, too. There was plenty other
farmer-preachers like that, and
done the same way, down South.
In about half an hour Tom's wagon drove
up to the front stile, and Aunt
Sally she see it through the window,
because it was only about fifty
yards, and says:
"Why, there's somebody come! I
wonder who 'tis? Why, I do believe it's
a stranger. Jimmy" (that's one of
the children) "run and tell Lize to
put on another plate for dinner."
Everybody made a rush for the front
door, because, of course, a stranger
don't come EVERY year, and so he lays
over the yaller-fever, for
interest, when he does come. Tom was
over the stile and starting for the
house; the wagon was spinning up the
road for the village, and we was all
bunched in the front door. Tom had his
store clothes on, and an
audience—and that was always nuts
for Tom Sawyer. In them circumstances
it warn't no trouble to him to throw in
an amount of style that was
suitable. He warn't a boy to meeky
along up that yard like a sheep; no,
he come ca'm and important, like the
ram. When he got a-front of us he
lifts his hat ever so gracious and
dainty, like it was the lid of a box
that had butterflies asleep in it and
he didn't want to disturb them, and
says:
"Mr. Archibald Nichols, I
presume?"
"No, my boy," says the old
gentleman, "I'm sorry to say 't your driver
has deceived you; Nichols's place is
down a matter of three mile more.
Come in, come in."
Tom he took a look back over his
shoulder, and says, "Too late—he's out
of sight."
"Yes, he's gone, my son, and you
must come in and eat your dinner with
us; and then we'll hitch up and take
you down to Nichols's."
"Oh, I CAN'T make you so much
trouble; I couldn't think of it. I'll walk
—I don't mind the distance."
"But we won't LET you walk—it
wouldn't be Southern hospitality to do it.
Come right in."
"Oh, DO," says Aunt Sally;
"it ain't a bit of trouble to us, not a bit in
the world. You must stay. It's a
long, dusty three mile, and we can't
let you walk. And, besides, I've
already told 'em to put on another
plate when I see you coming; so you
mustn't disappoint us. Come right in
and make yourself at home."
So Tom he thanked them very hearty and
handsome, and let himself be
persuaded, and come in; and when he was
in he said he was a stranger from
Hicksville, Ohio, and his name was
William Thompson—and he made another
bow.
Well, he run on, and on, and on, making
up stuff about Hicksville and
everybody in it he could invent, and I
getting a little nervious, and
wondering how this was going to help me
out of my scrape; and at last,
still talking along, he reached over
and kissed Aunt Sally right on the
mouth, and then settled back again in
his chair comfortable, and was
going on talking; but she jumped up and
wiped it off with the back of her
hand, and says:
"You owdacious puppy!"
He looked kind of hurt, and says:
"I'm surprised at you, m'am."
"You're s'rp—Why, what do
you reckon I am? I've a good notion to take
and—Say, what do you mean by
kissing me?"
He looked kind of humble, and says:
"I didn't mean nothing, m'am. I
didn't mean no harm. I—I—thought
you'd like it."
"Why, you born fool!" She
took up the spinning stick, and it looked like
it was all she could do to keep from
giving him a crack with it. "What
made you think I'd like it?"
"Well, I don't know. Only,
they—they—told me you would."
"THEY told you I would. Whoever
told you's ANOTHER lunatic. I never
heard the beat of it. Who's THEY?"
"Why, everybody. They all said
so, m'am."
It was all she could do to hold in; and
her eyes snapped, and her fingers
worked like she wanted to scratch him;
and she says:
"Who's 'everybody'? Out with
their names, or ther'll be an idiot short."
He got up and looked distressed, and
fumbled his hat, and says:
"I'm sorry, and I warn't expecting
it. They told me to. They all told
me to. They all said, kiss her; and
said she'd like it. They all said
it—every one of them. But I'm
sorry, m'am, and I won't do it no more
—I won't, honest."
"You won't, won't you? Well, I
sh'd RECKON you won't!"
"No'm, I'm honest about it; I
won't ever do it again—till you ask me."
"Till I ASK you! Well, I never
see the beat of it in my born days! I
lay you'll be the Methusalem-numskull
of creation before ever I ask you
—or the likes of you."
"Well," he says, "it
does surprise me so. I can't make it out, somehow.
They said you would, and I thought you
would. But—" He stopped and
looked around slow, like he wished he
could run across a friendly eye
somewheres, and fetched up on the old
gentleman's, and says, "Didn't YOU
think she'd like me to kiss her, sir?"
"Why, no; I—I—well,
no, I b'lieve I didn't."
Then he looks on around the same way to
me, and says:
"Tom, didn't YOU think Aunt Sally
'd open out her arms and say, 'Sid
Sawyer—'"
"My land!" she says, breaking
in and jumping for him, "you impudent young
rascal, to fool a body so—"
and was going to hug him, but he fended her
off, and says:
"No, not till you've asked me
first."
So she didn't lose no time, but asked
him; and hugged him and kissed him
over and over again, and then turned
him over to the old man, and he took
what was left. And after they got a
little quiet again she says:
"Why, dear me, I never see such a
surprise. We warn't looking for YOU at
all, but only Tom. Sis never wrote to
me about anybody coming but him."
"It's because it warn't INTENDED
for any of us to come but Tom," he says;
"but I begged and begged, and at
the last minute she let me come, too;
so, coming down the river, me and Tom
thought it would be a first-rate
surprise for him to come here to the
house first, and for me to by and by
tag along and drop in, and let on to be
a stranger. But it was a
mistake, Aunt Sally. This ain't no
healthy place for a stranger to
come."
"No—not impudent whelps,
Sid. You ought to had your jaws boxed; I
hain't been so put out since I don't
know when. But I don't care, I
don't mind the terms—I'd be
willing to stand a thousand such jokes to
have you here. Well, to think of that
performance! I don't deny it, I
was most putrified with astonishment
when you give me that smack."
We had dinner out in that broad open
passage betwixt the house and the
kitchen; and there was things enough on
that table for seven families
—and all hot, too; none of your
flabby, tough meat that's laid in a
cupboard in a damp cellar all night and
tastes like a hunk of old cold
cannibal in the morning. Uncle Silas
he asked a pretty long blessing
over it, but it was worth it; and it
didn't cool it a bit, neither, the
way I've seen them kind of
interruptions do lots of times. There was a
considerable good deal of talk all the
afternoon, and me and Tom was on
the lookout all the time; but it warn't
no use, they didn't happen to say
nothing about any runaway nigger, and
we was afraid to try to work up to
it. But at supper, at night, one of
the little boys says:
"Pa, mayn't Tom and Sid and me go
to the show?"
"No," says the old man, "I
reckon there ain't going to be any; and you
couldn't go if there was; because the
runaway nigger told Burton and me
all about that scandalous show, and
Burton said he would tell the people;
so I reckon they've drove the owdacious
loafers out of town before this
time."
So there it was!—but I couldn't
help it. Tom and me was to sleep in the
same room and bed; so, being tired, we
bid good-night and went up to bed
right after supper, and clumb out of
the window and down the
lightning-rod, and shoved for the town;
for I didn't believe anybody was
going to give the king and the duke a
hint, and so if I didn't hurry up
and give them one they'd get into
trouble sure.
On the road Tom he told me all about
how it was reckoned I was murdered,
and how pap disappeared pretty soon,
and didn't come back no more, and
what a stir there was when Jim run
away; and I told Tom all about our
Royal Nonesuch rapscallions, and as
much of the raft voyage as I had
time to; and as we struck into the town
and up through the middle of
it—it was as much as half-after
eight, then—here comes a raging rush of
people with torches, and an awful
whooping and yelling, and banging tin
pans and blowing horns; and we jumped
to one side to let them go by; and
as they went by I see they had the king
and the duke astraddle of a
rail—that is, I knowed it WAS the
king and the duke, though they was
all over tar and feathers, and didn't
look like nothing in the world
that was human—just looked like a
couple of monstrous big soldier-
plumes. Well, it made me sick to see
it; and I was sorry for them poor
pitiful rascals, it seemed like I
couldn't ever feel any hardness
against them any more in the world. It
was a dreadful thing to see.
Human beings CAN be awful cruel to one
another.
We see we was too late—couldn't
do no good. We asked some stragglers
about it, and they said everybody went
to the show looking very innocent;
and laid low and kept dark till the
poor old king was in the middle of
his cavortings on the stage; then
somebody give a signal, and the house
rose up and went for them.
So we poked along back home, and I
warn't feeling so brash as I was
before, but kind of ornery, and humble,
and to blame, somehow—though I
hadn't done nothing. But that's always
the way; it don't make no
difference whether you do right or
wrong, a person's conscience ain't got
no sense, and just goes for him anyway.
If I had a yaller dog that
didn't know no more than a person's
conscience does I would pison him.
It takes up more room than all the rest
of a person's insides, and yet
ain't no good, nohow. Tom Sawyer he
says the same.
CHAPTER XXXIV.
WE stopped talking, and got to
thinking. By and by Tom says:
"Looky here, Huck, what fools we
are to not think of it before! I bet I
know where Jim is."
"No! Where?"
"In that hut down by the
ash-hopper. Why, looky here. When we was at
dinner, didn't you see a nigger man go
in there with some vittles?"
"Yes."
"What did you think the vittles
was for?"
"For a dog."
"So 'd I. Well, it wasn't for a
dog."
"Why?"
"Because part of it was
watermelon."
"So it was—I noticed it.
Well, it does beat all that I never thought
about a dog not eating watermelon. It
shows how a body can see and don't
see at the same time."
"Well, the nigger unlocked the
padlock when he went in, and he locked it
again when he came out. He fetched
uncle a key about the time we got up
from table—same key, I bet.
Watermelon shows man, lock shows prisoner;
and it ain't likely there's two
prisoners on such a little plantation,
and where the people's all so kind and
good. Jim's the prisoner. All
right—I'm glad we found it out
detective fashion; I wouldn't give
shucks for any other way. Now you work
your mind, and study out a plan
to steal Jim, and I will study out one,
too; and we'll take the one we
like the best."
What a head for just a boy to have! If
I had Tom Sawyer's head I
wouldn't trade it off to be a duke, nor
mate of a steamboat, nor clown in
a circus, nor nothing I can think of.
I went to thinking out a plan, but
only just to be doing something; I
knowed very well where the right plan
was going to come from. Pretty soon
Tom says:
"Ready?"
"Yes," I says.
"All right—bring it out."
"My plan is this," I says.
"We can easy find out if it's Jim in there.
Then get up my canoe to-morrow night,
and fetch my raft over from the
island. Then the first dark night that
comes steal the key out of the
old man's britches after he goes to
bed, and shove off down the river on
the raft with Jim, hiding daytimes and
running nights, the way me and Jim
used to do before. Wouldn't that plan
work?"
"WORK? Why, cert'nly it would
work, like rats a-fighting. But it's too
blame' simple; there ain't nothing TO
it. What's the good of a plan that
ain't no more trouble than that? It's
as mild as goose-milk. Why, Huck,
it wouldn't make no more talk than
breaking into a soap factory."
I never said nothing, because I warn't
expecting nothing different; but I
knowed mighty well that whenever he got
HIS plan ready it wouldn't have
none of them objections to it.
And it didn't. He told me what it was,
and I see in a minute it was
worth fifteen of mine for style, and
would make Jim just as free a man as
mine would, and maybe get us all killed
besides. So I was satisfied, and
said we would waltz in on it. I
needn't tell what it was here, because I
knowed it wouldn't stay the way, it
was. I knowed he would be changing
it around every which way as we went
along, and heaving in new
bullinesses wherever he got a chance.
And that is what he done.
Well, one thing was dead sure, and that
was that Tom Sawyer was in
earnest, and was actuly going to help
steal that nigger out of slavery.
That was the thing that was too many
for me. Here was a boy that was
respectable and well brung up; and had
a character to lose; and folks at
home that had characters; and he was
bright and not leather-headed; and
knowing and not ignorant; and not mean,
but kind; and yet here he was,
without any more pride, or rightness,
or feeling, than to stoop to this
business, and make himself a shame, and
his family a shame, before
everybody. I COULDN'T understand it no
way at all. It was outrageous,
and I knowed I ought to just up and
tell him so; and so be his true
friend, and let him quit the thing
right where he was and save himself.
And I DID start to tell him; but he
shut me up, and says:
"Don't you reckon I know what I'm
about? Don't I generly know what I'm
about?"
"Yes."
"Didn't I SAY I was going to help
steal the nigger?"
"Yes."
"WELL, then."
That's all he said, and that's all I
said. It warn't no use to say any
more; because when he said he'd do a
thing, he always done it. But I
couldn't make out how he was willing to
go into this thing; so I just let
it go, and never bothered no more about
it. If he was bound to have it
so, I couldn't help it.
When we got home the house was all dark
and still; so we went on down to
the hut by the ash-hopper for to
examine it. We went through the yard so
as to see what the hounds would do.
They knowed us, and didn't make no
more noise than country dogs is always
doing when anything comes by in
the night. When we got to the cabin we
took a look at the front and the
two sides; and on the side I warn't
acquainted with—which was the north
side—we found a square
window-hole, up tolerable high, with just one
stout board nailed across it. I says:
"Here's the ticket. This hole's
big enough for Jim to get through if we
wrench off the board."
Tom says:
"It's as simple as tit-tat-toe,
three-in-a-row, and as easy as playing
hooky. I should HOPE we can find a way
that's a little more complicated
than THAT, Huck Finn."
"Well, then," I says, "how
'll it do to saw him out, the way I done
before I was murdered that time?"
"That's more LIKE," he says.
"It's real mysterious, and troublesome, and
good," he says; "but I bet we
can find a way that's twice as long. There
ain't no hurry; le's keep on looking
around."
Betwixt the hut and the fence, on the
back side, was a lean-to that
joined the hut at the eaves, and was
made out of plank. It was as long
as the hut, but narrow—only about
six foot wide. The door to it was at
the south end, and was padlocked. Tom
he went to the soap-kettle and
searched around, and fetched back the
iron thing they lift the lid with;
so he took it and prized out one of the
staples. The chain fell down,
and we opened the door and went in, and
shut it, and struck a match, and
see the shed was only built against a
cabin and hadn't no connection with
it; and there warn't no floor to the
shed, nor nothing in it but some old
rusty played-out hoes and spades and
picks and a crippled plow. The
match went out, and so did we, and
shoved in the staple again, and the
door was locked as good as ever. Tom
was joyful. He says;
"Now we're all right. We'll DIG
him out. It 'll take about a week!"
Then we started for the house, and I
went in the back door—you only have
to pull a buckskin latch-string, they
don't fasten the doors—but that
warn't romantical enough for Tom
Sawyer; no way would do him but he must
climb up the lightning-rod. But after
he got up half way about three
times, and missed fire and fell every
time, and the last time most busted
his brains out, he thought he'd got to
give it up; but after he was
rested he allowed he would give her one
more turn for luck, and this time
he made the trip.
In the morning we was up at break of
day, and down to the nigger cabins
to pet the dogs and make friends with
the nigger that fed Jim—if it WAS
Jim that was being fed. The niggers
was just getting through breakfast
and starting for the fields; and Jim's
nigger was piling up a tin pan
with bread and meat and things; and
whilst the others was leaving, the
key come from the house.
This nigger had a good-natured,
chuckle-headed face, and his wool was all
tied up in little bunches with thread.
That was to keep witches off. He
said the witches was pestering him
awful these nights, and making him see
all kinds of strange things, and hear
all kinds of strange words and
noises, and he didn't believe he was
ever witched so long before in his
life. He got so worked up, and got to
running on so about his troubles,
he forgot all about what he'd been
a-going to do. So Tom says:
"What's the vittles for? Going to
feed the dogs?"
The nigger kind of smiled around
gradually over his face, like when you
heave a brickbat in a mud-puddle, and
he says:
"Yes, Mars Sid, A dog. Cur'us
dog, too. Does you want to go en look at
'im?"
"Yes."
I hunched Tom, and whispers:
"You going, right here in the
daybreak? THAT warn't the plan."
"No, it warn't; but it's the plan
NOW."
So, drat him, we went along, but I
didn't like it much. When we got in
we couldn't hardly see anything, it was
so dark; but Jim was there, sure
enough, and could see us; and he sings
out:
"Why, HUCK! En good LAN'! ain'
dat Misto Tom?"
I just knowed how it would be; I just
expected it. I didn't know nothing
to do; and if I had I couldn't a done
it, because that nigger busted in
and says:
"Why, de gracious sakes! do he
know you genlmen?"
We could see pretty well now. Tom he
looked at the nigger, steady and
kind of wondering, and says:
"Does WHO know us?"
"Why, dis-yer runaway nigger."
"I don't reckon he does; but what
put that into your head?"
"What PUT it dar? Didn' he jis'
dis minute sing out like he knowed you?"
Tom says, in a puzzled-up kind of way:
"Well, that's mighty curious. WHO
sung out? WHEN did he sing out? WHAT
did he sing out?" And turns to me,
perfectly ca'm, and says, "Did YOU
hear anybody sing out?"
Of course there warn't nothing to be
said but the one thing; so I says:
"No; I ain't heard nobody say
nothing."
Then he turns to Jim, and looks him
over like he never see him before,
and says:
"Did you sing out?"
"No, sah," says Jim; "I
hain't said nothing, sah."
"Not a word?"
"No, sah, I hain't said a word."
"Did you ever see us before?"
"No, sah; not as I knows on."
So Tom turns to the nigger, which was
looking wild and distressed, and
says, kind of severe:
"What do you reckon's the matter
with you, anyway? What made you think
somebody sung out?"
"Oh, it's de dad-blame' witches,
sah, en I wisht I was dead, I do. Dey's
awluz at it, sah, en dey do mos' kill
me, dey sk'yers me so. Please to
don't tell nobody 'bout it sah, er ole
Mars Silas he'll scole me; 'kase
he say dey AIN'T no witches. I jis'
wish to goodness he was heah now
—DEN what would he say! I jis'
bet he couldn' fine no way to git aroun'
it DIS time. But it's awluz jis' so;
people dat's SOT, stays sot; dey
won't look into noth'n'en fine it out
f'r deyselves, en when YOU fine it
out en tell um 'bout it, dey doan'
b'lieve you."
Tom give him a dime, and said we
wouldn't tell nobody; and told him to
buy some more thread to tie up his wool
with; and then looks at Jim, and
says:
"I wonder if Uncle Silas is going
to hang this nigger. If I was to catch
a nigger that was ungrateful enough to
run away, I wouldn't give him up,
I'd hang him." And whilst the
nigger stepped to the door to look at the
dime and bite it to see if it was good,
he whispers to Jim and says:
"Don't ever let on to know us.
And if you hear any digging going on
nights, it's us; we're going to set you
free."
Jim only had time to grab us by the
hand and squeeze it; then the nigger
come back, and we said we'd come again
some time if the nigger wanted us
to; and he said he would, more
particular if it was dark, because the
witches went for him mostly in the
dark, and it was good to have folks
around then.
CHAPTER XXXV.
IT would be most an hour yet till
breakfast, so we left and struck down
into the woods; because Tom said we got
to have SOME light to see how to
dig by, and a lantern makes too much,
and might get us into trouble; what
we must have was a lot of them rotten
chunks that's called fox-fire, and
just makes a soft kind of a glow when
you lay them in a dark place. We
fetched an armful and hid it in the
weeds, and set down to rest, and Tom
says, kind of dissatisfied:
"Blame it, this whole thing is
just as easy and awkward as it can be.
And so it makes it so rotten difficult
to get up a difficult plan. There
ain't no watchman to be drugged—now
there OUGHT to be a watchman. There
ain't even a dog to give a
sleeping-mixture to. And there's Jim chained
by one leg, with a ten-foot chain, to
the leg of his bed: why, all you
got to do is to lift up the bedstead
and slip off the chain. And Uncle
Silas he trusts everybody; sends the
key to the punkin-headed nigger, and
don't send nobody to watch the nigger.
Jim could a got out of that
window-hole before this, only there
wouldn't be no use trying to travel
with a ten-foot chain on his leg. Why,
drat it, Huck, it's the stupidest
arrangement I ever see. You got to
invent ALL the difficulties. Well, we
can't help it; we got to do the best we
can with the materials we've got.
Anyhow, there's one thing—there's
more honor in getting him out
through a lot of difficulties and
dangers, where there warn't one of them
furnished to you by the people who it
was their duty to furnish them, and
you had to contrive them all out of
your own head. Now look at just that
one thing of the lantern. When you
come down to the cold facts, we
simply got to LET ON that a lantern's
resky. Why, we could work with a
torchlight procession if we wanted to,
I believe. Now, whilst I think of
it, we got to hunt up something to make
a saw out of the first chance we
get."
"What do we want of a saw?"
"What do we WANT of it? Hain't we
got to saw the leg of Jim's bed
off, so as to get the chain loose?"
"Why, you just said a body could
lift up the bedstead and slip the chain
off."
"Well, if that ain't just like
you, Huck Finn. You CAN get up the
infant-schooliest ways of going at a
thing. Why, hain't you ever read
any books at all?—Baron Trenck,
nor Casanova, nor Benvenuto Chelleeny,
nor Henri IV., nor none of them heroes?
Who ever heard of getting a
prisoner loose in such an old-maidy way
as that? No; the way all the
best authorities does is to saw the
bed-leg in two, and leave it just so,
and swallow the sawdust, so it can't be
found, and put some dirt and
grease around the sawed place so the
very keenest seneskal can't see no
sign of it's being sawed, and thinks
the bed-leg is perfectly sound.
Then, the night you're ready, fetch the
leg a kick, down she goes; slip
off your chain, and there you are.
Nothing to do but hitch your rope
ladder to the battlements, shin down
it, break your leg in the moat
—because a rope ladder is
nineteen foot too short, you know—and there's
your horses and your trusty vassles,
and they scoop you up and fling you
across a saddle, and away you go to
your native Langudoc, or Navarre, or
wherever it is. It's gaudy, Huck. I
wish there was a moat to this cabin.
If we get time, the night of the
escape, we'll dig one."
I says:
"What do we want of a moat when
we're going to snake him out from under
the cabin?"
But he never heard me. He had forgot
me and everything else. He had his
chin in his hand, thinking. Pretty
soon he sighs and shakes his head;
then sighs again, and says:
"No, it wouldn't do—there
ain't necessity enough for it."
"For what?" I says.
"Why, to saw Jim's leg off,"
he says.
"Good land!" I says; "why,
there ain't NO necessity for it. And what
would you want to saw his leg off for,
anyway?"
"Well, some of the best
authorities has done it. They couldn't get the
chain off, so they just cut their hand
off and shoved. And a leg would
be better still. But we got to let
that go. There ain't necessity
enough in this case; and, besides,
Jim's a nigger, and wouldn't
understand the reasons for it, and how
it's the custom in Europe; so
we'll let it go. But there's one
thing—he can have a rope ladder; we
can tear up our sheets and make him a
rope ladder easy enough. And we
can send it to him in a pie; it's
mostly done that way. And I've et
worse pies."
"Why, Tom Sawyer, how you talk,"
I says; "Jim ain't got no use for a rope
ladder."
"He HAS got use for it. How YOU
talk, you better say; you don't know
nothing about it. He's GOT to have a
rope ladder; they all do."
"What in the nation can he DO with
it?"
"DO with it? He can hide it in
his bed, can't he? That's what they all
do; and HE'S got to, too. Huck, you
don't ever seem to want to do
anything that's regular; you want to be
starting something fresh all the
time. S'pose he DON'T do nothing with
it? ain't it there in his bed, for
a clew, after he's gone? and don't you
reckon they'll want clews? Of
course they will. And you wouldn't
leave them any? That would be a
PRETTY howdy-do, WOULDN'T it! I never
heard of such a thing."
"Well," I says, "if it's
in the regulations, and he's got to have it, all
right, let him have it; because I don't
wish to go back on no
regulations; but there's one thing, Tom
Sawyer—if we go to tearing up
our sheets to make Jim a rope ladder,
we're going to get into trouble
with Aunt Sally, just as sure as you're
born. Now, the way I look at it,
a hickry-bark ladder don't cost
nothing, and don't waste nothing, and is
just as good to load up a pie with, and
hide in a straw tick, as any rag
ladder you can start; and as for Jim,
he ain't had no experience, and so
he don't care what kind of a—"
"Oh, shucks, Huck Finn, if I was
as ignorant as you I'd keep still
—that's what I'D do. Who ever
heard of a state prisoner escaping by a
hickry-bark ladder? Why, it's
perfectly ridiculous."
"Well, all right, Tom, fix it your
own way; but if you'll take my advice,
you'll let me borrow a sheet off of the
clothesline."
He said that would do. And that gave
him another idea, and he says:
"Borrow a shirt, too."
"What do we want of a shirt, Tom?"
"Want it for Jim to keep a journal
on."
"Journal your granny—JIM
can't write."
"S'pose he CAN'T write—he
can make marks on the shirt, can't he, if we
make him a pen out of an old pewter
spoon or a piece of an old iron
barrel-hoop?"
"Why, Tom, we can pull a feather
out of a goose and make him a better
one; and quicker, too."
"PRISONERS don't have geese
running around the donjon-keep to pull pens
out of, you muggins. They ALWAYS make
their pens out of the hardest,
toughest, troublesomest piece of old
brass candlestick or something like
that they can get their hands on; and
it takes them weeks and weeks and
months and months to file it out, too,
because they've got to do it by
rubbing it on the wall. THEY wouldn't
use a goose-quill if they had it.
It ain't regular."
"Well, then, what'll we make him
the ink out of?"
"Many makes it out of iron-rust
and tears; but that's the common sort and
women; the best authorities uses their
own blood. Jim can do that; and
when he wants to send any little common
ordinary mysterious message to
let the world know where he's
captivated, he can write it on the bottom
of a tin plate with a fork and throw it
out of the window. The Iron Mask
always done that, and it's a blame'
good way, too."
"Jim ain't got no tin plates.
They feed him in a pan."
"That ain't nothing; we can get
him some."
"Can't nobody READ his plates."
"That ain't got anything to DO
with it, Huck Finn. All HE'S got to do is
to write on the plate and throw it out.
You don't HAVE to be able to
read it. Why, half the time you can't
read anything a prisoner writes on
a tin plate, or anywhere else."
"Well, then, what's the sense in
wasting the plates?"
"Why, blame it all, it ain't the
PRISONER'S plates."
"But it's SOMEBODY'S plates, ain't
it?"
"Well, spos'n it is? What does
the PRISONER care whose—"
He broke off there, because we heard
the breakfast-horn blowing. So we
cleared out for the house.
Along during the morning I borrowed a
sheet and a white shirt off of the
clothes-line; and I found an old sack
and put them in it, and we went
down and got the fox-fire, and put that
in too. I called it borrowing,
because that was what pap always called
it; but Tom said it warn't
borrowing, it was stealing. He said we
was representing prisoners; and
prisoners don't care how they get a
thing so they get it, and nobody
don't blame them for it, either. It
ain't no crime in a prisoner to
steal the thing he needs to get away
with, Tom said; it's his right; and
so, as long as we was representing a
prisoner, we had a perfect right to
steal anything on this place we had the
least use for to get ourselves
out of prison with. He said if we
warn't prisoners it would be a very
different thing, and nobody but a mean,
ornery person would steal when he
warn't a prisoner. So we allowed we
would steal everything there was
that come handy. And yet he made a
mighty fuss, one day, after that,
when I stole a watermelon out of the
nigger-patch and eat it; and he made
me go and give the niggers a dime
without telling them what it was for.
Tom said that what he meant was, we
could steal anything we NEEDED. Well,
I says, I needed the watermelon. But
he said I didn't need it to get out
of prison with; there's where the
difference was. He said if I'd a
wanted it to hide a knife in, and
smuggle it to Jim to kill the seneskal
with, it would a been all right. So I
let it go at that, though I
couldn't see no advantage in my
representing a prisoner if I got to set
down and chaw over a lot of gold-leaf
distinctions like that every time I
see a chance to hog a watermelon.
Well, as I was saying, we waited that
morning till everybody was settled
down to business, and nobody in sight
around the yard; then Tom he
carried the sack into the lean-to
whilst I stood off a piece to keep
watch. By and by he come out, and we
went and set down on the woodpile
to talk. He says:
"Everything's all right now except
tools; and that's easy fixed."
"Tools?" I says.
"Yes."
"Tools for what?"
"Why, to dig with. We ain't
a-going to GNAW him out, are we?"
"Ain't them old crippled picks and
things in there good enough to dig a
nigger out with?" I says.
He turns on me, looking pitying enough
to make a body cry, and says:
"Huck Finn, did you EVER hear of a
prisoner having picks and shovels, and
all the modern conveniences in his
wardrobe to dig himself out with? Now
I want to ask you—if you got any
reasonableness in you at all—what kind
of a show would THAT give him to be a
hero? Why, they might as well lend
him the key and done with it. Picks
and shovels—why, they wouldn't
furnish 'em to a king."
"Well, then," I says, "if
we don't want the picks and shovels, what do we
want?"
"A couple of case-knives."
"To dig the foundations out from
under that cabin with?"
"Yes."
"Confound it, it's foolish, Tom."
"It don't make no difference how
foolish it is, it's the RIGHT way—and
it's the regular way. And there ain't
no OTHER way, that ever I heard
of, and I've read all the books that
gives any information about these
things. They always dig out with a
case-knife—and not through dirt, mind
you; generly it's through solid rock.
And it takes them weeks and weeks
and weeks, and for ever and ever. Why,
look at one of them prisoners in
the bottom dungeon of the Castle Deef,
in the harbor of Marseilles, that
dug himself out that way; how long was
HE at it, you reckon?"
"I don't know."
"Well, guess."
"I don't know. A month and a
half."
"THIRTY-SEVEN YEAR—and he
come out in China. THAT'S the kind. I wish
the bottom of THIS fortress was solid
rock."
"JIM don't know nobody in China."
"What's THAT got to do with it?
Neither did that other fellow. But
you're always a-wandering off on a side
issue. Why can't you stick to
the main point?"
"All right—I don't care
where he comes out, so he COMES out; and Jim
don't, either, I reckon. But there's
one thing, anyway—Jim's too old to
be dug out with a case-knife. He won't
last."
"Yes he will LAST, too. You don't
reckon it's going to take thirty-seven
years to dig out through a DIRT
foundation, do you?"
"How long will it take, Tom?"
"Well, we can't resk being as long
as we ought to, because it mayn't take
very long for Uncle Silas to hear from
down there by New Orleans. He'll
hear Jim ain't from there. Then his
next move will be to advertise Jim,
or something like that. So we can't
resk being as long digging him out
as we ought to. By rights I reckon we
ought to be a couple of years; but
we can't. Things being so uncertain,
what I recommend is this: that we
really dig right in, as quick as we
can; and after that, we can LET ON,
to ourselves, that we was at it
thirty-seven years. Then we can snatch
him out and rush him away the first
time there's an alarm. Yes, I reckon
that 'll be the best way."
"Now, there's SENSE in that,"
I says. "Letting on don't cost nothing;
letting on ain't no trouble; and if
it's any object, I don't mind letting
on we was at it a hundred and fifty
year. It wouldn't strain me none,
after I got my hand in. So I'll mosey
along now, and smouch a couple of
case-knives."
"Smouch three," he says; "we
want one to make a saw out of."
"Tom, if it ain't unregular and
irreligious to sejest it," I says,
"there's an old rusty saw-blade
around yonder sticking under the
weather-boarding behind the
smoke-house."
He looked kind of weary and
discouraged-like, and says:
"It ain't no use to try to learn
you nothing, Huck. Run along and smouch
the knives—three of them."
So I done it.
CHAPTER XXXVI.
AS soon as we reckoned everybody was
asleep that night we went down the
lightning-rod, and shut ourselves up in
the lean-to, and got out our pile
of fox-fire, and went to work. We
cleared everything out of the way,
about four or five foot along the
middle of the bottom log. Tom said he
was right behind Jim's bed now, and
we'd dig in under it, and when we got
through there couldn't nobody in the
cabin ever know there was any hole
there, because Jim's counter-pin hung
down most to the ground, and you'd
have to raise it up and look under to
see the hole. So we dug and dug
with the case-knives till most
midnight; and then we was dog-tired, and
our hands was blistered, and yet you
couldn't see we'd done anything
hardly. At last I says:
"This ain't no thirty-seven year
job; this is a thirty-eight year job,
Tom Sawyer."
He never said nothing. But he sighed,
and pretty soon he stopped
digging, and then for a good little
while I knowed that he was thinking.
Then he says:
"It ain't no use, Huck, it ain't
a-going to work. If we was prisoners it
would, because then we'd have as many
years as we wanted, and no hurry;
and we wouldn't get but a few minutes
to dig, every day, while they was
changing watches, and so our hands
wouldn't get blistered, and we could
keep it up right along, year in and
year out, and do it right, and the
way it ought to be done. But WE can't
fool along; we got to rush; we
ain't got no time to spare. If we was
to put in another night this way
we'd have to knock off for a week to
let our hands get well—couldn't
touch a case-knife with them sooner."
"Well, then, what we going to do,
Tom?"
"I'll tell you. It ain't right,
and it ain't moral, and I wouldn't like
it to get out; but there ain't only
just the one way: we got to dig him
out with the picks, and LET ON it's
case-knives."
"NOW you're TALKING!" I
says; "your head gets leveler and leveler all
the time, Tom Sawyer," I says.
"Picks is the thing, moral or no moral;
and as for me, I don't care shucks for
the morality of it, nohow. When I
start in to steal a nigger, or a
watermelon, or a Sunday-school book, I
ain't no ways particular how it's done
so it's done. What I want is my
nigger; or what I want is my
watermelon; or what I want is my
Sunday-school book; and if a pick's the
handiest thing, that's the thing
I'm a-going to dig that nigger or that
watermelon or that Sunday-school
book out with; and I don't give a dead
rat what the authorities thinks
about it nuther."
"Well," he says, "there's
excuse for picks and letting-on in a case like
this; if it warn't so, I wouldn't
approve of it, nor I wouldn't stand by
and see the rules broke—because
right is right, and wrong is wrong, and
a body ain't got no business doing
wrong when he ain't ignorant and knows
better. It might answer for YOU to dig
Jim out with a pick, WITHOUT any
letting on, because you don't know no
better; but it wouldn't for me,
because I do know better. Gimme a
case-knife."
He had his own by him, but I handed him
mine. He flung it down, and
says:
"Gimme a CASE-KNIFE."
I didn't know just what to do—but
then I thought. I scratched around
amongst the old tools, and got a
pickaxe and give it to him, and he took
it and went to work, and never said a
word.
He was always just that particular.
Full of principle.
So then I got a shovel, and then we
picked and shoveled, turn about, and
made the fur fly. We stuck to it about
a half an hour, which was as long
as we could stand up; but we had a good
deal of a hole to show for it.
When I got up stairs I looked out at
the window and see Tom doing his
level best with the lightning-rod, but
he couldn't come it, his hands was
so sore. At last he says:
"It ain't no use, it can't be
done. What you reckon I better do? Can't
you think of no way?"
"Yes," I says, "but I
reckon it ain't regular. Come up the stairs, and
let on it's a lightning-rod."
So he done it.
Next day Tom stole a pewter spoon and a
brass candlestick in the house,
for to make some pens for Jim out of,
and six tallow candles; and I hung
around the nigger cabins and laid for a
chance, and stole three tin
plates. Tom says it wasn't enough; but
I said nobody wouldn't ever see
the plates that Jim throwed out,
because they'd fall in the dog-fennel
and jimpson weeds under the
window-hole—then we could tote them back and
he could use them over again. So Tom
was satisfied. Then he says:
"Now, the thing to study out is,
how to get the things to Jim."
"Take them in through the hole,"
I says, "when we get it done."
He only just looked scornful, and said
something about nobody ever heard
of such an idiotic idea, and then he
went to studying. By and by he said
he had ciphered out two or three ways,
but there warn't no need to decide
on any of them yet. Said we'd got to
post Jim first.
That night we went down the
lightning-rod a little after ten, and took
one of the candles along, and listened
under the window-hole, and heard
Jim snoring; so we pitched it in, and
it didn't wake him. Then we
whirled in with the pick and shovel,
and in about two hours and a half
the job was done. We crept in under
Jim's bed and into the cabin, and
pawed around and found the candle and
lit it, and stood over Jim awhile,
and found him looking hearty and
healthy, and then we woke him up gentle
and gradual. He was so glad to see us
he most cried; and called us
honey, and all the pet names he could
think of; and was for having us
hunt up a cold-chisel to cut the chain
off of his leg with right away,
and clearing out without losing any
time. But Tom he showed him how
unregular it would be, and set down and
told him all about our plans, and
how we could alter them in a minute any
time there was an alarm; and not
to be the least afraid, because we
would see he got away, SURE. So Jim
he said it was all right, and we set
there and talked over old times
awhile, and then Tom asked a lot of
questions, and when Jim told him
Uncle Silas come in every day or two to
pray with him, and Aunt Sally
come in to see if he was comfortable
and had plenty to eat, and both of
them was kind as they could be, Tom
says:
"NOW I know how to fix it. We'll
send you some things by them."
I said, "Don't do nothing of the
kind; it's one of the most jackass ideas
I ever struck;" but he never paid
no attention to me; went right on. It
was his way when he'd got his plans
set.
So he told Jim how we'd have to smuggle
in the rope-ladder pie and other
large things by Nat, the nigger that
fed him, and he must be on the
lookout, and not be surprised, and not
let Nat see him open them; and we
would put small things in uncle's
coat-pockets and he must steal them
out; and we would tie things to aunt's
apron-strings or put them in her
apron-pocket, if we got a chance; and
told him what they would be and
what they was for. And told him how to
keep a journal on the shirt with
his blood, and all that. He told him
everything. Jim he couldn't see no
sense in the most of it, but he allowed
we was white folks and knowed
better than him; so he was satisfied,
and said he would do it all just as
Tom said.
Jim had plenty corn-cob pipes and
tobacco; so we had a right down good
sociable time; then we crawled out
through the hole, and so home to bed,
with hands that looked like they'd been
chawed. Tom was in high spirits.
He said it was the best fun he ever had
in his life, and the most
intellectural; and said if he only
could see his way to it we would keep
it up all the rest of our lives and
leave Jim to our children to get out;
for he believed Jim would come to like
it better and better the more he
got used to it. He said that in that
way it could be strung out to as
much as eighty year, and would be the
best time on record. And he said
it would make us all celebrated that
had a hand in it.
In the morning we went out to the
woodpile and chopped up the brass
candlestick into handy sizes, and Tom
put them and the pewter spoon in
his pocket. Then we went to the nigger
cabins, and while I got Nat's
notice off, Tom shoved a piece of
candlestick into the middle of a
corn-pone that was in Jim's pan, and we
went along with Nat to see how it
would work, and it just worked noble;
when Jim bit into it it most mashed
all his teeth out; and there warn't
ever anything could a worked better.
Tom said so himself. Jim he never let
on but what it was only just a
piece of rock or something like that
that's always getting into bread,
you know; but after that he never bit
into nothing but what he jabbed his
fork into it in three or four places
first.
And whilst we was a-standing there in
the dimmish light, here comes a
couple of the hounds bulging in from
under Jim's bed; and they kept on
piling in till there was eleven of
them, and there warn't hardly room in
there to get your breath. By jings, we
forgot to fasten that lean-to
door! The nigger Nat he only just
hollered "Witches" once, and keeled
over on to the floor amongst the dogs,
and begun to groan like he was
dying. Tom jerked the door open and
flung out a slab of Jim's meat, and
the dogs went for it, and in two
seconds he was out himself and back
again and shut the door, and I knowed
he'd fixed the other door too.
Then he went to work on the nigger,
coaxing him and petting him, and
asking him if he'd been imagining he
saw something again. He raised up,
and blinked his eyes around, and says:
"Mars Sid, you'll say I's a fool,
but if I didn't b'lieve I see most a
million dogs, er devils, er some'n, I
wisht I may die right heah in dese
tracks. I did, mos' sholy. Mars Sid,
I FELT um—I FELT um, sah; dey was
all over me. Dad fetch it, I jis'
wisht I could git my han's on one er
dem witches jis' wunst—on'y jis'
wunst—it's all I'd ast. But mos'ly I
wisht dey'd lemme 'lone, I does."
Tom says:
"Well, I tell you what I think.
What makes them come here just at this
runaway nigger's breakfast-time? It's
because they're hungry; that's the
reason. You make them a witch pie;
that's the thing for YOU to do."
"But my lan', Mars Sid, how's I
gwyne to make 'm a witch pie? I doan'
know how to make it. I hain't ever
hearn er sich a thing b'fo'."
"Well, then, I'll have to make it
myself."
"Will you do it, honey?—will
you? I'll wusshup de groun' und' yo' foot,
I will!"
"All right, I'll do it, seeing
it's you, and you've been good to us and
showed us the runaway nigger. But you
got to be mighty careful. When we
come around, you turn your back; and
then whatever we've put in the pan,
don't you let on you see it at all.
And don't you look when Jim unloads
the pan—something might happen, I
don't know what. And above all, don't
you HANDLE the witch-things."
"HANNEL 'm, Mars Sid? What IS you
a-talkin' 'bout? I wouldn' lay de
weight er my finger on um, not f'r ten
hund'd thous'n billion dollars, I
wouldn't."
CHAPTER XXXVII.
THAT was all fixed. So then we went
away and went to the rubbage-pile in
the back yard, where they keep the old
boots, and rags, and pieces of
bottles, and wore-out tin things, and
all such truck, and scratched
around and found an old tin washpan,
and stopped up the holes as well as
we could, to bake the pie in, and took
it down cellar and stole it full
of flour and started for breakfast, and
found a couple of shingle-nails
that Tom said would be handy for a
prisoner to scrabble his name and
sorrows on the dungeon walls with, and
dropped one of them in Aunt
Sally's apron-pocket which was hanging
on a chair, and t'other we stuck
in the band of Uncle Silas's hat, which
was on the bureau, because we
heard the children say their pa and ma
was going to the runaway nigger's
house this morning, and then went to
breakfast, and Tom dropped the
pewter spoon in Uncle Silas's
coat-pocket, and Aunt Sally wasn't come
yet, so we had to wait a little while.
And when she come she was hot and red
and cross, and couldn't hardly wait
for the blessing; and then she went to
sluicing out coffee with one hand
and cracking the handiest child's head
with her thimble with the other,
and says:
"I've hunted high and I've hunted
low, and it does beat all what HAS
become of your other shirt."
My heart fell down amongst my lungs and
livers and things, and a hard
piece of corn-crust started down my
throat after it and got met on the
road with a cough, and was shot across
the table, and took one of the
children in the eye and curled him up
like a fishing-worm, and let a cry
out of him the size of a warwhoop, and
Tom he turned kinder blue around
the gills, and it all amounted to a
considerable state of things for
about a quarter of a minute or as much
as that, and I would a sold out
for half price if there was a bidder.
But after that we was all right
again—it was the sudden surprise
of it that knocked us so kind of cold.
Uncle Silas he says:
"It's most uncommon curious, I
can't understand it. I know perfectly
well I took it OFF, because—"
"Because you hain't got but one
ON. Just LISTEN at the man! I know you
took it off, and know it by a better
way than your wool-gethering memory,
too, because it was on the clo's-line
yesterday—I see it there myself.
But it's gone, that's the long and the
short of it, and you'll just have
to change to a red flann'l one till I
can get time to make a new one.
And it 'll be the third I've made in
two years. It just keeps a body on
the jump to keep you in shirts; and
whatever you do manage to DO with 'm
all is more'n I can make out. A body
'd think you WOULD learn to take
some sort of care of 'em at your time
of life."
"I know it, Sally, and I do try
all I can. But it oughtn't to be
altogether my fault, because, you know,
I don't see them nor have nothing
to do with them except when they're on
me; and I don't believe I've ever
lost one of them OFF of me."
"Well, it ain't YOUR fault if you
haven't, Silas; you'd a done it if you
could, I reckon. And the shirt ain't
all that's gone, nuther. Ther's a
spoon gone; and THAT ain't all. There
was ten, and now ther's only nine.
The calf got the shirt, I reckon, but
the calf never took the spoon,
THAT'S certain."
"Why, what else is gone, Sally?"
"Ther's six CANDLES gone—that's
what. The rats could a got the candles,
and I reckon they did; I wonder they
don't walk off with the whole place,
the way you're always going to stop
their holes and don't do it; and if
they warn't fools they'd sleep in your
hair, Silas—YOU'D never find it
out; but you can't lay the SPOON on the
rats, and that I know."
"Well, Sally, I'm in fault, and I
acknowledge it; I've been remiss; but I
won't let to-morrow go by without
stopping up them holes."
"Oh, I wouldn't hurry; next year
'll do. Matilda Angelina Araminta
PHELPS!"
Whack comes the thimble, and the child
snatches her claws out of the
sugar-bowl without fooling around any.
Just then the nigger woman steps
on to the passage, and says:
"Missus, dey's a sheet gone."
"A SHEET gone! Well, for the
land's sake!"
"I'll stop up them holes to-day,"
says Uncle Silas, looking sorrowful.
"Oh, DO shet up!—s'pose the
rats took the SHEET? WHERE'S it gone,
Lize?"
"Clah to goodness I hain't no
notion, Miss' Sally. She wuz on de
clo'sline yistiddy, but she done gone:
she ain' dah no mo' now."
"I reckon the world IS coming to
an end. I NEVER see the beat of it in
all my born days. A shirt, and a
sheet, and a spoon, and six can—"
"Missus," comes a young
yaller wench, "dey's a brass cannelstick miss'n."
"Cler out from here, you hussy, er
I'll take a skillet to ye!"
Well, she was just a-biling. I begun
to lay for a chance; I reckoned I
would sneak out and go for the woods
till the weather moderated. She
kept a-raging right along, running her
insurrection all by herself, and
everybody else mighty meek and quiet;
and at last Uncle Silas, looking
kind of foolish, fishes up that spoon
out of his pocket. She stopped,
with her mouth open and her hands up;
and as for me, I wished I was in
Jeruslem or somewheres. But not long,
because she says:
"It's JUST as I expected. So you
had it in your pocket all the time; and
like as not you've got the other things
there, too. How'd it get there?"
"I reely don't know, Sally,"
he says, kind of apologizing, "or you know I
would tell. I was a-studying over my
text in Acts Seventeen before
breakfast, and I reckon I put it in
there, not noticing, meaning to put
my Testament in, and it must be so,
because my Testament ain't in; but
I'll go and see; and if the Testament
is where I had it, I'll know I
didn't put it in, and that will show
that I laid the Testament down and
took up the spoon, and—"
"Oh, for the land's sake! Give a
body a rest! Go 'long now, the whole
kit and biling of ye; and don't come
nigh me again till I've got back my
peace of mind."
I'd a heard her if she'd a said it to
herself, let alone speaking it out;
and I'd a got up and obeyed her if I'd
a been dead. As we was passing
through the setting-room the old man he
took up his hat, and the
shingle-nail fell out on the floor, and
he just merely picked it up and
laid it on the mantel-shelf, and never
said nothing, and went out. Tom
see him do it, and remembered about the
spoon, and says:
"Well, it ain't no use to send
things by HIM no more, he ain't reliable."
Then he says: "But he done us a
good turn with the spoon, anyway,
without knowing it, and so we'll go and
do him one without HIM knowing
it—stop up his rat-holes."
There was a noble good lot of them down
cellar, and it took us a whole
hour, but we done the job tight and
good and shipshape. Then we heard
steps on the stairs, and blowed out our
light and hid; and here comes the
old man, with a candle in one hand and
a bundle of stuff in t'other,
looking as absent-minded as year before
last. He went a mooning around,
first to one rat-hole and then another,
till he'd been to them all. Then
he stood about five minutes, picking
tallow-drip off of his candle and
thinking. Then he turns off slow and
dreamy towards the stairs, saying:
"Well, for the life of me I can't
remember when I done it. I could show
her now that I warn't to blame on
account of the rats. But never mind
—let it go. I reckon it wouldn't
do no good."
And so he went on a-mumbling up stairs,
and then we left. He was a
mighty nice old man. And always is.
Tom was a good deal bothered about what
to do for a spoon, but he said
we'd got to have it; so he took a
think. When he had ciphered it out he
told me how we was to do; then we went
and waited around the spoon-basket
till we see Aunt Sally coming, and then
Tom went to counting the spoons
and laying them out to one side, and I
slid one of them up my sleeve, and
Tom says:
"Why, Aunt Sally, there ain't but
nine spoons YET."
She says:
"Go 'long to your play, and don't
bother me. I know better, I counted 'm
myself."
"Well, I've counted them twice,
Aunty, and I can't make but nine."
She looked out of all patience, but of
course she come to count—anybody
would.
"I declare to gracious ther' AIN'T
but nine!" she says. "Why, what in
the world—plague TAKE the things,
I'll count 'm again."
So I slipped back the one I had, and
when she got done counting, she
says:
"Hang the troublesome rubbage,
ther's TEN now!" and she looked huffy and
bothered both. But Tom says:
"Why, Aunty, I don't think there's
ten."
"You numskull, didn't you see me
COUNT 'm?"
"I know, but—"
"Well, I'll count 'm AGAIN."
So I smouched one, and they come out
nine, same as the other time. Well,
she WAS in a tearing way—just
a-trembling all over, she was so mad. But
she counted and counted till she got
that addled she'd start to count in
the basket for a spoon sometimes; and
so, three times they come out
right, and three times they come out
wrong. Then she grabbed up the
basket and slammed it across the house
and knocked the cat galley-west;
and she said cle'r out and let her have
some peace, and if we come
bothering around her again betwixt that
and dinner she'd skin us. So we
had the odd spoon, and dropped it in
her apron-pocket whilst she was
a-giving us our sailing orders, and Jim
got it all right, along with her
shingle nail, before noon. We was very
well satisfied with this
business, and Tom allowed it was worth
twice the trouble it took, because
he said NOW she couldn't ever count
them spoons twice alike again to save
her life; and wouldn't believe she'd
counted them right if she DID; and
said that after she'd about counted her
head off for the next three days
he judged she'd give it up and offer to
kill anybody that wanted her to
ever count them any more.
So we put the sheet back on the line
that night, and stole one out of her
closet; and kept on putting it back and
stealing it again for a couple of
days till she didn't know how many
sheets she had any more, and she
didn't CARE, and warn't a-going to
bullyrag the rest of her soul out
about it, and wouldn't count them again
not to save her life; she druther
die first.
So we was all right now, as to the
shirt and the sheet and the spoon and
the candles, by the help of the calf
and the rats and the mixed-up
counting; and as to the candlestick, it
warn't no consequence, it would
blow over by and by.
But that pie was a job; we had no end
of trouble with that pie. We fixed
it up away down in the woods, and
cooked it there; and we got it done at
last, and very satisfactory, too; but
not all in one day; and we had to
use up three wash-pans full of flour
before we got through, and we got
burnt pretty much all over, in places,
and eyes put out with the smoke;
because, you see, we didn't want
nothing but a crust, and we couldn't
prop it up right, and she would always
cave in. But of course we thought
of the right way at last—which
was to cook the ladder, too, in the
pie. So then we laid in with Jim the
second night, and tore up the sheet
all in little strings and twisted them
together, and long before daylight
we had a lovely rope that you could a
hung a person with. We let on it
took nine months to make it.
And in the forenoon we took it down to
the woods, but it wouldn't go into
the pie. Being made of a whole sheet,
that way, there was rope enough
for forty pies if we'd a wanted them,
and plenty left over for soup, or
sausage, or anything you choose. We
could a had a whole dinner.
But we didn't need it. All we needed
was just enough for the pie,
and so we throwed the rest away. We
didn't cook none of the pies in the
wash-pan—afraid the solder would
melt; but Uncle Silas he had a noble
brass warming-pan which he thought
considerable of, because it belonged
to one of his ancesters with a long
wooden handle that come over from
England with William the Conqueror in
the Mayflower or one of them early
ships and was hid away up garret with a
lot of other old pots and things
that was valuable, not on account of
being any account, because they
warn't, but on account of them being
relicts, you know, and we snaked her
out, private, and took her down there,
but she failed on the first pies,
because we didn't know how, but she
come up smiling on the last one. We
took and lined her with dough, and set
her in the coals, and loaded her
up with rag rope, and put on a dough
roof, and shut down the lid, and put
hot embers on top, and stood off five
foot, with the long handle, cool
and comfortable, and in fifteen minutes
she turned out a pie that was a
satisfaction to look at. But the person
that et it would want to fetch a
couple of kags of toothpicks along, for
if that rope ladder wouldn't
cramp him down to business I don't know
nothing what I'm talking about,
and lay him in enough stomach-ache to
last him till next time, too.
Nat didn't look when we put the witch
pie in Jim's pan; and we put the
three tin plates in the bottom of the
pan under the vittles; and so Jim
got everything all right, and as soon
as he was by himself he busted into
the pie and hid the rope ladder inside
of his straw tick, and scratched
some marks on a tin plate and throwed
it out of the window-hole.
CHAPTER XXXVIII.
MAKING them pens was a distressid tough
job, and so was the saw; and Jim
allowed the inscription was going to be
the toughest of all. That's the
one which the prisoner has to scrabble
on the wall. But he had to have
it; Tom said he'd GOT to; there warn't
no case of a state prisoner not
scrabbling his inscription to leave
behind, and his coat of arms.
"Look at Lady Jane Grey," he
says; "look at Gilford Dudley; look at old
Northumberland! Why, Huck, s'pose it
IS considerble trouble?—what you
going to do?—how you going to get
around it? Jim's GOT to do his
inscription and coat of arms. They all
do."
Jim says:
"Why, Mars Tom, I hain't got no
coat o' arm; I hain't got nuffn but dish
yer ole shirt, en you knows I got to
keep de journal on dat."
"Oh, you don't understand, Jim; a
coat of arms is very different."
"Well," I says, "Jim's
right, anyway, when he says he ain't got no coat
of arms, because he hain't."
"I reckon I knowed that," Tom
says, "but you bet he'll have one before he
goes out of this—because he's
going out RIGHT, and there ain't going to
be no flaws in his record."
So whilst me and Jim filed away at the
pens on a brickbat apiece, Jim
a-making his'n out of the brass and I
making mine out of the spoon, Tom
set to work to think out the coat of
arms. By and by he said he'd struck
so many good ones he didn't hardly know
which to take, but there was one
which he reckoned he'd decide on. He
says:
"On the scutcheon we'll have a
bend OR in the dexter base, a saltire
MURREY in the fess, with a dog,
couchant, for common charge, and under
his foot a chain embattled, for
slavery, with a chevron VERT in a chief
engrailed, and three invected lines on
a field AZURE, with the nombril
points rampant on a dancette indented;
crest, a runaway nigger, SABLE,
with his bundle over his shoulder on a
bar sinister; and a couple of
gules for supporters, which is you and
me; motto, MAGGIORE FRETTA, MINORE
OTTO. Got it out of a book—means
the more haste the less speed."
"Geewhillikins," I says, "but
what does the rest of it mean?"
"We ain't got no time to bother
over that," he says; "we got to dig in
like all git-out."
"Well, anyway," I says,
"what's SOME of it? What's a fess?"
"A fess—a fess is—YOU
don't need to know what a fess is. I'll show him
how to make it when he gets to it."
"Shucks, Tom," I says, "I
think you might tell a person. What's a bar
sinister?"
"Oh, I don't know. But he's got
to have it. All the nobility does."
That was just his way. If it didn't
suit him to explain a thing to you,
he wouldn't do it. You might pump at
him a week, it wouldn't make no
difference.
He'd got all that coat of arms business
fixed, so now he started in to
finish up the rest of that part of the
work, which was to plan out a
mournful inscription—said Jim got
to have one, like they all done. He
made up a lot, and wrote them out on a
paper, and read them off, so:
1. Here a captive heart busted. 2.
Here a poor prisoner, forsook by the
world and friends, fretted his
sorrowful life. 3. Here a lonely heart
broke, and a worn spirit went to its
rest, after thirty-seven years of
solitary captivity. 4. Here, homeless
and friendless, after thirty-seven
years of bitter captivity, perished a
noble stranger, natural son of
Louis XIV.
Tom's voice trembled whilst he was
reading them, and he most broke down.
When he got done he couldn't no way
make up his mind which one for Jim to
scrabble on to the wall, they was all
so good; but at last he allowed he
would let him scrabble them all on.
Jim said it would take him a year to
scrabble such a lot of truck on to the
logs with a nail, and he didn't
know how to make letters, besides; but
Tom said he would block them out
for him, and then he wouldn't have
nothing to do but just follow the
lines. Then pretty soon he says:
"Come to think, the logs ain't
a-going to do; they don't have log walls
in a dungeon: we got to dig the
inscriptions into a rock. We'll fetch a
rock."
Jim said the rock was worse than the
logs; he said it would take him such
a pison long time to dig them into a
rock he wouldn't ever get out. But
Tom said he would let me help him do
it. Then he took a look to see how
me and Jim was getting along with the
pens. It was most pesky tedious
hard work and slow, and didn't give my
hands no show to get well of the
sores, and we didn't seem to make no
headway, hardly; so Tom says:
"I know how to fix it. We got to
have a rock for the coat of arms and
mournful inscriptions, and we can kill
two birds with that same rock.
There's a gaudy big grindstone down at
the mill, and we'll smouch it, and
carve the things on it, and file out
the pens and the saw on it, too."
It warn't no slouch of an idea; and it
warn't no slouch of a grindstone
nuther; but we allowed we'd tackle it.
It warn't quite midnight yet, so
we cleared out for the mill, leaving
Jim at work. We smouched the
grindstone, and set out to roll her
home, but it was a most nation tough
job. Sometimes, do what we could, we
couldn't keep her from falling over,
and she come mighty near mashing us
every time. Tom said she was going
to get one of us, sure, before we got
through. We got her half way; and
then we was plumb played out, and most
drownded with sweat. We see it
warn't no use; we got to go and fetch
Jim. So he raised up his bed and
slid the chain off of the bed-leg, and
wrapt it round and round his neck,
and we crawled out through our hole and
down there, and Jim and me laid
into that grindstone and walked her
along like nothing; and Tom
superintended. He could
out-superintend any boy I ever see. He knowed
how to do everything.
Our hole was pretty big, but it warn't
big enough to get the grindstone
through; but Jim he took the pick and
soon made it big enough. Then Tom
marked out them things on it with the
nail, and set Jim to work on them,
with the nail for a chisel and an iron
bolt from the rubbage in the
lean-to for a hammer, and told him to
work till the rest of his candle
quit on him, and then he could go to
bed, and hide the grindstone under
his straw tick and sleep on it. Then
we helped him fix his chain back on
the bed-leg, and was ready for bed
ourselves. But Tom thought of
something, and says:
"You got any spiders in here,
Jim?"
"No, sah, thanks to goodness I
hain't, Mars Tom."
"All right, we'll get you some."
"But bless you, honey, I doan'
WANT none. I's afeard un um. I jis' 's
soon have rattlesnakes aroun'."
Tom thought a minute or two, and says:
"It's a good idea. And I reckon
it's been done. It MUST a been done; it
stands to reason. Yes, it's a prime
good idea. Where could you keep
it?"
"Keep what, Mars Tom?"
"Why, a rattlesnake."
"De goodness gracious alive, Mars
Tom! Why, if dey was a rattlesnake to
come in heah I'd take en bust right out
thoo dat log wall, I would, wid
my head."
"Why, Jim, you wouldn't be afraid
of it after a little. You could tame
it."
"TAME it!"
"Yes—easy enough. Every
animal is grateful for kindness and petting,
and they wouldn't THINK of hurting a
person that pets them. Any book
will tell you that. You try—that's
all I ask; just try for two or three
days. Why, you can get him so, in a
little while, that he'll love you; and
sleep with you; and won't stay away
from you a minute; and will let you
wrap him round your neck and put his
head in your mouth."
"PLEASE, Mars Tom—DOAN' talk
so! I can't STAN' it! He'd LET me shove
his head in my mouf—fer a favor,
hain't it? I lay he'd wait a pow'ful
long time 'fo' I AST him. En mo' en
dat, I doan' WANT him to sleep wid
me."
"Jim, don't act so foolish. A
prisoner's GOT to have some kind of a dumb
pet, and if a rattlesnake hain't ever
been tried, why, there's more glory
to be gained in your being the first to
ever try it than any other way
you could ever think of to save your
life."
"Why, Mars Tom, I doan' WANT no
sich glory. Snake take 'n bite Jim's
chin off, den WHAH is de glory? No,
sah, I doan' want no sich doin's."
"Blame it, can't you TRY? I only
WANT you to try—you needn't keep it up
if it don't work."
"But de trouble all DONE ef de
snake bite me while I's a tryin' him.
Mars Tom, I's willin' to tackle mos'
anything 'at ain't onreasonable, but
ef you en Huck fetches a rattlesnake in
heah for me to tame, I's gwyne to
LEAVE, dat's SHORE."
"Well, then, let it go, let it go,
if you're so bull-headed about it. We
can get you some garter-snakes, and you
can tie some buttons on their
tails, and let on they're rattlesnakes,
and I reckon that 'll have to
do."
"I k'n stan' DEM, Mars Tom, but
blame' 'f I couldn' get along widout um,
I tell you dat. I never knowed b'fo'
't was so much bother and trouble
to be a prisoner."
"Well, it ALWAYS is when it's done
right. You got any rats around here?"
"No, sah, I hain't seed none."
"Well, we'll get you some rats."
"Why, Mars Tom, I doan' WANT no
rats. Dey's de dadblamedest creturs to
'sturb a body, en rustle roun' over
'im, en bite his feet, when he's
tryin' to sleep, I ever see. No, sah,
gimme g'yarter-snakes, 'f I's got
to have 'm, but doan' gimme no rats; I
hain' got no use f'r um, skasely."
"But, Jim, you GOT to have
'em—they all do. So don't make no more fuss
about it. Prisoners ain't ever without
rats. There ain't no instance of
it. And they train them, and pet them,
and learn them tricks, and they
get to be as sociable as flies. But
you got to play music to them. You
got anything to play music on?"
"I ain' got nuffn but a coase comb
en a piece o' paper, en a juice-harp;
but I reck'n dey wouldn' take no stock
in a juice-harp."
"Yes they would. THEY don't care
what kind of music 'tis. A jews-harp's
plenty good enough for a rat. All
animals like music—in a prison they
dote on it. Specially, painful music;
and you can't get no other kind
out of a jews-harp. It always
interests them; they come out to see
what's the matter with you. Yes,
you're all right; you're fixed very
well. You want to set on your bed
nights before you go to sleep, and
early in the mornings, and play your
jews-harp; play 'The Last Link is
Broken'—that's the thing that 'll
scoop a rat quicker 'n anything else;
and when you've played about two
minutes you'll see all the rats, and the
snakes, and spiders, and things begin
to feel worried about you, and
come. And they'll just fairly swarm
over you, and have a noble good
time."
"Yes, DEY will, I reck'n, Mars
Tom, but what kine er time is JIM havin'?
Blest if I kin see de pint. But I'll
do it ef I got to. I reck'n I
better keep de animals satisfied, en
not have no trouble in de house."
Tom waited to think it over, and see if
there wasn't nothing else; and
pretty soon he says:
"Oh, there's one thing I forgot.
Could you raise a flower here, do you
reckon?"
"I doan know but maybe I could,
Mars Tom; but it's tolable dark in heah,
en I ain' got no use f'r no flower,
nohow, en she'd be a pow'ful sight o'
trouble."
"Well, you try it, anyway. Some
other prisoners has done it."
"One er dem big cat-tail-lookin'
mullen-stalks would grow in heah, Mars
Tom, I reck'n, but she wouldn't be wuth
half de trouble she'd coss."
"Don't you believe it. We'll
fetch you a little one and you plant it in
the corner over there, and raise it.
And don't call it mullen, call it
Pitchiola—that's its right name
when it's in a prison. And you want to
water it with your tears."
"Why, I got plenty spring water,
Mars Tom."
"You don't WANT spring water; you
want to water it with your tears. It's
the way they always do."
"Why, Mars Tom, I lay I kin raise
one er dem mullen-stalks twyste wid
spring water whiles another man's a
START'N one wid tears."
"That ain't the idea. You GOT to
do it with tears."
"She'll die on my han's, Mars Tom,
she sholy will; kase I doan' skasely
ever cry."
So Tom was stumped. But he studied it
over, and then said Jim would have
to worry along the best he could with
an onion. He promised he would go
to the nigger cabins and drop one,
private, in Jim's coffee-pot, in the
morning. Jim said he would "jis'
's soon have tobacker in his coffee;"
and found so much fault with it, and
with the work and bother of raising
the mullen, and jews-harping the rats,
and petting and flattering up the
snakes and spiders and things, on top
of all the other work he had to do
on pens, and inscriptions, and
journals, and things, which made it more
trouble and worry and responsibility to
be a prisoner than anything he
ever undertook, that Tom most lost all
patience with him; and said he was
just loadened down with more gaudier
chances than a prisoner ever had in
the world to make a name for himself,
and yet he didn't know enough to
appreciate them, and they was just
about wasted on him. So Jim he was
sorry, and said he wouldn't behave so
no more, and then me and Tom shoved
for bed.
CHAPTER XXXIX.
IN the morning we went up to the
village and bought a wire rat-trap and
fetched it down, and unstopped the best
rat-hole, and in about an hour we
had fifteen of the bulliest kind of
ones; and then we took it and put it
in a safe place under Aunt Sally's bed.
But while we was gone for
spiders little Thomas Franklin Benjamin
Jefferson Elexander Phelps found
it there, and opened the door of it to
see if the rats would come out,
and they did; and Aunt Sally she come
in, and when we got back she was
a-standing on top of the bed raising
Cain, and the rats was doing what
they could to keep off the dull times
for her. So she took and dusted us
both with the hickry, and we was as
much as two hours catching another
fifteen or sixteen, drat that
meddlesome cub, and they warn't the
likeliest, nuther, because the first
haul was the pick of the flock.
I never see a likelier lot of rats than
what that first haul was.
We got a splendid stock of sorted
spiders, and bugs, and frogs, and
caterpillars, and one thing or another;
and we like to got a hornet's
nest, but we didn't. The family was at
home. We didn't give it right
up, but stayed with them as long as we
could; because we allowed we'd
tire them out or they'd got to tire us
out, and they done it. Then we
got allycumpain and rubbed on the
places, and was pretty near all right
again, but couldn't set down
convenient. And so we went for the snakes,
and grabbed a couple of dozen garters
and house-snakes, and put them in a
bag, and put it in our room, and by
that time it was supper-time, and a
rattling good honest day's work: and
hungry?—oh, no, I reckon not! And
there warn't a blessed snake up there
when we went back—we didn't half
tie the sack, and they worked out
somehow, and left. But it didn't
matter much, because they was still on
the premises somewheres. So we
judged we could get some of them again.
No, there warn't no real
scarcity of snakes about the house for
a considerable spell. You'd see
them dripping from the rafters and
places every now and then; and they
generly landed in your plate, or down
the back of your neck, and most of
the time where you didn't want them.
Well, they was handsome and
striped, and there warn't no harm in a
million of them; but that never
made no difference to Aunt Sally; she
despised snakes, be the breed what
they might, and she couldn't stand them
no way you could fix it; and
every time one of them flopped down on
her, it didn't make no difference
what she was doing, she would just lay
that work down and light out. I
never see such a woman. And you could
hear her whoop to Jericho. You
couldn't get her to take a-holt of one
of them with the tongs. And if
she turned over and found one in bed
she would scramble out and lift a
howl that you would think the house was
afire. She disturbed the old man
so that he said he could most wish
there hadn't ever been no snakes
created. Why, after every last snake
had been gone clear out of the
house for as much as a week Aunt Sally
warn't over it yet; she warn't
near over it; when she was setting
thinking about something you could
touch her on the back of her neck with
a feather and she would jump right
out of her stockings. It was very
curious. But Tom said all women was
just so. He said they was made that
way for some reason or other.
We got a licking every time one of our
snakes come in her way, and she
allowed these lickings warn't nothing
to what she would do if we ever
loaded up the place again with them. I
didn't mind the lickings, because
they didn't amount to nothing; but I
minded the trouble we had to lay in
another lot. But we got them laid in,
and all the other things; and you
never see a cabin as blithesome as
Jim's was when they'd all swarm out
for music and go for him. Jim didn't
like the spiders, and the spiders
didn't like Jim; and so they'd lay for
him, and make it mighty warm for
him. And he said that between the rats
and the snakes and the grindstone
there warn't no room in bed for him,
skasely; and when there was, a body
couldn't sleep, it was so lively, and
it was always lively, he said,
because THEY never all slept at one
time, but took turn about, so when
the snakes was asleep the rats was on
deck, and when the rats turned in
the snakes come on watch, so he always
had one gang under him, in his
way, and t'other gang having a circus
over him, and if he got up to hunt
a new place the spiders would take a
chance at him as he crossed over.
He said if he ever got out this time he
wouldn't ever be a prisoner
again, not for a salary.
Well, by the end of three weeks
everything was in pretty good shape. The
shirt was sent in early, in a pie, and
every time a rat bit Jim he would
get up and write a little in his
journal whilst the ink was fresh; the
pens was made, the inscriptions and so
on was all carved on the
grindstone; the bed-leg was sawed in
two, and we had et up the sawdust,
and it give us a most amazing
stomach-ache. We reckoned we was all going
to die, but didn't. It was the most
undigestible sawdust I ever see; and
Tom said the same. But as I was
saying, we'd got all the work done now,
at last; and we was all pretty much
fagged out, too, but mainly Jim. The
old man had wrote a couple of times to
the plantation below Orleans to
come and get their runaway nigger, but
hadn't got no answer, because
there warn't no such plantation; so he
allowed he would advertise Jim in
the St. Louis and New Orleans papers;
and when he mentioned the St. Louis
ones it give me the cold shivers, and I
see we hadn't no time to lose.
So Tom said, now for the nonnamous
letters.
"What's them?" I says.
"Warnings to the people that
something is up. Sometimes it's done one
way, sometimes another. But there's
always somebody spying around that
gives notice to the governor of the
castle. When Louis XVI. was going to
light out of the Tooleries, a
servant-girl done it. It's a very good way,
and so is the nonnamous letters. We'll
use them both. And it's usual
for the prisoner's mother to change
clothes with him, and she stays in,
and he slides out in her clothes.
We'll do that, too."
"But looky here, Tom, what do we
want to WARN anybody for that
something's up? Let them find it out
for themselves—it's their
lookout."
"Yes, I know; but you can't depend
on them. It's the way they've acted
from the very start—left us to do
EVERYTHING. They're so confiding and
mullet-headed they don't take notice of
nothing at all. So if we don't
GIVE them notice there won't be nobody
nor nothing to interfere with us,
and so after all our hard work and
trouble this escape 'll go off
perfectly flat; won't amount to
nothing—won't be nothing TO it."
"Well, as for me, Tom, that's the
way I'd like."
"Shucks!" he says, and looked
disgusted. So I says:
"But I ain't going to make no
complaint. Any way that suits you suits
me. What you going to do about the
servant-girl?"
"You'll be her. You slide in, in
the middle of the night, and hook that
yaller girl's frock."
"Why, Tom, that 'll make trouble
next morning; because, of course, she
prob'bly hain't got any but that one."
"I know; but you don't want it but
fifteen minutes, to carry the
nonnamous letter and shove it under the
front door."
"All right, then, I'll do it; but
I could carry it just as handy in my
own togs."
"You wouldn't look like a
servant-girl THEN, would you?"
"No, but there won't be nobody to
see what I look like, ANYWAY."
"That ain't got nothing to do with
it. The thing for us to do is just to
do our DUTY, and not worry about
whether anybody SEES us do it or not.
Hain't you got no principle at all?"
"All right, I ain't saying
nothing; I'm the servant-girl. Who's Jim's
mother?"
"I'm his mother. I'll hook a gown
from Aunt Sally."
"Well, then, you'll have to stay
in the cabin when me and Jim leaves."
"Not much. I'll stuff Jim's
clothes full of straw and lay it on his bed
to represent his mother in disguise,
and Jim 'll take the nigger woman's
gown off of me and wear it, and we'll
all evade together. When a
prisoner of style escapes it's called
an evasion. It's always called so
when a king escapes, f'rinstance. And
the same with a king's son; it
don't make no difference whether he's a
natural one or an unnatural one."
So Tom he wrote the nonnamous letter,
and I smouched the yaller wench's
frock that night, and put it on, and
shoved it under the front door, the
way Tom told me to. It said:
Beware. Trouble is brewing. Keep a
sharp lookout. UNKNOWN FRIEND.
Next night we stuck a picture, which
Tom drawed in blood, of a skull and
crossbones on the front door; and next
night another one of a coffin on
the back door. I never see a family in
such a sweat. They couldn't a
been worse scared if the place had a
been full of ghosts laying for them
behind everything and under the beds
and shivering through the air. If a
door banged, Aunt Sally she jumped and
said "ouch!" if anything fell, she
jumped and said "ouch!" if
you happened to touch her, when she warn't
noticing, she done the same; she
couldn't face noway and be satisfied,
because she allowed there was something
behind her every time—so she was
always a-whirling around sudden, and
saying "ouch," and before she'd got
two-thirds around she'd whirl back
again, and say it again; and she was
afraid to go to bed, but she dasn't set
up. So the thing was working
very well, Tom said; he said he never
see a thing work more satisfactory.
He said it showed it was done right.
So he said, now for the grand bulge!
So the very next morning at the
streak of dawn we got another letter
ready, and was wondering what we
better do with it, because we heard
them say at supper they was going to
have a nigger on watch at both doors
all night. Tom he went down the
lightning-rod to spy around; and the
nigger at the back door was asleep,
and he stuck it in the back of his neck
and come back. This letter said:
Don't betray me, I wish to be your
friend. There is a desprate gang of
cutthroats from over in the Indian
Territory going to steal your runaway
nigger to-night, and they have been
trying to scare you so as you will
stay in the house and not bother them.
I am one of the gang, but have
got religgion and wish to quit it and
lead an honest life again, and will
betray the helish design. They will
sneak down from northards, along the
fence, at midnight exact, with a false
key, and go in the nigger's cabin
to get him. I am to be off a piece and
blow a tin horn if I see any
danger; but stead of that I will BA
like a sheep soon as they get in and
not blow at all; then whilst they are
getting his chains loose, you slip
there and lock them in, and can kill
them at your leasure. Don't do
anything but just the way I am telling
you, if you do they will suspicion
something and raise whoop-jamboreehoo.
I do not wish any reward but to
know I have done the right thing.
UNKNOWN FRIEND.
CHAPTER XL.
WE was feeling pretty good after
breakfast, and took my canoe and went
over the river a-fishing, with a lunch,
and had a good time, and took a
look at the raft and found her all
right, and got home late to supper,
and found them in such a sweat and
worry they didn't know which end they
was standing on, and made us go right
off to bed the minute we was done
supper, and wouldn't tell us what the
trouble was, and never let on a
word about the new letter, but didn't
need to, because we knowed as much
about it as anybody did, and as soon as
we was half up stairs and her
back was turned we slid for the cellar
cupboard and loaded up a good
lunch and took it up to our room and
went to bed, and got up about
half-past eleven, and Tom put on Aunt
Sally's dress that he stole and
was going to start with the lunch, but
says:
"Where's the butter?"
"I laid out a hunk of it," I
says, "on a piece of a corn-pone."
"Well, you LEFT it laid out,
then—it ain't here."
"We can get along without it,"
I says.
"We can get along WITH it, too,"
he says; "just you slide down cellar and
fetch it. And then mosey right down
the lightning-rod and come along.
I'll go and stuff the straw into Jim's
clothes to represent his mother in
disguise, and be ready to BA like a
sheep and shove soon as you get
there."
So out he went, and down cellar went I.
The hunk of butter, big as a
person's fist, was where I had left it,
so I took up the slab of
corn-pone with it on, and blowed out my
light, and started up stairs very
stealthy, and got up to the main floor
all right, but here comes Aunt
Sally with a candle, and I clapped the
truck in my hat, and clapped my
hat on my head, and the next second she
see me; and she says:
"You been down cellar?"
"Yes'm."
"What you been doing down there?"
"Noth'n."
"NOTH'N!"
"No'm."
"Well, then, what possessed you to
go down there this time of night?"
"I don't know 'm."
"You don't KNOW? Don't answer me
that way. Tom, I want to know what you
been DOING down there."
"I hain't been doing a single
thing, Aunt Sally, I hope to gracious if I
have."
I reckoned she'd let me go now, and as
a generl thing she would; but I
s'pose there was so many strange things
going on she was just in a sweat
about every little thing that warn't
yard-stick straight; so she says,
very decided:
"You just march into that
setting-room and stay there till I come. You
been up to something you no business
to, and I lay I'll find out what it
is before I'M done with you."
So she went away as I opened the door
and walked into the setting-room.
My, but there was a crowd there!
Fifteen farmers, and every one of them
had a gun. I was most powerful sick,
and slunk to a chair and set down.
They was setting around, some of them
talking a little, in a low voice,
and all of them fidgety and uneasy, but
trying to look like they warn't;
but I knowed they was, because they was
always taking off their hats, and
putting them on, and scratching their
heads, and changing their seats,
and fumbling with their buttons. I
warn't easy myself, but I didn't take
my hat off, all the same.
I did wish Aunt Sally would come, and
get done with me, and lick me, if
she wanted to, and let me get away and
tell Tom how we'd overdone this
thing, and what a thundering
hornet's-nest we'd got ourselves into, so we
could stop fooling around straight off,
and clear out with Jim before
these rips got out of patience and come
for us.
At last she come and begun to ask me
questions, but I COULDN'T answer
them straight, I didn't know which end
of me was up; because these men
was in such a fidget now that some was
wanting to start right NOW and lay
for them desperadoes, and saying it
warn't but a few minutes to midnight;
and others was trying to get them to
hold on and wait for the
sheep-signal; and here was Aunty
pegging away at the questions, and me
a-shaking all over and ready to sink
down in my tracks I was that scared;
and the place getting hotter and
hotter, and the butter beginning to melt
and run down my neck and behind my
ears; and pretty soon, when one of
them says, "I'M for going and
getting in the cabin FIRST and right NOW,
and catching them when they come,"
I most dropped; and a streak of butter
come a-trickling down my forehead, and
Aunt Sally she see it, and turns
white as a sheet, and says:
"For the land's sake, what IS the
matter with the child? He's got the
brain-fever as shore as you're born,
and they're oozing out!"
And everybody runs to see, and she
snatches off my hat, and out comes the
bread and what was left of the butter,
and she grabbed me, and hugged me,
and says:
"Oh, what a turn you did give me!
and how glad and grateful I am it ain't
no worse; for luck's against us, and it
never rains but it pours, and
when I see that truck I thought we'd
lost you, for I knowed by the color
and all it was just like your brains
would be if—Dear, dear, whyd'nt you
TELL me that was what you'd been down
there for, I wouldn't a cared. Now
cler out to bed, and don't lemme see no
more of you till morning!"
I was up stairs in a second, and down
the lightning-rod in another one,
and shinning through the dark for the
lean-to. I couldn't hardly get my
words out, I was so anxious; but I told
Tom as quick as I could we must
jump for it now, and not a minute to
lose—the house full of men, yonder,
with guns!
His eyes just blazed; and he says:
"No!—is that so? AIN'T it
bully! Why, Huck, if it was to do over
again, I bet I could fetch two hundred!
If we could put it off till—"
"Hurry! HURRY!" I says.
"Where's Jim?"
"Right at your elbow; if you reach
out your arm you can touch him. He's
dressed, and everything's ready. Now
we'll slide out and give the
sheep-signal."
But then we heard the tramp of men
coming to the door, and heard them
begin to fumble with the pad-lock, and
heard a man say:
"I TOLD you we'd be too soon; they
haven't come—the door is locked.
Here, I'll lock some of you into the
cabin, and you lay for 'em in the
dark and kill 'em when they come; and
the rest scatter around a piece,
and listen if you can hear 'em coming."
So in they come, but couldn't see us in
the dark, and most trod on us
whilst we was hustling to get under the
bed. But we got under all right,
and out through the hole, swift but
soft—Jim first, me next, and Tom
last, which was according to Tom's
orders. Now we was in the lean-to,
and heard trampings close by outside.
So we crept to the door, and Tom
stopped us there and put his eye to the
crack, but couldn't make out
nothing, it was so dark; and whispered
and said he would listen for the
steps to get further, and when he
nudged us Jim must glide out first, and
him last. So he set his ear to the
crack and listened, and listened, and
listened, and the steps a-scraping
around out there all the time; and at
last he nudged us, and we slid out, and
stooped down, not breathing, and
not making the least noise, and slipped
stealthy towards the fence in
Injun file, and got to it all right,
and me and Jim over it; but Tom's
britches catched fast on a splinter on
the top rail, and then he hear the
steps coming, so he had to pull loose,
which snapped the splinter and
made a noise; and as he dropped in our
tracks and started somebody sings
out:
"Who's that? Answer, or I'll
shoot!"
But we didn't answer; we just unfurled
our heels and shoved. Then there
was a rush, and a BANG, BANG, BANG! and
the bullets fairly whizzed around
us! We heard them sing out:
"Here they are! They've broke for
the river! After 'em, boys, and turn
loose the dogs!"
So here they come, full tilt. We could
hear them because they wore boots
and yelled, but we didn't wear no boots
and didn't yell. We was in the
path to the mill; and when they got
pretty close on to us we dodged into
the bush and let them go by, and then
dropped in behind them. They'd had
all the dogs shut up, so they wouldn't
scare off the robbers; but by this
time somebody had let them loose, and
here they come, making powwow
enough for a million; but they was our
dogs; so we stopped in our tracks
till they catched up; and when they see
it warn't nobody but us, and no
excitement to offer them, they only
just said howdy, and tore right ahead
towards the shouting and clattering;
and then we up-steam again, and
whizzed along after them till we was
nearly to the mill, and then struck
up through the bush to where my canoe
was tied, and hopped in and pulled
for dear life towards the middle of the
river, but didn't make no more
noise than we was obleeged to. Then we
struck out, easy and comfortable,
for the island where my raft was; and
we could hear them yelling and
barking at each other all up and down
the bank, till we was so far away
the sounds got dim and died out. And
when we stepped on to the raft I
says:
"NOW, old Jim, you're a free man
again, and I bet you won't ever be a
slave no more."
"En a mighty good job it wuz, too,
Huck. It 'uz planned beautiful, en it
'uz done beautiful; en dey ain't NOBODY
kin git up a plan dat's mo'
mixed-up en splendid den what dat one
wuz."
We was all glad as we could be, but Tom
was the gladdest of all because
he had a bullet in the calf of his leg.
When me and Jim heard that we didn't
feel so brash as what we did before.
It was hurting him considerable, and
bleeding; so we laid him in the
wigwam and tore up one of the duke's
shirts for to bandage him, but he
says:
"Gimme the rags; I can do it
myself. Don't stop now; don't fool around
here, and the evasion booming along so
handsome; man the sweeps, and set
her loose! Boys, we done it
elegant!—'deed we did. I wish WE'D a had
the handling of Louis XVI., there
wouldn't a been no 'Son of Saint Louis,
ascend to heaven!' wrote down in HIS
biography; no, sir, we'd a whooped
him over the BORDER—that's what
we'd a done with HIM—and done it just
as slick as nothing at all, too. Man
the sweeps—man the sweeps!"
But me and Jim was consulting—and
thinking. And after we'd thought a
minute, I says:
"Say it, Jim."
So he says:
"Well, den, dis is de way it look
to me, Huck. Ef it wuz HIM dat 'uz
bein' sot free, en one er de boys wuz
to git shot, would he say, 'Go on
en save me, nemmine 'bout a doctor f'r
to save dis one?' Is dat like
Mars Tom Sawyer? Would he say dat?
You BET he wouldn't! WELL, den, is
JIM gywne to say it? No, sah—I
doan' budge a step out'n dis place 'dout
a DOCTOR, not if it's forty year!"
I knowed he was white inside, and I
reckoned he'd say what he did say—so
it was all right now, and I told Tom I
was a-going for a doctor. He
raised considerable row about it, but
me and Jim stuck to it and wouldn't
budge; so he was for crawling out and
setting the raft loose himself; but
we wouldn't let him. Then he give us a
piece of his mind, but it didn't
do no good.
So when he sees me getting the canoe
ready, he says:
"Well, then, if you're bound to
go, I'll tell you the way to do when you
get to the village. Shut the door and
blindfold the doctor tight and
fast, and make him swear to be silent
as the grave, and put a purse full
of gold in his hand, and then take and
lead him all around the back
alleys and everywheres in the dark, and
then fetch him here in the canoe,
in a roundabout way amongst the
islands, and search him and take his
chalk away from him, and don't give it
back to him till you get him back
to the village, or else he will chalk
this raft so he can find it again.
It's the way they all do."
So I said I would, and left, and Jim
was to hide in the woods when he see
the doctor coming till he was gone
again.
CHAPTER XLI.
THE doctor was an old man; a very nice,
kind-looking old man when I got
him up. I told him me and my brother
was over on Spanish Island hunting
yesterday afternoon, and camped on a
piece of a raft we found, and about
midnight he must a kicked his gun in
his dreams, for it went off and shot
him in the leg, and we wanted him to go
over there and fix it and not say
nothing about it, nor let anybody know,
because we wanted to come home
this evening and surprise the folks.
"Who is your folks?" he says.
"The Phelpses, down yonder."
"Oh," he says. And after a
minute, he says:
"How'd you say he got shot?"
"He had a dream," I says,
"and it shot him."
"Singular dream," he says.
So he lit up his lantern, and got his
saddle-bags, and we started. But
when he sees the canoe he didn't like
the look of her—said she was big
enough for one, but didn't look pretty
safe for two. I says:
"Oh, you needn't be afeard, sir,
she carried the three of us easy
enough."
"What three?"
"Why, me and Sid, and—and—and
THE GUNS; that's what I mean."
"Oh," he says.
But he put his foot on the gunnel and
rocked her, and shook his head, and
said he reckoned he'd look around for a
bigger one. But they was all
locked and chained; so he took my
canoe, and said for me to wait till he
come back, or I could hunt around
further, or maybe I better go down home
and get them ready for the surprise if
I wanted to. But I said I didn't;
so I told him just how to find the
raft, and then he started.
I struck an idea pretty soon. I says
to myself, spos'n he can't fix that
leg just in three shakes of a sheep's
tail, as the saying is? spos'n it
takes him three or four days? What are
we going to do?—lay around there
till he lets the cat out of the bag?
No, sir; I know what I'LL do. I'll
wait, and when he comes back if he says
he's got to go any more I'll get
down there, too, if I swim; and we'll
take and tie him, and keep him, and
shove out down the river; and when
Tom's done with him we'll give him
what it's worth, or all we got, and
then let him get ashore.
So then I crept into a lumber-pile to
get some sleep; and next time I
waked up the sun was away up over my
head! I shot out and went for the
doctor's house, but they told me he'd
gone away in the night some time or
other, and warn't back yet. Well,
thinks I, that looks powerful bad for
Tom, and I'll dig out for the island
right off. So away I shoved, and
turned the corner, and nearly rammed my
head into Uncle Silas's stomach!
He says:
"Why, TOM! Where you been all
this time, you rascal?"
"I hain't been nowheres," I
says, "only just hunting for the runaway
nigger—me and Sid."
"Why, where ever did you go?"
he says. "Your aunt's been mighty uneasy."
"She needn't," I says,
"because we was all right. We followed the men
and the dogs, but they outrun us, and
we lost them; but we thought we
heard them on the water, so we got a
canoe and took out after them and
crossed over, but couldn't find nothing
of them; so we cruised along
up-shore till we got kind of tired and
beat out; and tied up the canoe
and went to sleep, and never waked up
till about an hour ago; then we
paddled over here to hear the news, and
Sid's at the post-office to see
what he can hear, and I'm a-branching
out to get something to eat for us,
and then we're going home."
So then we went to the post-office to
get "Sid"; but just as I
suspicioned, he warn't there; so the
old man he got a letter out of the
office, and we waited awhile longer,
but Sid didn't come; so the old man
said, come along, let Sid foot it home,
or canoe it, when he got done
fooling around—but we would ride.
I couldn't get him to let me stay and
wait for Sid; and he said there warn't
no use in it, and I must come
along, and let Aunt Sally see we was
all right.
When we got home Aunt Sally was that
glad to see me she laughed and cried
both, and hugged me, and give me one of
them lickings of hern that don't
amount to shucks, and said she'd serve
Sid the same when he come.
And the place was plum full of farmers
and farmers' wives, to dinner; and
such another clack a body never heard.
Old Mrs. Hotchkiss was the worst;
her tongue was a-going all the time.
She says:
"Well, Sister Phelps, I've
ransacked that-air cabin over, an' I b'lieve
the nigger was crazy. I says to Sister
Damrell—didn't I, Sister
Damrell?—s'I, he's crazy,
s'I—them's the very words I said. You all
hearn me: he's crazy, s'I; everything
shows it, s'I. Look at that-air
grindstone, s'I; want to tell ME't any
cretur 't's in his right mind 's a
goin' to scrabble all them crazy things
onto a grindstone, s'I? Here
sich 'n' sich a person busted his
heart; 'n' here so 'n' so pegged along
for thirty-seven year, 'n' all
that—natcherl son o' Louis somebody, 'n'
sich everlast'n rubbage. He's plumb
crazy, s'I; it's what I says in the
fust place, it's what I says in the
middle, 'n' it's what I says last 'n'
all the time—the nigger's
crazy—crazy 's Nebokoodneezer, s'I."
"An' look at that-air ladder made
out'n rags, Sister Hotchkiss," says old
Mrs. Damrell; "what in the name o'
goodness COULD he ever want of—"
"The very words I was a-sayin' no
longer ago th'n this minute to Sister
Utterback, 'n' she'll tell you so
herself. Sh-she, look at that-air rag
ladder, sh-she; 'n' s'I, yes, LOOK at
it, s'I—what COULD he a-wanted of
it, s'I. Sh-she, Sister Hotchkiss,
sh-she—"
"But how in the nation'd they ever
GIT that grindstone IN there, ANYWAY?
'n' who dug that-air HOLE? 'n' who—"
"My very WORDS, Brer Penrod! I
was a-sayin'—pass that-air sasser o'
m'lasses, won't ye?—I was
a-sayin' to Sister Dunlap, jist this minute,
how DID they git that grindstone in
there, s'I. Without HELP, mind you
—'thout HELP! THAT'S wher 'tis.
Don't tell ME, s'I; there WUZ help,
s'I; 'n' ther' wuz a PLENTY help, too,
s'I; ther's ben a DOZEN a-helpin'
that nigger, 'n' I lay I'd skin every
last nigger on this place but I'D
find out who done it, s'I; 'n'
moreover, s'I—"
"A DOZEN says you!—FORTY
couldn't a done every thing that's been done.
Look at them case-knife saws and
things, how tedious they've been made;
look at that bed-leg sawed off with 'm,
a week's work for six men; look
at that nigger made out'n straw on the
bed; and look at—"
"You may WELL say it, Brer
Hightower! It's jist as I was a-sayin' to
Brer Phelps, his own self. S'e, what
do YOU think of it, Sister
Hotchkiss, s'e? Think o' what, Brer
Phelps, s'I? Think o' that bed-leg
sawed off that a way, s'e? THINK of
it, s'I? I lay it never sawed
ITSELF off, s'I—somebody SAWED
it, s'I; that's my opinion, take it or
leave it, it mayn't be no 'count, s'I,
but sich as 't is, it's my
opinion, s'I, 'n' if any body k'n start
a better one, s'I, let him DO it,
s'I, that's all. I says to Sister
Dunlap, s'I—"
"Why, dog my cats, they must a ben
a house-full o' niggers in there every
night for four weeks to a done all that
work, Sister Phelps. Look at
that shirt—every last inch of it
kivered over with secret African writ'n
done with blood! Must a ben a raft uv
'm at it right along, all the
time, amost. Why, I'd give two dollars
to have it read to me; 'n' as for
the niggers that wrote it, I 'low I'd
take 'n' lash 'm t'll—"
"People to HELP him, Brother
Marples! Well, I reckon you'd THINK so if
you'd a been in this house for a while
back. Why, they've stole
everything they could lay their hands
on—and we a-watching all the time,
mind you. They stole that shirt right
off o' the line! and as for that
sheet they made the rag ladder out of,
ther' ain't no telling how many
times they DIDN'T steal that; and
flour, and candles, and candlesticks,
and spoons, and the old warming-pan,
and most a thousand things that I
disremember now, and my new calico
dress; and me and Silas and my Sid and
Tom on the constant watch day AND
night, as I was a-telling you, and not
a one of us could catch hide nor hair
nor sight nor sound of them; and
here at the last minute, lo and behold
you, they slides right in under
our noses and fools us, and not only
fools US but the Injun Territory
robbers too, and actuly gets AWAY with
that nigger safe and sound, and
that with sixteen men and twenty-two
dogs right on their very heels at
that very time! I tell you, it just
bangs anything I ever HEARD of.
Why, SPERITS couldn't a done better and
been no smarter. And I reckon
they must a BEEN sperits—because,
YOU know our dogs, and ther' ain't no
better; well, them dogs never even got
on the TRACK of 'm once! You
explain THAT to me if you can!—ANY
of you!"
"Well, it does beat—"
"Laws alive, I never—"
"So help me, I wouldn't a be—"
"HOUSE-thieves as well as—"
"Goodnessgracioussakes, I'd a ben
afeard to live in sich a—"
"'Fraid to LIVE!—why, I was
that scared I dasn't hardly go to bed, or
get up, or lay down, or SET down,
Sister Ridgeway. Why, they'd steal the
very—why, goodness sakes, you can
guess what kind of a fluster I was
in by the time midnight come last
night. I hope to gracious if I warn't
afraid they'd steal some o' the family!
I was just to that pass I didn't
have no reasoning faculties no more.
It looks foolish enough NOW, in the
daytime; but I says to myself, there's
my two poor boys asleep, 'way up
stairs in that lonesome room, and I
declare to goodness I was that uneasy
't I crep' up there and locked 'em in!
I DID. And anybody would.
Because, you know, when you get scared
that way, and it keeps running on,
and getting worse and worse all the
time, and your wits gets to addling,
and you get to doing all sorts o' wild
things, and by and by you think to
yourself, spos'n I was a boy, and was
away up there, and the door ain't
locked, and you—" She
stopped, looking kind of wondering, and then she
turned her head around slow, and when
her eye lit on me—I got up and
took a walk.
Says I to myself, I can explain better
how we come to not be in that room
this morning if I go out to one side
and study over it a little. So I
done it. But I dasn't go fur, or she'd
a sent for me. And when it was
late in the day the people all went,
and then I come in and told her the
noise and shooting waked up me and
"Sid," and the door was locked, and we
wanted to see the fun, so we went down
the lightning-rod, and both of us
got hurt a little, and we didn't never
want to try THAT no more. And
then I went on and told her all what I
told Uncle Silas before; and then
she said she'd forgive us, and maybe it
was all right enough anyway, and
about what a body might expect of boys,
for all boys was a pretty
harum-scarum lot as fur as she could
see; and so, as long as no harm
hadn't come of it, she judged she
better put in her time being grateful
we was alive and well and she had us
still, stead of fretting over what
was past and done. So then she kissed
me, and patted me on the head, and
dropped into a kind of a brown study;
and pretty soon jumps up, and says:
"Why, lawsamercy, it's most night,
and Sid not come yet! What HAS become
of that boy?"
I see my chance; so I skips up and
says:
"I'll run right up to town and get
him," I says.
"No you won't," she says.
"You'll stay right wher' you are; ONE'S enough
to be lost at a time. If he ain't here
to supper, your uncle 'll go."
Well, he warn't there to supper; so
right after supper uncle went.
He come back about ten a little bit
uneasy; hadn't run across Tom's
track. Aunt Sally was a good DEAL
uneasy; but Uncle Silas he said there
warn't no occasion to be—boys
will be boys, he said, and you'll see this
one turn up in the morning all sound
and right. So she had to be
satisfied. But she said she'd set up
for him a while anyway, and keep a
light burning so he could see it.
And then when I went up to bed she come
up with me and fetched her
candle, and tucked me in, and mothered
me so good I felt mean, and like I
couldn't look her in the face; and she
set down on the bed and talked
with me a long time, and said what a
splendid boy Sid was, and didn't
seem to want to ever stop talking about
him; and kept asking me every now
and then if I reckoned he could a got
lost, or hurt, or maybe drownded,
and might be laying at this minute
somewheres suffering or dead, and she
not by him to help him, and so the
tears would drip down silent, and I
would tell her that Sid was all right,
and would be home in the morning,
sure; and she would squeeze my hand, or
maybe kiss me, and tell me to say
it again, and keep on saying it,
because it done her good, and she was in
so much trouble. And when she was
going away she looked down in my eyes
so steady and gentle, and says:
"The door ain't going to be
locked, Tom, and there's the window and the
rod; but you'll be good, WON'T you?
And you won't go? For MY sake."
Laws knows I WANTED to go bad enough to
see about Tom, and was all
intending to go; but after that I
wouldn't a went, not for kingdoms.
But she was on my mind and Tom was on
my mind, so I slept very restless.
And twice I went down the rod away in
the night, and slipped around
front, and see her setting there by her
candle in the window with her
eyes towards the road and the tears in
them; and I wished I could do
something for her, but I couldn't, only
to swear that I wouldn't never do
nothing to grieve her any more. And
the third time I waked up at dawn,
and slid down, and she was there yet,
and her candle was most out, and
her old gray head was resting on her
hand, and she was asleep.
CHAPTER XLII.
THE old man was uptown again before
breakfast, but couldn't get no track
of Tom; and both of them set at the
table thinking, and not saying
nothing, and looking mournful, and
their coffee getting cold, and not
eating anything. And by and by the old
man says:
"Did I give you the letter?"
"What letter?"
"The one I got yesterday out of
the post-office."
"No, you didn't give me no
letter."
"Well, I must a forgot it."
So he rummaged his pockets, and then
went off somewheres where he had
laid it down, and fetched it, and give
it to her. She says:
"Why, it's from St.
Petersburg—it's from Sis."
I allowed another walk would do me
good; but I couldn't stir. But before
she could break it open she dropped it
and run—for she see something.
And so did I. It was Tom Sawyer on a
mattress; and that old doctor; and
Jim, in HER calico dress, with his
hands tied behind him; and a lot of
people. I hid the letter behind the
first thing that come handy, and
rushed. She flung herself at Tom,
crying, and says:
"Oh, he's dead, he's dead, I know
he's dead!"
And Tom he turned his head a little,
and muttered something or other,
which showed he warn't in his right
mind; then she flung up her hands,
and says:
"He's alive, thank God! And
that's enough!" and she snatched a kiss of
him, and flew for the house to get the
bed ready, and scattering orders
right and left at the niggers and
everybody else, as fast as her tongue
could go, every jump of the way.
I followed the men to see what they was
going to do with Jim; and the old
doctor and Uncle Silas followed after
Tom into the house. The men was
very huffy, and some of them wanted to
hang Jim for an example to all the
other niggers around there, so they
wouldn't be trying to run away like
Jim done, and making such a raft of
trouble, and keeping a whole family
scared most to death for days and
nights. But the others said, don't do
it, it wouldn't answer at all; he ain't
our nigger, and his owner would
turn up and make us pay for him, sure.
So that cooled them down a
little, because the people that's
always the most anxious for to hang a
nigger that hain't done just right is
always the very ones that ain't the
most anxious to pay for him when
they've got their satisfaction out of
him.
They cussed Jim considerble, though,
and give him a cuff or two side the
head once in a while, but Jim never
said nothing, and he never let on to
know me, and they took him to the same
cabin, and put his own clothes on
him, and chained him again, and not to
no bed-leg this time, but to a big
staple drove into the bottom log, and
chained his hands, too, and both
legs, and said he warn't to have
nothing but bread and water to eat after
this till his owner come, or he was
sold at auction because he didn't
come in a certain length of time, and
filled up our hole, and said a
couple of farmers with guns must stand
watch around about the cabin every
night, and a bulldog tied to the door
in the daytime; and about this time
they was through with the job and was
tapering off with a kind of generl
good-bye cussing, and then the old
doctor comes and takes a look, and
says:
"Don't be no rougher on him than
you're obleeged to, because he ain't a
bad nigger. When I got to where I
found the boy I see I couldn't cut the
bullet out without some help, and he
warn't in no condition for me to
leave to go and get help; and he got a
little worse and a little worse,
and after a long time he went out of
his head, and wouldn't let me come
a-nigh him any more, and said if I
chalked his raft he'd kill me, and no
end of wild foolishness like that, and
I see I couldn't do anything at
all with him; so I says, I got to have
HELP somehow; and the minute I
says it out crawls this nigger from
somewheres and says he'll help, and
he done it, too, and done it very well.
Of course I judged he must be a
runaway nigger, and there I WAS! and
there I had to stick right straight
along all the rest of the day and all
night. It was a fix, I tell you!
I had a couple of patients with the
chills, and of course I'd of liked to
run up to town and see them, but I
dasn't, because the nigger might get
away, and then I'd be to blame; and yet
never a skiff come close enough
for me to hail. So there I had to
stick plumb until daylight this
morning; and I never see a nigger that
was a better nuss or faithfuller,
and yet he was risking his freedom to
do it, and was all tired out, too,
and I see plain enough he'd been worked
main hard lately. I liked the
nigger for that; I tell you, gentlemen,
a nigger like that is worth a
thousand dollars—and kind
treatment, too. I had everything I needed,
and the boy was doing as well there as
he would a done at home—better,
maybe, because it was so quiet; but
there I WAS, with both of 'm on my
hands, and there I had to stick till
about dawn this morning; then some
men in a skiff come by, and as good
luck would have it the nigger was
setting by the pallet with his head
propped on his knees sound asleep; so
I motioned them in quiet, and they
slipped up on him and grabbed him and
tied him before he knowed what he was
about, and we never had no trouble.
And the boy being in a kind of a
flighty sleep, too, we muffled the oars
and hitched the raft on, and towed her
over very nice and quiet, and the
nigger never made the least row nor
said a word from the start. He ain't
no bad nigger, gentlemen; that's what I
think about him."
Somebody says:
"Well, it sounds very good,
doctor, I'm obleeged to say."
Then the others softened up a little,
too, and I was mighty thankful to
that old doctor for doing Jim that good
turn; and I was glad it was
according to my judgment of him, too;
because I thought he had a good
heart in him and was a good man the
first time I see him. Then they all
agreed that Jim had acted very well,
and was deserving to have some
notice took of it, and reward. So
every one of them promised, right out
and hearty, that they wouldn't cuss him
no more.
Then they come out and locked him up.
I hoped they was going to say he
could have one or two of the chains
took off, because they was rotten
heavy, or could have meat and greens
with his bread and water; but they
didn't think of it, and I reckoned it
warn't best for me to mix in, but I
judged I'd get the doctor's yarn to
Aunt Sally somehow or other as soon
as I'd got through the breakers that
was laying just ahead of me
—explanations, I mean, of how I
forgot to mention about Sid being shot
when I was telling how him and me put
in that dratted night paddling
around hunting the runaway nigger.
But I had plenty time. Aunt Sally she
stuck to the sick-room all day and
all night, and every time I see Uncle
Silas mooning around I dodged him.
Next morning I heard Tom was a good
deal better, and they said Aunt Sally
was gone to get a nap. So I slips to
the sick-room, and if I found him
awake I reckoned we could put up a yarn
for the family that would wash.
But he was sleeping, and sleeping very
peaceful, too; and pale, not
fire-faced the way he was when he come.
So I set down and laid for him
to wake. In about half an hour Aunt
Sally comes gliding in, and there I
was, up a stump again! She motioned me
to be still, and set down by me,
and begun to whisper, and said we could
all be joyful now, because all
the symptoms was first-rate, and he'd
been sleeping like that for ever so
long, and looking better and
peacefuller all the time, and ten to one
he'd wake up in his right mind.
So we set there watching, and by and by
he stirs a bit, and opened his
eyes very natural, and takes a look,
and says:
"Hello!—why, I'm at HOME!
How's that? Where's the raft?"
"It's all right," I says.
"And JIM?"
"The same," I says, but
couldn't say it pretty brash. But he never
noticed, but says:
"Good! Splendid! NOW we're all
right and safe! Did you tell Aunty?"
I was going to say yes; but she chipped
in and says: "About what, Sid?"
"Why, about the way the whole
thing was done."
"What whole thing?"
"Why, THE whole thing. There
ain't but one; how we set the runaway
nigger free—me and Tom."
"Good land! Set the run—What
IS the child talking about! Dear, dear,
out of his head again!"
"NO, I ain't out of my HEAD; I
know all what I'm talking about. We DID
set him free—me and Tom. We laid
out to do it, and we DONE it. And we
done it elegant, too." He'd got a
start, and she never checked him up,
just set and stared and stared, and let
him clip along, and I see it
warn't no use for ME to put in. "Why,
Aunty, it cost us a power of work
—weeks of it—hours and
hours, every night, whilst you was all asleep.
And we had to steal candles, and the
sheet, and the shirt, and your
dress, and spoons, and tin plates, and
case-knives, and the warming-pan,
and the grindstone, and flour, and just
no end of things, and you can't
think what work it was to make the
saws, and pens, and inscriptions, and
one thing or another, and you can't
think HALF the fun it was. And we
had to make up the pictures of coffins
and things, and nonnamous letters
from the robbers, and get up and down
the lightning-rod, and dig the hole
into the cabin, and made the rope
ladder and send it in cooked up in a
pie, and send in spoons and things to
work with in your apron pocket—"
"Mercy sakes!"
"—and load up the cabin with
rats and snakes and so on, for company for
Jim; and then you kept Tom here so long
with the butter in his hat that
you come near spiling the whole
business, because the men come before we
was out of the cabin, and we had to
rush, and they heard us and let drive
at us, and I got my share, and we
dodged out of the path and let them go
by, and when the dogs come they warn't
interested in us, but went for the
most noise, and we got our canoe, and
made for the raft, and was all
safe, and Jim was a free man, and we
done it all by ourselves, and WASN'T
it bully, Aunty!"
"Well, I never heard the likes of
it in all my born days! So it was YOU,
you little rapscallions, that's been
making all this trouble, and turned
everybody's wits clean inside out and
scared us all most to death. I've
as good a notion as ever I had in my
life to take it out o' you this very
minute. To think, here I've been,
night after night, a—YOU just get
well once, you young scamp, and I lay
I'll tan the Old Harry out o' both
o' ye!"
But Tom, he WAS so proud and joyful, he
just COULDN'T hold in, and his
tongue just WENT it—she
a-chipping in, and spitting fire all along, and
both of them going it at once, like a
cat convention; and she says:
"WELL, you get all the enjoyment
you can out of it NOW, for mind I tell
you if I catch you meddling with him
again—"
"Meddling with WHO?" Tom
says, dropping his smile and looking surprised.
"With WHO? Why, the runaway
nigger, of course. Who'd you reckon?"
Tom looks at me very grave, and says:
"Tom, didn't you just tell me he
was all right? Hasn't he got away?"
"HIM?" says Aunt Sally; "the
runaway nigger? 'Deed he hasn't. They've
got him back, safe and sound, and he's
in that cabin again, on bread and
water, and loaded down with chains,
till he's claimed or sold!"
Tom rose square up in bed, with his eye
hot, and his nostrils opening and
shutting like gills, and sings out to
me:
"They hain't no RIGHT to shut him
up! SHOVE!—and don't you lose a
minute. Turn him loose! he ain't no
slave; he's as free as any cretur
that walks this earth!"
"What DOES the child mean?"
"I mean every word I SAY, Aunt
Sally, and if somebody don't go, I'LL go.
I've knowed him all his life, and so
has Tom, there. Old Miss Watson
died two months ago, and she was
ashamed she ever was going to sell him
down the river, and SAID so; and she
set him free in her will."
"Then what on earth did YOU want
to set him free for, seeing he was
already free?"
"Well, that IS a question, I must
say; and just like women! Why, I
wanted the ADVENTURE of it; and I'd a
waded neck-deep in blood to
—goodness alive, AUNT POLLY!"
If she warn't standing right there,
just inside the door, looking as
sweet and contented as an angel half
full of pie, I wish I may never!
Aunt Sally jumped for her, and most
hugged the head off of her, and cried
over her, and I found a good enough
place for me under the bed, for it
was getting pretty sultry for us,
seemed to me. And I peeped out, and in
a little while Tom's Aunt Polly shook
herself loose and stood there
looking across at Tom over her
spectacles—kind of grinding him into the
earth, you know. And then she says:
"Yes, you BETTER turn y'r head
away—I would if I was you, Tom."
"Oh, deary me!" says Aunt
Sally; "IS he changed so? Why, that ain't TOM,
it's Sid; Tom's—Tom's—why,
where is Tom? He was here a minute ago."
"You mean where's Huck FINN—that's
what you mean! I reckon I hain't
raised such a scamp as my Tom all these
years not to know him when I SEE
him. That WOULD be a pretty howdy-do.
Come out from under that bed,
Huck Finn."
So I done it. But not feeling brash.
Aunt Sally she was one of the
mixed-upest-looking persons I ever see
—except one, and that was Uncle
Silas, when he come in and they told it
all to him. It kind of made him drunk,
as you may say, and he didn't
know nothing at all the rest of the
day, and preached a prayer-meeting
sermon that night that gave him a
rattling ruputation, because the oldest
man in the world couldn't a understood
it. So Tom's Aunt Polly, she told
all about who I was, and what; and I
had to up and tell how I was in such
a tight place that when Mrs. Phelps
took me for Tom Sawyer—she chipped
in and says, "Oh, go on and call
me Aunt Sally, I'm used to it now, and
'tain't no need to change"—that
when Aunt Sally took me for Tom Sawyer I
had to stand it—there warn't no
other way, and I knowed he wouldn't
mind, because it would be nuts for him,
being a mystery, and he'd make an
adventure out of it, and be perfectly
satisfied. And so it turned out,
and he let on to be Sid, and made
things as soft as he could for me.
And his Aunt Polly she said Tom was
right about old Miss Watson setting
Jim free in her will; and so, sure
enough, Tom Sawyer had gone and took
all that trouble and bother to set a
free nigger free! and I couldn't
ever understand before, until that
minute and that talk, how he COULD
help a body set a nigger free with his
bringing-up.
Well, Aunt Polly she said that when
Aunt Sally wrote to her that Tom and
SID had come all right and safe, she
says to herself:
"Look at that, now! I might have
expected it, letting him go off that
way without anybody to watch him. So
now I got to go and trapse all the
way down the river, eleven hundred
mile, and find out what that creetur's
up to THIS time, as long as I couldn't
seem to get any answer out of you
about it."
"Why, I never heard nothing from
you," says Aunt Sally.
"Well, I wonder! Why, I wrote you
twice to ask you what you could mean
by Sid being here."
"Well, I never got 'em, Sis."
Aunt Polly she turns around slow and
severe, and says:
"You, Tom!"
"Well—WHAT?" he says,
kind of pettish.
"Don t you what ME, you impudent
thing—hand out them letters."
"What letters?"
"THEM letters. I be bound, if I
have to take a-holt of you I'll—"
"They're in the trunk. There,
now. And they're just the same as they
was when I got them out of the office.
I hain't looked into them, I
hain't touched them. But I knowed
they'd make trouble, and I thought if
you warn't in no hurry, I'd—"
"Well, you DO need skinning, there
ain't no mistake about it. And I
wrote another one to tell you I was
coming; and I s'pose he—"
"No, it come yesterday; I hain't
read it yet, but IT'S all right, I've
got that one."
I wanted to offer to bet two dollars
she hadn't, but I reckoned maybe it
was just as safe to not to. So I never
said nothing.
CHAPTER THE LAST
THE first time I catched Tom private I
asked him what was his idea, time
of the evasion?—what it was he'd
planned to do if the evasion worked all
right and he managed to set a nigger
free that was already free before?
And he said, what he had planned in his
head from the start, if we got
Jim out all safe, was for us to run him
down the river on the raft, and
have adventures plumb to the mouth of
the river, and then tell him about
his being free, and take him back up
home on a steamboat, in style, and
pay him for his lost time, and write
word ahead and get out all the
niggers around, and have them waltz him
into town with a torchlight
procession and a brass-band, and then
he would be a hero, and so would
we. But I reckoned it was about as
well the way it was.
We had Jim out of the chains in no
time, and when Aunt Polly and Uncle
Silas and Aunt Sally found out how good
he helped the doctor nurse Tom,
they made a heap of fuss over him, and
fixed him up prime, and give him
all he wanted to eat, and a good time,
and nothing to do. And we had him
up to the sick-room, and had a high
talk; and Tom give Jim forty dollars
for being prisoner for us so patient,
and doing it up so good, and Jim
was pleased most to death, and busted
out, and says:
"DAH, now, Huck, what I tell
you?—what I tell you up dah on Jackson
islan'? I TOLE you I got a hairy
breas', en what's de sign un it; en I
TOLE you I ben rich wunst, en gwineter
to be rich AGIN; en it's come
true; en heah she is! DAH, now! doan'
talk to ME—signs is SIGNS, mine I
tell you; en I knowed jis' 's well 'at
I 'uz gwineter be rich agin as I's
a-stannin' heah dis minute!"
And then Tom he talked along and talked
along, and says, le's all three
slide out of here one of these nights
and get an outfit, and go for
howling adventures amongst the Injuns,
over in the Territory, for a
couple of weeks or two; and I says, all
right, that suits me, but I ain't
got no money for to buy the outfit, and
I reckon I couldn't get none from
home, because it's likely pap's been
back before now, and got it all away
from Judge Thatcher and drunk it up.
"No, he hain't," Tom says;
"it's all there yet—six thousand dollars and
more; and your pap hain't ever been
back since. Hadn't when I come away,
anyhow."
Jim says, kind of solemn:
"He ain't a-comin' back no mo',
Huck."
I says:
"Why, Jim?"
"Nemmine why, Huck—but he
ain't comin' back no mo."
But I kept at him; so at last he says:
"Doan' you 'member de house dat
was float'n down de river, en dey wuz a
man in dah, kivered up, en I went in en
unkivered him and didn' let you
come in? Well, den, you kin git yo'
money when you wants it, kase dat
wuz him."
Tom's most well now, and got his bullet
around his neck on a watch-guard
for a watch, and is always seeing what
time it is, and so there ain't
nothing more to write about, and I am
rotten glad of it, because if I'd a
knowed what a trouble it was to make a
book I wouldn't a tackled it, and
ain't a-going to no more. But I reckon
I got to light out for the
Territory ahead of the rest, because
Aunt Sally she's going to adopt me
and sivilize me, and I can't stand it.
I been there before.